Luthic: Difference between revisions

From Linguifex
Jump to navigation Jump to search
(Wikitable changes - text style)
 
Line 1: Line 1:
{{privatelang}}
{{Infobox language
{{Infobox language
|image            = Lutho-Ravennese Flag.png
|image            = Lutho-Ravennese Flag.png
Line 5: Line 7:
|name              = Luthic
|name              = Luthic
|nativename        = Lûthica
|nativename        = Lûthica
|pronunciation    = ˈlu.tʰi.xɐ
|pronunciation    = ˈlu.ti.xɐ
|pronunciation_key = IPA for Luthic
|states            = [[w:Ravenna|Ravenna]]; [[w:Ferrara|Ferrara]] and [[w:Bologna|Bologna]]
|states            = [[w:Ravenna|Ravenna]]; [[w:Ferrara|Ferrara]] and [[w:Bologna|Bologna]]
|setting          = Alternative history [[w:Italy|Italy]]
|region            = [[w: Southern Europe|Southern Europe]]
|region            = [[w: Southern Europe|Southern Europe]]
|speakers          = 149,500
|speakers          = 149,500
Line 18: Line 22:
|fam6              = Italo-Luthian Romance
|fam6              = Italo-Luthian Romance
|creator          = User:Lëtzelúcia
|creator          = User:Lëtzelúcia
|dia1              = Upper Luthic (''Altalûthica''), Ferraresi Luthic (''Lûthica Estense'')
|dia2              = Standard Bolognese Luthic (''Lûthica Bolognesa'')
|dia3              = Paulistan Luthic (''Lûthica Paülista'')
|stand1            = Standard Ravennese Luthic (''Lûthica'')
|script1          = Latn
|script1          = Latn
|script2          = Brai
|script2          = Brai
|minority          = [[w:Italy|Italy]] (recognised by the Luthic Community of Ravenna)
|minority          = [[w:Italy|Italy]] (recognised by the Luthic Community of Ravenna) <br >[[w:Brazil|Brazil]] (recognised in [[w:São Paulo (state)|São Paulo]])
|agency            = Council for the Luthic Language
|agency            = Council for the Luthic Language
|map              = Spoken_Luthic_status.png
|map              = Spoken_Luthic_status.png
Line 27: Line 35:
|notice            = IPA
|notice            = IPA
|ethnicity        = Luths
|ethnicity        = Luths
|ancestor          = Proto-Luthic
|ancestor2        = Gothic Luthic
|ancestor3        = Mediaeval Luthic
|ancestor4        = Late Mediaeval Luthic
}}
}}
'''Luthic''' ({{IPA|/ˈluːθ.ɪk/}} ''LOOTH-ik'', less often {{IPA|/ˈlʌθ.ɪk/}} ''LUTH-ik'', also ''Luthish''; [[w:Endonym|endonym]]: ''Lûthica'' {{IPA|[ˈlu.tʰi.xɐ]}} or ''Rasda Lûthica'' {{IPA|[ˈʁaz.dɐ ˈlu.tʰi.xɐ]}}) is an [[w:Italic languages|Italic language]] that is spoken by the Luths, with strong [[w:East Germanic languages|East Germanic]] influence. Unlike other [[w:Romance languages|Romance languages]], such as [[w:Portuguese language|Portuguese]], [[w:Spanish language|Spanish]], [[w:Catalan language|Catalan]], [[w:Occitan language|Occitan]] and [[w:French language|French]], Luthic has a large inherited vocabulary from [[w:East Germanic languages|East Germanic]], instead of only proper names that survived in historical accounts, and [[w:Loanword|loanwords]]. About 250,000 people speak Luthic worldwide.
[[Luthic]] ([[w:Help:IPA|/ˈluːθ.ɪk/]] [[w:Help:Pronunciation respelling key|''LOOTH-ik'']], less often [[w:Help:IPA|/ˈlʌθ.ɪk/]] [[w:Help:Pronunciation respelling key|''LUTH-ik'']], also ''Luthish''; [[w:Endonym|endonym]]: ''Lûthica'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈlu.ti.xɐ]]] or ''Rasda Lûthica'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈraz.dɐ ˈlu.ti.xɐ]]]) is an [[w:Italic languages|Italic language]] that is spoken by the Luths, with strong [[w:East Germanic languages|East Germanic]] influence. Unlike other [[w:Romance languages|Romance languages]], such as [[w:Portuguese language|Portuguese]], [[w:Spanish language|Spanish]], [[w:Catalan language|Catalan]], [[w:Occitan language|Occitan]] and [[w:French language|French]], Luthic has a large inherited vocabulary from [[w:East Germanic languages|East Germanic]], instead of only proper names that survived in historical accounts, and [[w:Loanword|loanwords]]. About 250,000 people speak Luthic worldwide.


Luthic is the result of a prolonged contact among members of both regions after the [[w:Goths|Gothic raids]] towards the [[w:Roman Empire|Roman Empire]] began, together with the later [[w:Germanic peoples|West Germanic]] merchants’ travels to and from the [[w:Western Roman Empire|Western Roman Empire]]. These connections and the conquest by the Germanic tribes of the Roman Empire slowly formed a [[w:Creole language|creole]] for mutual communication.
Luthic is the result of a prolonged contact among members of both regions after the [[w:Goths|Gothic raids]] towards the [[w:Roman Empire|Roman Empire]] began, together with the later [[w:Germanic peoples|West Germanic]] merchants’ travels to and from the [[w:Western Roman Empire|Western Roman Empire]]. These connections, the interactions between the [[w:Papal States|Papal States]] and the conquest by the Germanic dynasties of the Roman Empire slowly formed a [[w:Creole language|creole]] as a [[w:Lingua franca|''lingua franca'']] for mutual communication.


As a standard form of the Gotho-Romance language, Luthic has similarities with other [[w:Italo-Dalmatian languages|Italo-Dalmatian languages]], [[w:Western Romance languages|Western Romance languages]] and [[w:Sardinian language|Sardinian]]. The status of Luthic as the regional language of Ravenna and the existence there of a regulatory body have removed Luthic, at least in part, from the domain of [[w:Italian language|Standard Italian]], its traditional ''Dachsprach''e. It is also related to the [[w:Florentine dialect|Florentine dialect]] spoken by the [[w:Italians|Italians]] in the Italian city of [[w:Florence|Florence]] and its immediate surroundings.
As a standard form of the Gotho-Romance language, Luthic has similarities with other [[w:Italo-Dalmatian languages|Italo-Dalmatian languages]], [[w:Western Romance languages|Western Romance languages]] and [[w:Sardinian language|Sardinian]]. The status of Luthic as the regional language of Ravenna and the existence there of a regulatory body have removed Luthic, at least in part, from the domain of [[w:Italian language|Standard Italian]], its traditional [[w:Abstand_and_ausbau_languages#Roofing|''Dachsprache'']]. It is also related to the [[w:Florentine dialect|Florentine dialect]] spoken by the [[w:Italians|Italians]] in the Italian city of [[w:Florence|Florence]] and its immediate surroundings.


Luthic is an [[w:Inflection|inflected]] [[w:Fusional language|fusional language]], with four [[w:Grammatical case|cases]] for nouns, pronouns, and adjectives (nominative, accusative, genitive, dative); three [[w:Grammatical genders|genders]] (masculine, feminine, neuter); and two [[w:Grammatical number|numbers]] (singular, plural).
Luthic is an [[w:Inflection|inflected]] [[w:Fusional language|fusional language]], with four [[w:Grammatical case|cases]] for nouns, pronouns, and adjectives (nominative, accusative, genitive, dative); three [[w:Grammatical genders|genders]] (masculine, feminine, neuter); and two [[w:Grammatical number|numbers]] (singular, plural).
Line 40: Line 52:
Luthic is an [[w:Indo-European languages|Indo-European language]] that belongs to the Gotho-Romance group of the Italic languages, however Luthic has great Germanic influence; where the [[w:Germanic languages|Germanic languages]] are traditionally subdivided into three branches: [[w:North Germanic languages|North Germanic]], [[w:East Germanic languages|East Germanic]], and [[w:West Germanic languages|West Germanic]]. The first of these branches survives in modern [[w:Danish language|Danish]], [[w:Swedish language|Swedish]], [[w:Norwegian language|Norwegian]], [[w:Elfdalian language|Elfdalian]], [[w:Faroese language|Faroese]], and [[w:Icelandic language|Icelandic]], all of which are descended from [[w:Old Norse language|Old Norse]]. The East Germanic languages are now extinct, and [[w:Gothic language|Gothic]] is the only language in this branch which survives in written texts; Luthic is the only surviving Indo-European language with extensive East Germanic derived vocabulary. The West Germanic languages, however, have undergone extensive dialectal subdivision and are now represented in modern languages such as [[w:English language|English]], [[w:German language|German]], [[w:Dutch language|Dutch]], [[w:Yiddish language|Yiddish]], [[w:Afrikaans language|Afrikaans]], and others.
Luthic is an [[w:Indo-European languages|Indo-European language]] that belongs to the Gotho-Romance group of the Italic languages, however Luthic has great Germanic influence; where the [[w:Germanic languages|Germanic languages]] are traditionally subdivided into three branches: [[w:North Germanic languages|North Germanic]], [[w:East Germanic languages|East Germanic]], and [[w:West Germanic languages|West Germanic]]. The first of these branches survives in modern [[w:Danish language|Danish]], [[w:Swedish language|Swedish]], [[w:Norwegian language|Norwegian]], [[w:Elfdalian language|Elfdalian]], [[w:Faroese language|Faroese]], and [[w:Icelandic language|Icelandic]], all of which are descended from [[w:Old Norse language|Old Norse]]. The East Germanic languages are now extinct, and [[w:Gothic language|Gothic]] is the only language in this branch which survives in written texts; Luthic is the only surviving Indo-European language with extensive East Germanic derived vocabulary. The West Germanic languages, however, have undergone extensive dialectal subdivision and are now represented in modern languages such as [[w:English language|English]], [[w:German language|German]], [[w:Dutch language|Dutch]], [[w:Yiddish language|Yiddish]], [[w:Afrikaans language|Afrikaans]], and others.


Among the Romance languages, its classification has always been controversial, for example, it is one of the [[w:Italo-Dalmatian languages|Italo-Dalmatian languages]] and most closely related to [[w:Istriot language|Istriot]] on the one hand and [[w:Tuscan dialect|Tuscan-Italian]] on the other. Some authors include it among the [[w:Gallo-Italic languages|Gallo-Italic languages], and according to others, it is not related to either one. Although both [[w:Ethnologue|Ethnologue]] and [[w:Glottolog|Glottolog]] group Luthic into a new language group, the Gotho-Romance (''opere citato'') family is still somewhat dubious.
[[File:Germanic_languages_and_Luthic.png|thumb|left|
'''[[w:Anglic languages|Anglic languages]]'''
{{legend|#FFA500|[[w:English|English]]}}
{{legend|#FF8C00|[[w:Scots language|Scots]]}}
within the '''[[w:Anglo-Frisian languages|Anglo-Frisian languages]]''', which also include
{{legend|#FFD700|[[w:Frisian languages|Frisian]] ([[w:West Frisian language|West]], [[w:North Frisian language|North]], [[w:Saterland Frisian language|Saterland]]);}} within the '''[[w:North Sea Germanic languages|North Sea Germanic languages]]''', which also include
{{legend|#7FFF00|[[w:Low German|Low German]]/Saxon;}}
within the '''[[w:West Germanic languages|West Germanic languages]]''', which also include
{{legend|#FFFF00|[[w:Dutch language|Dutch]] in Europe and [[w:Afrikaans|Afrikaans]] in Africa}}
......  [[w:German language|German]] ([[w:High German|High]]):
{{legend|#00FF00|[[w:Central German|Central]]; in [[w:Luxembourg|Lux.]]: [[w:Luxembourgish|Luxembourgish]]}}
{{legend|#008000|[[w:Upper German|Upper]]}}
...... [[w:Yiddish|Yiddish]]; <br>
within the '''[[w:East Germanic languages|East Germanic languages]]''', which also include
{{legend|#9A22FD|[[Luthic]]}}]]
 
Among the Romance languages, its classification has always been controversial, for example, it is one of the [[w:Italo-Dalmatian languages|Italo-Dalmatian languages]] and most closely related to [[w:Istriot language|Istriot]] on the one hand and [[w:Tuscan dialect|Tuscan-Italian]] on the other. Some authors include it among the [[w:Gallo-Italic languages|Gallo-Italic languages]], and according to others, it is not related to either one. Although both [[w:Ethnologue|Ethnologue]] and [[w:Glottolog|Glottolog]] group Luthic into a new language group, the Gotho-Romance (''opere citato'') family.
 
Although the language region is surrounded by [[w:Gallo-Italic languages|Gallo-Italic languages]], Luthic does not share some traits with these immediate neighbours. For example, Luthic did not fully undergo [[w:Nasalization|vowel nasalisation]], as vowels are only nasalised preceding a [[w:Gemination|geminate]] [[w:Nasal consonant|nasal consonant]], also lacking vowel fronting, as ''u'' [[w:Close back rounded vowel|/u/]] tends to evolve as ''ü'' [[w:Close front rounded vowel|/y/]], as in French and Occitan, and it preserved its final syllables. Some traits are further afield in [[w:Rhaeto-Romance languages|Rhaeto-Romance languages]]. Modern Luthic is not a close relative of the extinct [[w:East Germanic languages|East Germanic languages]], but some may still classify it as an East Germanic language, which is highly debated and enjoys the least academic favour.


Luthic has been influenced by [[w:Italian language|Italian]], [[w:Frankish language|Frankish]], [[w:Gothic language|Gothic]] and [[w:Lombardic language|Langobardic]] since its first attestation, the great influence of these languages on the vocabulary and grammar of Modern Luthic is widely acknowledged. Most specialists in [[w:Language contact|language contact]] do consider Luthic to be a [[w:Mixed language|true mixed language]]. Luthic is classified as a Romance langauge because it shares innovations with other Romance languages such as Italian, French and Spanish.
Luthic has been influenced by [[w:Italian language|Italian]], [[w:Frankish language|Frankish]], [[w:Gothic language|Gothic]] and [[w:Lombardic language|Langobardic]] since its first attestation, the great influence of these languages on the vocabulary and grammar of Modern Luthic is widely acknowledged. Most specialists in [[w:Language contact|language contact]] do consider Luthic to be a [[w:Mixed language|true mixed language]]. Luthic is classified as a Romance language because it shares innovations with other Romance languages such as Italian, French and Spanish.
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|+ East Germanic cognates
! width="25%"|[[w:Gothic language|Biblical Gothic]]
! width="25%"|[[w:Crimean Gothic|Crimean Gothic]]¹
! width="25%"|[[Luthic]]
! width="25%"|[[w:English language|English]]
|-
| [[wikt:𐌰𐌷𐍄𐌰𐌿#Gothic|𐌰𐌷𐍄𐌰𐌿]] (''ahtau'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|/ˈax.tɔː/]] || [[wikt:athe#Crimean_Gothic|athe]] /ˈa.te/ || attau [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈat.tɔ]]] || eight
|-
| [[wikt:𐌱𐌰𐌿𐍂#Gothic|𐌱𐌰𐌿𐍂]] (''baur'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|/bɔr/]] <br >[[wikt:𐌱𐌰𐍂𐌽#Gothic|𐌱𐌰𐍂𐌽]] (''barn'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|/barn/]] || [[wikt:baar#Crimean_Gothic|baar]] /bar/ <br >*ba(a)rn /barn/? || baure [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbɔ.re]]] <br >barno [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbar.no]]] || child
|-
| [[wikt:𐌱𐍂𐍉𐌸𐌰𐍂#Gothic|𐌱𐍂𐍉𐌸𐌰𐍂]] (''brōþar'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|/ˈbroː.θar/]] || [[wikt:bruder#Crimean_Gothic|bruder]] /'bru.der/ || broþar [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbro.θɐr]]] || brother
|-
| [[wikt:𐍅𐌰𐌹𐍂#Gothic|𐍅𐌰𐌹𐍂]] (''wair'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|/wɛr/]] || [[wikt:fers#Crimean_Gothic|fers]] /fers/ || vaere [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈvɛ.re]]] || were- (as in werewolf)
|-
| [[wikt:𐌷𐌰𐌽𐌳𐌿𐍃#Gothic|𐌷𐌰𐌽𐌳𐌿𐍃]] (''handus'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|/ˈhan.dus/]] || [[wikt:handa#Crimean_Gothic|handa]] /ˈan.da/ || handu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈan.du]]] <small>(archaic, dialectal or obsolete)</small> || hand
|-
| [[wikt:𐌷𐌰𐌿𐌱𐌹𐌸#Gothic|𐌷𐌰𐌿𐌱𐌹𐌸]] (''haubiþ'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|/ˈhɔː.βiθ/]] || [[wikt:hoef#Crimean_Gothic|hoef]] (for *hoeft) /oft/ || hauveþo [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɔ.βe.θo]]] <small>(archaic, dialectal or obsolete)</small> || head
|-
| [[wikt:𐌵𐌹𐌼𐌰𐌽#Gothic|𐌵𐌹𐌼𐌰𐌽]] (''qiman'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|/ˈkʷi.man/]] || [[wikt:kommen#Crimean_Gothic|kommen]] /'ko.men/ || qemare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[kᶣeˈma.re]]] || to come
|-
| [[wikt:𐌷𐌻𐌰𐌷𐌾𐌰𐌽#Gothic|𐌷𐌻𐌰𐌷𐌾𐌰𐌽]] (''hlahjan'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|/'hlax.jan/]] || [[wikt:lachen#Crimean_Gothic|lachen]] /'la.xen/ (/'la.ɣen/?) || chiaire [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈkjaj.re]]] || to laugh
|-
| [[wikt:𐌰𐌿𐌲𐍉#Gothic|𐌰𐌿𐌲𐍉]] (''augō'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|/ˈɔː.ɣoː/]] || [[wikt:oeghene#Crimean_Gothic|oeghene]] /ˈo.ɣe.ne/ || augnio [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɔɲ.ɲo]]] || eye
|}
:¹ Discussions cover the different versions of [[w:Ogier Ghiselin de Busbecq|Busbecq]]’s report, including scribal emendation and errors in printing and subsequent corrections. It seems that Busbecq’s understanding and documentation of Crimean Gothic were influenced by his Flemish background and possibly by German. He obtained his information from a Crimean Greek source who was knowledgeable in Crimean Gothic. The individual from Crimea who supplied the language information was either originally Greek or fluent in Crimean Gothic but more proficient in Greek than their own native language. In both cases, it’s likely that the pronunciation of Crimean Gothic words was influenced to some extent by the phonetics of the Greek language spoken in that area and time.


==History==
==History==
The Luthic [[w:Philology|philologist]] Aþalphonso Silva divided the history of Luthic into a period from 500 AD to 1740 to be "Mediaeval Luthic", which he subdivided into “Gothic Luthic” (500–1100), “Mediaeval Luthic” (1100–1600) and “late Mediaeval Luthic” (1600–1740).
The Luthic [[w:Philology|philologist]] Aþalphonsu Silva divided the history of Luthic into a period from 500 AD to 1740 to be “Mediaeval Luthic”, which he subdivided into “Gothic Luthic” (500–1100), “Mediaeval Luthic” (1100–1600) and “late Mediaeval Luthic” (1600–1740).
 
An additional period was later created by Lucia Giamane, from ''c.'' 325 AD to 500 AD to be called “Proto-Luthic”, which she believes to be an [[w:Vulgar Latin|Vulgar Latin]] [[w:Ethnolect|ethnolect]], spoken by the early Goths during its period of co-existence with the Roman Empire, no written records from such an early period survive, and if any ever existed, it was fully lost during the [[w:Gothic War (376–382)|Gothic War (376–382)]] and during the [[w:Sack of Rome (410)|Sack of Rome (410)]]. Proto-Luthic ultimately is the result of the [[w:Romano-Germanic culture|Romano-Germanic culture]].
 
[[File:305 CE, Europe.svg|thumb|upright=1.35|Europe in 305 AD]]
The term '''Romano-Germanic''' describes the conflation of [[w:Culture of ancient Rome|Roman culture]] with that of various [[w:Germanic peoples|Germanic peoples]] in areas successively ruled by the Roman Empire and Germanic “[[w:barbarian monarchy|barbarian monarchies]]”. These include the kingdoms of the '''[[w:Visigoths|Visigoths]]''' (in [[w:Hispania|Hispania]] and [[w:Gallia Narbonensis|Gallia Narbonensis]]), the '''[[w:Ostrogoths|Ostrogoths]]''' (in [[w:Italia (Roman province)|Italia]], [[w:Sicilia (Roman province)|Sicilia]], [[w:Raetia|Raetia]], [[w:Noricum|Noricum]], [[w:Pannonia|Pannonia]], [[w:Dalmatia (Roman province)|Dalmatia]] and [[w:Roman Dacia|Dacia]]), the '''[[w:Anglo-Saxons|Anglo-Saxon]]''' kingdoms in [[w:Sub-Roman Britain|Sub-Roman Britain]], and finally the '''[[w:Franks|Franks]]''' who established the nucleus of the later “[[w:Holy Roman Empire|Holy Roman Empire]]” in [[w:Gallia Aquitania|Gallia Aquitania]], [[w:Gallia Lugdunensis|Gallia Lugdunensis]], [[w:Gallia Belgica|Gallia Belgica]], [[w:Germania Superior|Germania Superior]] and [[w:Germania Inferior|Inferior]], and parts of the previously unconquered [[w:Germania|Germania Magna]]. Additionally, minor Germanic tribes – the [[w:Vandals|Vandals]], the [[w:Suebi|Suebi]], the [[w:Burgundians|Burgundians]], the [[w:Alemanni|Alemanni]], and later the [[w:Lombards|Lombards]] − also established their kingdoms in Roman territory in the West.
 
Romano-Germanic cultural contact begins as early as the first Roman accounts of the Germanic peoples. Roman influence is perceptible beyond the boundaries of the empire, in the Northern European [[w:Roman Iron Age|Roman Iron Age]] of the first centuries AD. The nature of this cultural contact changes with the decline of the Roman Empire and the beginning [[w:Migration period|Migration period]] in the wake of the [[w:crisis of the third century|crisis of the third century]]: the “barbarian” peoples of Germania Magna formerly known as mercenaries and traders now came as invaders and eventually as a new ruling elite, even in Italy itself, beginning with [[w:Odoacer|Odoacer]]’s rise to the rank of ''[[w:King of Italy|Dux Italiae]]'' in 476 AD.
 
The cultural syncretism was most pronounced in [[w:Francia|Francia]]. In [[w:West Francia|West Francia]], the nucleus of what was to become [[w:France|France]], the [[w:Frankish language|Frankish language]] was eventually extinct, but not without leaving significant traces in the emerging [[w:Romance language|Romance language]]. In [[w:East Francia|East Francia]] on the other hand, the nucleus of what was to become the [[w:kingdom of Germany|kingdom of Germany]] and ultimately [[w:German-speaking Europe|German-speaking Europe]], the syncretism was less pronounced since only its southernmost portion had ever been part of the Roman Empire, as Germania Superior: all territories on the right hand side of the [[w:Rhine|Rhine]] remain Germanic-speaking. Those parts of the Germanic sphere extends along the left of the Rhine, including the [[w:Swiss plateau|Swiss plateau]], the [[w:Alsace|Alsace]], the [[w:Rhineland|Rhineland]] and [[w:Flanders|Flanders]], are the parts where Romano-Germanic cultural contact remains most evident.
 
[[w:Early Germanic law|Early Germanic law]] reflects the coexistence of Roman and Germanic cultures during the [[w:Migration period|Migration period]] in applying separate laws to [[w:Roman people|Roman]] and Germanic individuals, notably the ''[[w:Lex Romana Visigothorum|Lex Romana Visigothorum]]'' (506), the ''[[w:Lex Romana Curiensis|Lex Romana Curiensis]]'' and the ''Lex Romana Burgundionum''. The separate cultures amalgamated after [[w:Christianization|Christianisation]], and by the [[w:Carolingian Empire|Carolingian]] period the distinction of Roman vs. Germanic subjects had been replaced by the [[w:feudalism|feudal]] system of the  [[w:Estates of the realm|Three Estates of the Realm]].
 
With a renewed close attention to the history and literature of ancient Rome in the 12th century, the mediaeval [[w:Aristocracy|aristocracy]] saw itself mirrored in the accounts of ancient Roman nobility. Some made doubtful claims to direct descent from Roman aristocracy. In the 19th century, German, Luth and French mediaevalists worried about the origins of the great mediaeval families. Did the great families descend from the aristocracy of the Roman Empire or from the barbarian chieftains who invaded the Roman Empire between 400 and 600? Did the families originate in the Latin or Germanic world? Both, it seems. Mediaeval Western Europe was an amalgam of Roman and ‘Barbarian’ bloodlines. The cultural and genetic influence of the Visigoths, Franks, et al. is readily apparent in the socio-cultural and political framework of Mediaeval Europe. In spite of this, the legacy of Rome, both social-cultural and genetic pervaded every aspect of Mediaeval society – this was of course greatly assisted by the mediaeval Church.
 
The initial trouble for the later Roman Empire came from East Germanic speakers, with various tribal groups such as the Vandals and Burgundians traversing Europe. However, it was the Goths who notably contributed to the linguistic record of the East Germanic languages. Originating from the lower [[w:Vistula|Vistula]], they migrated to present-day [[w:Ukraine|Ukraine]]. Later, facing pressure from the [[w:Huns|Huns]], they moved into the [[w:Balkans|Balkans]] and eventually into [[w:Western Europe|Western Europe]]. Among them, the Visigoths settled in [[w:Spain|Spain]], shaping its post-Roman state, while the Ostrogoths became custodians of the last Roman emperors in Italy. By the eighth century, linguistic assimilation into Romance-speaking populations had largely absorbed the Goths of Spain and Italy. [[w:Ulfilas|Ulfilas]], a prominent Christian missionary and later bishop of the Visigoths, translated the Bible into Gothic while they resided in the northeast Balkans, providing a significant linguistic record of Gothic and East Germanic. A small group of Ostrogoths left in [[w:Crimea|Crimea]] resurfaced in the sixteenth century through a wordlist compiled by [[w:Ogier Ghiselin de Busbecq|Ogier de Busbecq]], the [[w:Holy Roman Emperor|Holy Roman Emperor’s]] ambassador to the [[w:Sublime Porte|Sublime Porte]]. However, these [[w:Crimean Gothic|Crimean Gothic]] speakers disappeared linguistically shortly after Busbecq documented their vocabulary.


===Gothic Luthic===
===Gothic Luthic===
Line 52: Line 124:
Only a few documents in Gothic Luthic have survived – not enough for a complete reconstruction of the language. Most Gothic Luthic-language sources are translations or glosses of other languages (namely, [[w:Koine Greek|Greek]] and [[w:Latin language|Latin]]), so foreign linguistic elements most certainly influenced the texts. Nevertheless, Gothic Luthic was probably very close to Gothic (it is known primarily from the [[w:Codex Argenteus|Codex Argenteus]], a 6th-century copy of a 4th-century [[w:Bible|Bible]] translation, and is the only East Germanic language with a sizeable [[w:Text corpus|text corpus]]). These are the primary sources:
Only a few documents in Gothic Luthic have survived – not enough for a complete reconstruction of the language. Most Gothic Luthic-language sources are translations or glosses of other languages (namely, [[w:Koine Greek|Greek]] and [[w:Latin language|Latin]]), so foreign linguistic elements most certainly influenced the texts. Nevertheless, Gothic Luthic was probably very close to Gothic (it is known primarily from the [[w:Codex Argenteus|Codex Argenteus]], a 6th-century copy of a 4th-century [[w:Bible|Bible]] translation, and is the only East Germanic language with a sizeable [[w:Text corpus|text corpus]]). These are the primary sources:
:* ''Codex Luthicus'' (Ravenna), two parts: 87 leaves
:* ''Codex Luthicus'' (Ravenna), two parts: 87 leaves
::It contains scattered passages from the New Testament (including parts of the gospels and the Epistles), from the Old Testament (Nehemiah), and some commentaries. The text likely had been somewhat modified by copyists. It was written using the [[w:Gothic alphabet|Gothic alphabet]], an alphabet used for writing the Gothic language. It was developed in the 4th century AD by [[w:Ulfilas|Ulfilas]] (or ''Wulfila''), a Gothic preacher of [[w:Cappadocian Greeks|Cappadocian Greek]] descent, for the purpose of [[w:Gothic Bible|translating the Bible]].
::It contains scattered passages from the New Testament (including parts of the gospels and the Epistles), from the Old Testament (Nehemiah), and some commentaries. The text likely had been somewhat modified by copyists. It was written using the [[w:Gothic alphabet|Gothic alphabet]], an alphabet used for writing the Gothic language. It was developed in the 4th century AD by Ulfilas (or [[wikt:Reconstruction:Gothic/𐍅𐌿𐌻𐍆𐌹𐌻𐌰|*𐍅𐌿𐌻𐍆𐌹𐌻𐌰]] (''Wulfila'')), a Gothic preacher of [[w:Cappadocian Greeks|Cappadocian Greek]] descent, for the purpose of [[w:Gothic Bible|translating the Bible]].
[[File:Luthiks.png|thumb|Detail of the ''Codex Luthicus'', the word ''Luþiks'' is attested, referring to the Luths]]
[[File:Luthiks.png|thumb|Detail of the ''Codex Luthicus'', the word ''Luþiks'' is attested, referring to the Luths]]


:* ''Codex Ravennas'' (Ravenna), four parts: 140 leaves
:* ''Codex Ravennas'' (Ravenna), four parts: 140 leaves
::A [[w:Civil code|Civil code]] enacted under [[w:Theodoric the Great|Theodoric the Great]]. The code covered the [[w:Ostrogothic Kingdom|Ostrogothic Kingdom of Italy]], but mainly Ravenna, as Theodoric devoted most of his architectural attention to his capital, Ravenna. Codex Ravennas was also written using the Gothic alphabet. The text likely had been somewhat modified by copyists. Together with four leaves, fragments of Romans 11–15 (a Luthic–Latin diglot).
::A [[w:Civil code|civil code]] enacted under [[w:Theodoric the Great|Theodoric the Great]]. The code covered the [[w:Ostrogothic Kingdom|Ostrogothic Kingdom of Italy]], but mainly Ravenna, as Theodoric devoted most of his architectural attention to his capital, Ravenna. Codex Ravennas was also written using the Gothic alphabet. The text likely had been somewhat modified by copyists. Together with four leaves, fragments of Romans 11–15 (a Luthic–Latin diglot).


===Mediaeval Luthic===
===Mediaeval Luthic===
In the mediaeval period, Luthic emerged as a separate language from Gothic. The main written language was Latin, and the few Luthic-language texts preserved from this period are written in the Latin alphabet. From the 7th to the 16th centuries, Mediaeval Luthic gradually transformed through language contact with [[w:Italian language|Old Italian]], [[w:Lombardic language|Langobardic]] and [[w:Frankish language|Frankish]]. During the [[w:Carolingian Empire|Carolingian Empire]] (773–774), [[w:Charles Martel|Charles]] conquered the [[w:Lombards|Lombards]] and thus included northern Italy in his sphere of influence. He renewed the [[w:Roman Curia|Vatican]] donation and the promise to the papacy of continued Frankish protection. Frankish was very strong, until [[w:Louis the Pious|Louis’]] eldest surviving son [[w:Lothair I|Lothair I]] became Emperor in name but ''de facto only'' the ruler of the [[w:Middle Francia|Middle Frankish Kingdom]].
[[File:Mediaeval luthic.png|thumb|left|'''The first sentence is:''' “''Luthica unsara rasda ist, e scolamos defendere unsarǫ raihtǫ di usare la rasda fremente, l’italiano nogca sarat l’unsara rasda fragca, car gli italiani non unse rispetanno.''” <br />'''English:''' “Luthic is our language, and we must defend our right to use it freely, Italian will never be our language, as the Italians don’t respect us”]]
[[File:Mediaeval luthic.png|thumb|'''The first sentence is:''' “''Luthica unsara rasda ist, e scolamos defendere unsarǫ raihtǫ di usare la rasda fremente, l’italiano nogca sarat l’unsara rasda fragca, car gli italiani non unse rispetanno.''” '''English translation:''' “Luthic is our language, and we must defend our right to use it freely, Italian will never be our language, as the Italians don’t respect us”]]
In the mediaeval period, Luthic emerged as a separate language from Latin and Gothic. The main written language was Latin, and the few Luthic-language texts preserved from this period are written in the Latin alphabet. From the 7th to the 16th centuries, Mediaeval Luthic gradually transformed through language contact with [[w:Italian language|Old Italian]], [[w:Lombardic language|Langobardic]] and [[w:Frankish language|Frankish]]. During the [[w:Carolingian Empire|Carolingian Empire]] (773–774), [[w:Charles Martel|Charles]] conquered the [[w:Lombards|Lombards]] and thus included northern Italy in his sphere of influence. He renewed the [[w:Roman Curia|Vatican]] donation and the promise to the papacy of continued Frankish protection. Frankish was very strong, until [[w:Louis the Pious|Louis’]] eldest surviving son [[w:Lothair I|Lothair I]] became Emperor in name but ''de facto only'' the ruler of the [[w:Middle Francia|Middle Frankish Kingdom]].
 
After the fall of Middle Francia and the rise of [[w:Kingdom of Italy (Holy Roman Empire)|Holy Roman Empire]], [[w:Louis II of Italy|Louis II]] conquered [[w:Louis II's campaign against Bari (866–871)|Bari in 871]] led to poor relations with the [[w:Eastern Roman Empire|Eastern Roman Empire]], which led to a lesser degree of the Greek influence present in Luthic. At this time, Luthic eventually dropped the Gothic alphabet and adopted the Latin alphabet, that still lacked some letters present in the Gothic script, such as ⟨j⟩ and ⟨w⟩, and there was no ⟨v⟩ as distinct from ⟨u⟩. Through the 810s, Luthic eventually borrowed ⟨þ⟩ into its orthography, displacing ⟨θ⟩ and ⟨ψ⟩, that were used in free variation to represent the [[w:Voiceless dental fricative|voiceless dental fricative /θ/]], in fact, the modern Luthic orthography still lacks  ⟨j⟩, ⟨k⟩ and ⟨w⟩ for those reasons, in some manuscripts, ⟨y⟩ is found representing the [[w:Voiced labiodental fricative|voiced labiodental fricative /v/]] and the [[w:Voiced bilabial fricative|voiced bilabial fricative /β/]], probably influenced by the Gothic letter ⟨𐍅⟩.


===Late Mediaeval Luthic===
===Late Mediaeval Luthic===
Following the first Bible translation, the development of Luthic as a [[w:Written language|written language]], as a language of religion, administration, and public discourse accelerated. In the second half of the 17th century, grammarians elaborated grammars of Luthic, first among them Þiudareico Bianchi’s 1657 Latin grammar ''De studio linguæ luthicæ''.
{{Quote box |align=right|quoted=true |
|salign=right
|quote=''Fraugiani e Narri hanno rasda fre.'' <br /> “Lords and jesters have free speech.”
|source= Giuseppe il Lûthicu, proverbs
}}
Following the first Bible translation, the development of Luthic as a [[w:Written language|written language]], as a language of religion, administration, and public discourse accelerated. In the second half of the 17th century, grammarians elaborated grammars of Luthic, first among them Þiudareicu Biagci’s 1657 Latin grammar '''''De studio linguæ luthicæ'''''. Late Mediaevel Luthic saw significant changes to its vocabulary, grammar, pronunciation and orthography. An eventual form of written Standard Luthic emerged c. 1730, and a large number of terms for abstract concepts were adopted directly from [[w:Medieval Latin|Mediaeval Latin]] (as adapted borrowings, rather than via the native form or Italian). What is known as Standard Ravennese Luthic began in the 1750s after the printing and wide distribution of [[w:Prayer book|prayer books]] and other kinds of [[w:Liturgical book|liturgical books]] in Luthic, after the works of Þiudareicu and his essays about the Luthic language and its written form.
 
====''De Studio Linguæ Luthicæ''====
[[File:De studio linguae luthicae.png|thumb|left|''De Studio Linguæ Luthicæ'', 1657, restored cover at the Luthic Community of Ravenna.]]
'''''De Studio Linguæ Luthicæ''''' (Luthic: ''Studia Rasde Lûthice'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈstu.dja ˈraz.de ˈlu.ti.t͡ʃe]]]; English: ''On Study of the Luthic Language'') often referred to as simply the '''''Luthicæ''''' ([[w:Help:IPA|/lʌˈθiˌki, lʌθˈaɪˌki/]] [[w:Help:Pronunciation respelling key|''lu-THEE-KEE'']]), is a book by Þiudareicu Biagci that expounds Luthic grammar. The Luthicæ is written in Latin (specifically [[w:Neo-Latin|'''Neo-Latin''']]) and comprises two volumes, it was authorised, [[w:Imprimatur|imprimatur]], by [[w:Pope Alexander VII|Pope Alexander VII]], then head of the [[w:Catholic Church|Catholic Church]] on 1956, and was first published on 9 September 1657.


====De Studio Linguæ Luthicæ====
The ''Luthicæ'' is considered one of the most importants in the history of Luthic linguistics. In the first book, Þiudareicu discusses the relationship between Latin and the vernacular languages within Italy. His work made new innovations, as it included diglot lemmata, and it was also significant how Þiudareicu approached this theme (a not so common topic at that time), the ''Luthicæ'' and the general opinion of Þiudareicu was greatly influenced by [[w:Dante Alighieri|Dante Alighieri]], as he agreed with Dante, that languages were not something to be considered static, but something that evolves and need historical contextualisation.
''De Studio Linguæ Luthicæ'' (English: On Study of the Luthic Language) often referred to as simply the ''Luthicæ'' ({{IPA|/lʌˈθiˌki, lʌθˈaɪˌki/}}), is a book by Þiudareico Bianchi that expounds Luthic grammar. The Luthicæ is written in Latin and comprises two volumes, and was first published on 9 September 1657.


====Book 1, ''De grammatica''====
=====Book 1, ''De grammatica''=====
Book 1, subtitled ''De grammatica'' (On grammar) concerns fundamental grammar features present in Luthic. It opens a collection of examples and Luthic–Latin diglot lemmata.
Book 1, subtitled '''''De grammatica''''' (''On grammar'') concerns fundamental grammar features present in Luthic and how it changed from Latin, Þiudareicu takes on historical evolution of language, although his opinion was greatly affected by the building of the [[w:Tower of Babel|Tower of Babel]], his ideas were not so far off what we know nowadays, however, he classified [[w:Uralic languages|Uralic languages]] as [[w:Indo-European languages|Indo-European languages]]. It opens a collection of examples and Luthic–Latin diglot lemmata.


====Book 2, ''De orthographia''====
=====Book 2, ''De orthographia''=====
Book 2, subtitled ''De orthographia'' (On orthography), is an exposition of the many vernacular orthographies Luthic had, and eventual suggestions for a universal orthography.
Book 2, subtitled '''''De orthographia''''' (''On orthography''), is an exposition of the many vernacular orthographies Luthic had, and eventual suggestions for a universal orthography, he took inspiration from rhetorical essays written in [[w:Occitan language|Occitan]], such as manuals of grammar and writting for [[w:Troubadour|troubadour]] poetry in order to elaborate his orthography, he was also familar with [[w:Encyclopedic dictionary|encyclopaedic dictionaries]] that influenced his work. He also deals with literary genres, and defends that Luthic must be also used as a vernacular for song and verse, in order to displace other vernacular languages, such as Occitan, Sicilian and Italian.
[[File:De studio linguae luthicae.png|thumb|Remounted cover, at Luthic Community of Ravenna]]
 
==Etymology==
The name of the Luths is hugely linked to the name of the Goths, itself one of the most discussed topics in Germanic philology. The [[w:Endonym and exonym|autonym]] is attested as [[wikt:𐌲𐌿𐍄𐌸𐌹𐌿𐌳𐌰#Gothic|𐌲𐌿𐍄𐌸𐌹𐌿𐌳𐌰]] (''gutþiuda'') (the status of this word as a Gothic autonym prior to the [[w:Ostrogoths|Ostrogothic]] period is disputed) on the Gothic calendar (in the [[w:Codices Ambrosiani|''Codex Ambrosianus A'']]): ''þize ana gutþiudai managaize marwtre jah friþareikeikeis''. However, on the basis of parallel formations in Germanic ([[wikt:Svíþjóð#Old_Norse|''svíþjóð'']]; [[wikt:Angelþeod#Old_English|''angelþēod'']]) and non-Germanic (Old Irish ''cruithen-tuath'') indicates that it means “land of the Goths, ''Gothia''”, instead of a more literal translation “Gothpeople”. The first element however may be also the same element attested on the [[w:Ring of Pietrossa|Ring of Pietrossa]] ᚷᚢᛏᚨᚾᛁ (''gutanī''). Roman authors of late antiquity did not classify the Goths as ''Germani''. While the [[w:Gutones|Gutones]], the Pomeranian precursors of the Goths, and the ''Vandili'', the Silesian ancestors of the Vandals, were still considered part of Tacitean Germania, the later Goths, Vandals, and other East Germanic tribes were differentiated from the Germans and were referred to as [[w:Scythians|Scythians]], Goths, or some other special names. The sole exception are the Burgundians, who were considered German because they came to [[w:Gaul|Gaul]] via Germania. In keeping with this classification, post-Tacitean Scandinavians were also no longer counted among the Germans, even though they were regarded as close relatives. The word for Luthic is first attested as 𐌻𐌿𐌸𐌹𐌺𐍃 (''luþiks'') on the ''Codex Luthicus'', named after so. The name was probably first recorded via [[w:Greco-Roman world|Greco-Roman]] writers, as *''Lūthae'', a formation similar to [[w:Getae|''Getae'']], itself derived from [[wikt:Reconstruction:Proto-Germanic/leuhtą#Proto-Germanic|*''leuhtą'']]. Ultimately meaning ''the lighters''.  𐌻𐌿𐌸𐌹𐌺𐍃 is probably a corruption *''leuhtą'', *''leuthą'', *''Lūthae'', influenced by [[wikt:gothus#Latin|''gothus'']], then reborrowed via a Germanic language, where *''-th-'' > ''-þ-''.


==Geographical distribution==
==Geographical distribution==
{{Infobox country
| name = Ravenna
| native_name = Ravèna <small>[[w:Emilian dialects|Emilian]]</small>, Ravêna <small>[[w:Romagnol|Romagnol]]</small><br >Ravenna <small>[[w:Italian language|Italian]]</small>, Ravenna <small>Luthic</small>
| demonym = Ravennate, Ravennese
| image_flag = Lutho-Ravennese Flag.png
| image_map = Italy_provincial_location_map_2016.svg
| image_map2 = Italy_Emilia-Romagna_location_map.svg
| motto = “Semper vigil, nunquam dormiens” <small>[[w:Latin|Latin]]</small><br >“Aeve allerta, nogca dormindo” <small>Luthic</small>
| englishmotto = “Always aware, never sleeping”
| official_languages = Luthic, [[w:Emilian dialects|Emilian]], [[w:Romagnol|Romagnol]], [[w:Italian language|Italian]]
| ethnic_groups = Luths, [[w:Italians|Italians]]
| religion = [[w:Christianity in Italy|Christianity]]
| patron_saints = [[w:Apollinaris of Ravenna|Saint Apollinaris]]
| loctext = 44°24′58″N 12°12′06″E
| population_estimate = 158,784 (1 January 2014)
<!-- | population_density_km2 = -->
| currency = [[w:Euro|Euro]] ([[w:Euro sign|€]])
| calling_code = +39-544
| official_website = [http://www.comune.ravenna.it Official website]
| time_zone = [[w:Central European Time|CET]]
| date_format = dd.mm.yyyy
}}
[[File:Italy languages Luthic.jpg|thumb|left|Map of languages and dialect groups of Italy]]
Luthic is spoken mainly in [[w:Emilia-Romagna|Emilia-Romagna]], Italy, where it is primarily spoken in Ravenna and its adjacent [[w:Municipality|communes]]. Although Luthic is spoken almost exclusively in Emilia-Romagna, it has also been spoken outside of Italy. [[w:Emigration|Luth and general Italian emigrant communities]] (the largest of which are to be found in the [[w:Americas|Americas]]) sometimes employ Luthic as their primary language. The largest concentrations of Luthic speakers are found in the [[w:Province|provinces]] of Ravenna, Ferrara and Bologna ([[w:Metropolitan City of Bologna|Metropolitan City of Bologna]]). The people of Ravenna live in [[w:Diglossia|tetraglossia,]] as Romagnol, Emilian and Italian are spoken in those provinces alongside Luthic.
Luthic is spoken mainly in [[w:Emilia-Romagna|Emilia-Romagna]], Italy, where it is primarily spoken in Ravenna and its adjacent [[w:Municipality|communes]]. Although Luthic is spoken almost exclusively in Emilia-Romagna, it has also been spoken outside of Italy. [[w:Emigration|Luth and general Italian emigrant communities]] (the largest of which are to be found in the [[w:Americas|Americas]]) sometimes employ Luthic as their primary language. The largest concentrations of Luthic speakers are found in the [[w:Province|provinces]] of Ravenna, Ferrara and Bologna ([[w:Metropolitan City of Bologna|Metropolitan City of Bologna]]). The people of Ravenna live in [[w:Diglossia|tetraglossia,]] as Romagnol, Emilian and Italian are spoken in those provinces alongside Luthic.


According to a census by [[w:Italian National Institute of Statistics|ISTAT]] (The Italian National Institute of Statistics), Luthic is spoken by an estimated 250,000 people, however only 149,500 are considered ''de facto'' natives, and approximately 50,000 are monolinguals.
According to a census by [[w:Italian National Institute of Statistics|ISTAT]] (The Italian National Institute of Statistics), Luthic is spoken by an estimated 250,000 people, however only 149,500 are considered ''de facto'' natives, and approximately 50,000 are monolinguals.


===Status===
It is also spoken in [[w:South America|South America]] by the descendants of Italian immigrants, specifically in [[w:Brazil|Brazil]], in a census by [[w:Brazilian Institute of Geography and Statistics|IBGE]] in collaboration with ISTAT, Luthic is spoken in [[w:São Paulo (state)|São Paulo]] by roughly 5,000 people and some 45 of whom are monolinguals, the largest concentrations are found in the municipalities of [[w:São Paulo|São Paulo]] and the [[w:ABC Region|ABCD Region]].
 
===Status and usage===
[[File:Luthic_language_worldwide.png|thumb|left|Geographical distribution of Luthic language by official status]]
As in most European countries, the minority languages are defined by legislation or constitutional documents and afforded some form of official support. In 1992, the Council of Europe adopted the European Charter for Regional or Minority Languages to protect and promote historical regional and minority languages in Europe.
As in most European countries, the minority languages are defined by legislation or constitutional documents and afforded some form of official support. In 1992, the Council of Europe adopted the European Charter for Regional or Minority Languages to protect and promote historical regional and minority languages in Europe.


Luthic is regulated by the '''Council for the Luthic Language''' (Luthic: ''Gafaurdo faul·la Rasda Lûthica'' {{IPA|[ɡɐˈfɔɾ.du fɔl‿lɐ ˈʁaz.dɐ ˈlu.tʰi.xɐ]}}) and the '''Luthic Community of Ravenna''' (Luthic: ''Gamainescape Lûthica Ravennai'' {{IPA|[ɡɐˌmɛ.neˈska.fe ˈlu.tʰi.xɐ ʁɐˈvẽ.]}}). The existence of a regulatory body has removed Luthic, at least in part, from the domain of Standard Italian, its traditional [[w:Abstand and ausbau languages|Dachsprache]], Luthic was considered an Italian dialect like many others until about [[w:World War II|World War II]], but then it underwent [[w:Abstand and ausbau languages|ausbau]].
Luthic is regulated by the '''Council for the Luthic Language''' (Luthic: ''Gafaurdu faulla Rasda Lûthica'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɡɐˈɸɔr.du fɔl.lɐ ˈraz.dɐ ˈlu.ti.xɐ]]]) and the '''Luthic Community of Ravenna''' (Luthic: ''Gamaenescape Lûthica Ravenne'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɡɐˌmɛ.neˈska.ɸe ˈlu.ti.xɐ rɐˈβẽ.ne]]]). The existence of a regulatory body has removed Luthic, at least in part, from the domain of Standard Italian, its traditional ''Dachsprache'', Luthic was considered an Italian dialect like many others until about [[w:World War II|World War II]], but then it underwent [[w:Abstand and ausbau languages|ausbau]].
[[File:Spoken Luthic Ravenna.png|thumb|Luthic geographical distribution in the commune of Ravenna]]
[[File:Spoken Luthic Ravenna.png|thumb|Luthic geographical distribution in the commune of Ravenna]]
====Diglossia and code-switching====
Luthic is recognised as a minor language in Ravenna. Italy’s official language is Italian, as stated by the framework law no. 482/1999 and Trentino Alto-Adige’s special Statute, which is adopted with a constitutional law. Around the world there are an estimated 64 million native Italian speakers and another 21 million who use it as a second language. Italian is often natively spoken in a [[w:Regional Italian|regional variety]], not to be confused with Italy’s regional and minority languages; however, the establishment of a national education system led to a decrease in variation in the languages spoken across the country during the 20th century. Standardisation was further expanded in the 1950s and 1960s due to economic growth and the rise of [[w:Mass media in Italy|mass media]] and television (the state broadcaster [[w:RAI|RAI]] helped set a standard Italian).
[[w:Code-switching|Code-switching]] between Luthic, Emilian dialects and Italian is frequent among Luthic speakers, in both informal and formal settings (such as on television).
=====Education=====
Education in Italy is free and mandatory from ages six to sixteen, and consists of five stages: kindergarten (''scuola dell’infanzia''), primary school (''scuola primaria''), lower secondary school (''scuola secondaria di primo grado''), upper secondary school (''scuola secondaria di secondo grado''), and university (''università''). Although mostly in Italian, education is Luthic has been implemented in 2018 by Ravenna University. In 2018, the Italian secondary education was evaluated as below the [[w:OECD|OECD]] average. Italy scored below the [[w:OECD|OECD]] average in reading and science, and near OECD average in mathematics. Mean performance in Italy declined in reading and science, and remained stable in mathematics. [[w:Trento|Trento]] and [[w:Bolzano|Bolzano]] scored at an above the national average in reading. Compared to school children in other [[w:OECD|OECD]] countries, children in Italy missed out on a greater amount of learning due to absences and indiscipline in classrooms. A wide gap exists between [[w:northern Italy|northern]] schools, which perform near average, and schools in the [[w:Southern Italy|South]], that had much poorer results. The 2018 [[w:Progress in International Reading Literacy Study|Progress in International Reading Literacy Study]] ranks children in Italy 16th for reading. Compared to school children in other [[w:OECD|OECD]] countries, children in Italy missed out on a greater amount of learning due to absences and indiscipline in classrooms.
Most of the Luths also speak Italian, this is commoner for Luth elders, and most of the Luth elders may speak only Italian because of the influence from the Fascist period, as the Fascist government endorsed a stringent education policy in Italy aiming at eliminating illiteracy, which was a serious problem in Italy at the time, as well as improving the allegiance of Italians to the state. The Fascist government’s first minister of education from 1922 to 1924 [[w:Giovanni Gentile|Giovanni Gentile]] recommended that education policy should focus on indoctrination of students into Fascism and to educate youth to respect and be obedient to authority. In 1929, education policy took a major step towards being completely taken over by the agenda of indoctrination.> In that year, the Fascist government took control of the authorization of all textbooks, all secondary school teachers were required to take an oath of loyalty to Fascism and children began to be taught that they owed the same loyalty to Fascism as they did to God. In 1933, all university teachers were required to be members of the National Fascist Party. From the 1930s to 1940s, Italy’s education focused on the history of Italy displaying Italy as a force of civilization during the [[w:Ancient Rome|Roman]] era, displaying the rebirth of [[w:Italian nationalism|Italian nationalism]] and the struggle for Italian independence and unity during the ''[[w:Risorgimento|Risorgimento]]''. In the late 1930s, the Fascist government copied [[w:Nazi Germany|Nazi Germany]]’s education system on the issue of physical fitness and began an agenda that demanded that Italians become physically healthy. Intellectual talent in Italy was rewarded and promoted by the Fascist government through the [[w:Royal Academy of Italy|Royal Academy of Italy]] which was created in 1926 to promote and coordinate Italy’s intellectual activity.
=====Films and music=====
Most films and songs are in vernacular Italian, Luthic is seldom spoken in television and radio. Some educational shows hosted by the Luthic Community of Ravenna and Ravenna University are often in Standard Luthic. Italian folk music is an important part of the country’ musical heritage, and spans a diverse array of regional styles, instruments and dances. Instrumental and vocal classical music is an iconic part of Italian identity, spanning experimental art music and international fusions to symphonic music and opera. Italian music has been held up in high esteem in history and many pieces of Italian music are considered high art. More than other elements of Italian culture, music is generally eclectic, but unique from other nations’ music. The country’s historical contributions to music are also an important part of national pride. The relatively recent history of Italy includes the development of an opera tradition that has spread throughout the world; prior to the development of Italian identity or a unified Italian state, the Italian peninsula contributed to important innovations in music including the development of [[w:Musical notation|musical notation]] and [[w:Gregorian chant|Gregorian chant]].
Similar to the [[w:Canzone Napoletana|Canzone Napoletana]], '''Le Canzoni Lûthice''', sometimes referred to as '''Luthic songs''', became a formal institution in the 1990s as Luthic became more researched by Ravenna University, a generic term for a traditional form of music sung in the Luthic language, ordinarily for male and female voice singing solo. An important factor in defining what makes a Luthic song is the matter of language. All these songs are written and performed in the Luthic language. Although the music is sung by a few non-Luthic singers, it is difficult to sing correctly without knowledge of the Luthic ''continua'', which is crucial in obtaining the correct inflection.
=====Written media=====
[[File:Luthic_comic.jpg|thumb|A panel from the Luthic edition of [[w:Batman: Three Jokers|''Batman: Three Jokers'']]]]
Luthic is mostly found as written media, However newspapers usually use Italian and reserve Luthic for sarcastic commentaries and caricatures. [[w:Headline|Headlines]] in Luthic are common. The [[w:Letter to the editor|letter to the editor]] section often includes entire paragraphs in Luthic. Many newspapers also regularly publish personal columns in Luthic. Most comedies are written in Luthic. [[w:Comic book|Comic books]] are often written in Luthic instead of Italian. Luthic also has many translated editions of [[w:American comic book|American comic books]], specifically the ones published by [[w:DC Comics|DC Comics]]. In novels and short stories, most of the Luth authors, write the dialogues in their Luthic dialects.
Within Luthic poetry, the [[w:Iamb (poetry)|iambic verse]] is a very popular choice together with [[w:Trochee|trochaic verses]], a very famous Luthic poem, known as '''Manu ad Amare''' “ready to love”, by Lucia Giamane, is composed of two iambic [[w:Quatrain|quatrains]], with a rhyme scheme of ABAB:
{{Col-begin|80%}}
{{col-n|3}}
<poem style="font-style: italic">
:::: '''Manu ad Amare'''
:: Il caldu nattu non ist scaunu...
:: i meini occhi sondo biendi.
:: E sei, il ciaelu stâþ lontanu,
:: ac saeco bene, i astri fedi.
:: Il varmu dagu tan vicinu
:: m’aprosto faur þuc, þeini piedi.
:: La meina Teiva, casta e manu,
:: sarebbi ic manu faur amardi?
</poem>
{{col-n|3}}
<poem>
:::: '''English translation'''
:: The cold night is not beautiful...
:: my eyes are blind.
:: And yes, the sky is far away,
:: but I see well, the stars of faith.
:: The warm day so near
:: I stand forth you, (and) your feet.
:: My Goddess, pure and ready
:: (but) would I be ready to love you?
</poem>
{{col-n|3}}
<poem>
:::: '''Poetic translation'''
:: Not wonderful is the cold night
:: with mine eyes blinded.
:: The sky far away is not a delight,
:: but I see, the stars of faith, elevated.
:: So near is the warm light
:: For thee and thy feet I standed
:: My chaste Goddess, ready and bright
:: Would I be ready to love thee prided?
</poem>
{{Col-end}}
The metric scheme:
{{Col-begin|80%}}
{{col-n|2}}
<poem style="font-style: italic">
:: il CAL-du NAT-tu NON ist SCAU-nu
:: 1  2-3    4-5    6  7  8-nu
:: i MEI-ni OC-chi SON-do BIEN-di
:: 1 2-3    4-5    6-7    8-di
:: e SEI il  CIAE-lu STÂÞ lon-TA-nu
:: 1 2  3  4-5    6    7-8-nu
:: ac SAE-co BE-ne*i AS-tri FE-di
:: 1  2-3    4-5  5 6-7    8-di
</poem>
{{col-n|2}}
<poem style="font-style: italic">
il VAR-mu DA-gu TAN vi-CI-nu
1  2-3    4-5  6  7-8-nu
m’a-PROS-to FAUR þuc ÞEI-ni PIE-di
1-2-3      4    5  6-7    8-di
la MEI-na TEI-va CAS-ta*e MA-nu
1  2-3    4-5    6-7    7 8-nu
sa-REB-bi*ic MA-nu FAUR a-MAR-di
1-2    3  4-5  6    7-8-di
</poem>
{{Col-end}}
::: * [[w:Synalepha|synaloepha]]
Poetry in Luthic is often governed by [[w:Decasyllable|decasyllabic verses]], but the usage of [[w:Octosyllable|octosyllabic verses]] has become commoner in modern and contemporaneous Luthic poetry. Modern Luthic poets often rely on [[w:Synalepha|synaloephae]] for better metrics.


===Luthic regarded as an Italian dialect===
===Luthic regarded as an Italian dialect===
Luthic lexicon is discrepant from those of other Romance languages, since most of the words present in Modern Luthic are ultimately of Germanic origin. The lexical differentiation was a big factor for the creation of an independent regulatory body. There were many attempts to assimilate Luthic into the Italian [[w:Dialect continuum|dialect continuum]], as in recent centuries, the intermediate dialects between the major Romance languages have been moving toward [[w:Language death|extinction]], as their speakers have switched to varieties closer to the more prestigious national standards. That has been most notable in [[w:France|France]], owing to the French government’s [[w:Language policy in France|refusal to recognise minority languages]]. For many decades since Italy’s unification, the attitude of the French government towards the ethnolinguistic minorities was copied by the Italian government. A movement called “Italianised Luthic Movement” (Luthic: ''Movimento Lûthicai Italianegiatai''; Italian: ''Movimento per il Lutico Italianeggiato'') tried to italianase Luthic’s vocabulary and reduce the inherited Germanic vocabulary, in order to assimilate Luthic as an Italian derived language; modern Luthic orthography was affected by this movement.
[[File:Lang Status 80-VU.svg|thumb|Luthic is classified as Vulnerable by the [[w:Atlas of the World's Languages in Danger|UNESCO Atlas of the World's Languages in Danger]]]]
Luthic lexicon is discrepant from those of other Romance languages, since most of the words present in Modern Luthic are ultimately of Germanic origin. The lexical differentiation was a big factor for the creation of an independent regulatory body. There were many attempts to assimilate Luthic into the Italian [[w:Dialect continuum|dialect continuum]], as in recent centuries, the intermediate dialects between the major Romance languages have been moving toward [[w:Language death|extinction]], as their speakers have switched to varieties closer to the more prestigious national standards. That has been most notable in [[w:France|France]], owing to the French government’s [[w:Language policy in France|refusal to recognise minority languages]]. For many decades since Italy’s unification, the attitude of the French government towards the ethnolinguistic minorities was copied by the Italian government. A movement called “Italianised Luthic Movement” (Luthic: ''Movimento Lûthice Italianegiate''; Italian: ''Movimento per il Lutico Italianeggiato'') tried to italianase Luthic’s vocabulary and reduce the inherited Germanic vocabulary, in order to assimilate Luthic as an Italian derived language; modern Luthic orthography was affected by this movement.


Almost all of the Romance languages spoken in Italy are native to the area in which they are spoken. Apart from Standard Italian, these languages are often referred to as [[w:Italian dialects|''dialetti'']] “dialects”, both colloquially and in scholarly usage; however, the term may coexist with other labels like “minority languages” or “vernaculars” for some of them. Italian was first declared to be Italy's official language during the [[w:Fascist Italy|Fascist period]], more specifically through the R.D.l., adopted on 15 October 1925, with the name of ''Sull'Obbligo della lingua italiana in tutti gli uffici giudiziari del Regno, salvo le eccezioni stabilite nei trattati internazionali per la città di Fiume''. According to [[w:Atlas of the World's Languages in Danger|UNESCO's Atlas of the World's Languages in Danger]], there are 31 endangered languages in Italy.
Almost all of the Romance languages spoken in Italy are native to the area in which they are spoken. Apart from Standard Italian, these languages are often referred to as [[w:Italian dialects|''dialetti'']] “dialects”, both colloquially and in scholarly usage; however, the term may coexist with other labels like “''minority languages''” or “''vernaculars''” for some of them. Italian was first declared to be Italy's official language during the [[w:Fascist Italy|Fascist period]], more specifically through the R.D.l., adopted on 15 October 1925, with the name of ''Sull'Obbligo della lingua italiana in tutti gli uffici giudiziari del Regno, salvo le eccezioni stabilite nei trattati internazionali per la città di Fiume''. According to [[w:Atlas of the World's Languages in Danger|UNESCO's Atlas of the World's Languages in Danger]], there are 31 endangered languages in Italy.
[[File:Lang Status 80-VU.svg|thumb|Luthic is classified as Vulnerable by the [[w:Atlas of the World's Languages in Danger|UNESCO Atlas of the World's Languages in Danger]]]]


==Standard Luthic==
==Standard Luthic==
Line 98: Line 302:
Luthic has a shallow orthography, meaning very regular spelling with an almost one-to-one correspondence between letters and sounds. In linguistic terms, the writing system is close to being a [[w:Phonemic orthography|phonemic orthography]]. The most important of the few exceptions are the following (see below for more details):
Luthic has a shallow orthography, meaning very regular spelling with an almost one-to-one correspondence between letters and sounds. In linguistic terms, the writing system is close to being a [[w:Phonemic orthography|phonemic orthography]]. The most important of the few exceptions are the following (see below for more details):


* The letter c represents the sound /k/ at the end of words and before the letters a, o, and u but represents the sound /t͡ʃ/ before the letters e and i.
* The letter ⟨c⟩ represents the sound [[w:Voiceless velar plosive|/k/]] at the end of words and before the letters ⟨a⟩, ⟨o⟩, and ⟨u⟩ but represents the sound [[w:Voiceless postalveolar affricate|/t͡ʃ/]] before the letters ⟨e⟩ and ⟨i⟩.
* The letter g represents the sound /ɡ/ at the end of words and before the letters a, o, and u but represents the sound /d͡ʒ/ before the letters e and i. It also represents the sound /ŋ/ before c or g.
* The letter ⟨g⟩ represents the sound [[w:Voiced velar plosive|/ɡ/]] at the end of words and before the letters ⟨a⟩, ⟨o⟩, and ⟨u⟩ but represents the sound [[w:Voiced postalveolar affricate|/d͡ʒ/]] before the letters ⟨e⟩ and ⟨i⟩. It also represents the sound [[w:Voiced velar nasal|/ŋ/]] before ⟨c⟩, ⟨q⟩ or ⟨g⟩.
::* /ɡʷ/ only happens before a nasal and is spelled as ggu /ŋɡʷ/, or inherited from Gothic ''-ggw-'' as a regular outcome of [[w:Proto-Germanic language|Germanic]] ''*ww'': 𐍄𐍂𐌹𐌲𐌲𐍅𐍃 [triɡʷːs], ''tregguo'' [ˈtɾɛɡ.ɡʷu].
** Velar plosives after [[w:Voiced velar nasal|/ŋ/]] are not further palatalised to [[w:Voiceless postalveolar affricate|/t͡ʃ/]] or [[w:Voiced postalveolar affricate|/d͡ʒ/]].
* The letter r represents the sound /ʁ/ onset or stressed intervocalic, /ɾ/ when intervocalic or nearby another consonant or at the end of words and /ʀ/ if doubled.
*** For a palatalised [[w:Voiceless postalveolar affricate|/t͡ʃ/]] or [[w:Voiced postalveolar affricate|/d͡ʒ/]], ⟨n⟩ shall be used instead.
* The cluster sc /sk/ before the letters e and i represents the sound /ʃ/, [[w:Gemination|geminate]] if intervocalic.
** [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/ɡʷ/]] only happens before a nasal and is spelled as ⟨ggu⟩ [[w:Labialization|/ŋɡʷ/]], or inherited from Gothic ''-ggw-'' as a regular outcome of [[w:Proto-Germanic language|Germanic]] ''*ww'': [[wikt:𐍄𐍂𐌹𐌲𐌲𐍅𐍃#Gothic|𐍄𐍂𐌹𐌲𐌲𐍅𐍃]] [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[triɡʷːs]]], ''tregguu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈtrɛɡ.ɡʷu]]]. The spelling ⟨gg⟩ stands for both [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/ŋɡ/]] and [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/dd͡ʒ/]], making it further confunsing.
* The spellings ci and gi before another vowel represent only /t͡ʃ/ or /d͡ʒ/ with no /i/ sound.
* The cluster ⟨sc⟩ [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/sk/]] before the letters ⟨e⟩ and ⟨i⟩ represents the sound [[w:Voiceless postalveolar fricative|/ʃ/]], [[w:Gemination|geminate]] if intervocalic.
* The spelling qu and gu always represent the sounds /k/ and /ɡ/.
* The spellings ⟨ci⟩ and ⟨gi⟩ before another vowel represent only [[w:Voiceless postalveolar affricate|/t͡ʃ/]] or [[w:Voiced postalveolar affricate|/d͡ʒ/]] with no [[w:Close front unrounded vowel|/i/]] ~ [[w:Voiced palatal approximant|/j/]] sound.
* The spelling ġl and ġn represent the palatals /ʎ/ and /ɲ/ retrospectively; always geminate if intervocalic.
** Unless ⟨c⟩ or ⟨g⟩ precede stressed [[w:Close front unrounded vowel|/i/]] (''pharmacia'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/fɐr.mɐˈtʃi.ɐ/]] ‘pharmacy’, ''biologia'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/bjo.loˈdʒi.ɐ/]] ‘biology’), these may be optionally spelt as ⟨cï⟩ and ⟨gï⟩ (''pharmacïa'', ''biologïa'').
* The letter ⟨h⟩ is always silent. It is used to form a [[w:Digraph (orthography)|digraph]] with ⟨c⟩ or ⟨g⟩ to represent [[w:Voiceless velar plosive|/k/]] or [[w:Voiced velar plosive|/ɡ/]] before ⟨e⟩ or ⟨i⟩. It is also used with ⟨p⟩ to represent [[w:Voiceless bilabial fricative|/ɸ/]] and is found in some Greco-Roman words with ⟨t⟩ for [[w:Voiceless dental and alveolar plosives|/t/]] mostly for aesthetics only, however, when spelt as ⟨th⟩, it is never further spirantised to [[w:Voiceless dental fricative|/θ/]].
* The spelling ⟨ch⟩ and ⟨gh⟩ always represent the sounds [[w:Voiceless velar plosive|/k/]] and [[w:Voiced velar plosive|/ɡ/]].
* The spelling ⟨gli⟩ and ⟨gni⟩ represent the palatals [[w:Voiced palatal lateral approximant|/ʎ/]] and [[w:Voiced palatal nasal|/ɲ/]] retrospectively; always geminate if intervocalic.
** Like ⟨ci⟩ and ⟨gi⟩, [[w:Close front unrounded vowel|/i/]] ~ [[w:Voiced palatal approximant|/j/]] are only pronounced if stressed and ⟨glï⟩ and ⟨gnï⟩ may be used instead.
** If the clusters [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/ɡl/]] and [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/ɡn/]] are needed, they are spelt as ⟨gl⟩ and ⟨gn⟩ retrospectively, which may cause confusion with ⟨gli⟩ and ⟨gni⟩ apocopated forms ⟨gl⟩ and ⟨gn⟩.


The Luthic alphabet is considered to consist of 22 letters; j, k, w, x, y are excluded, and often avoided in loanwords, as ''tacċi'' vs ''taxi'', ''cċenophobo'' vs ''xenofobo'', ''geins'' vs ''jeans'', ''Giorque'' vs ''York'', ''Valsar'' vs ''Walsar'':
The Luthic alphabet is considered to consist of 24 letters; ⟨j, k, w, x, y⟩ are excluded, and often avoided in loanwords, as ''tassi'' vs [[wikt:taxi#English|''taxi'']], ''cenophobo'' vs [[wikt:xenofobo#Italian|''xenofobo'']], ''geins'' vs [[wikt:jeans#English|''jeans'']], ''Giorche'' vs [[wikt:York#English|''York'']], ''Valsar'' vs [[wikt:Walsar#German|''Walsar'']].


* The [[w:Circumflex|circumflex accent]] is used over vowels to indicate irregular stress.
* The [[w:Circumflex|circumflex accent]] is used over vowels to indicate irregular stress.
::* The digraphs ⟨ai, au, ei⟩ are used to indicate stressed /ɛ ɔ i/ retrospectively.
** The digraphs ⟨ae, au, ei⟩ are used to indicate [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/ɛ ɔ i/]] retrospectively;  ⟨ae, au, ei⟩ often stand for a stressed vowel.
::* In VCC structures and some Italian borrowings, the digraphs are not found.
** It is important to note that [[w:Close-mid front unrounded vowel|/e/]] and [[w:Close-mid back rounded vowel|/o/]] are often lowered to [[w:Open-mid front unrounded vowel|/ɛ/]] and [[w:Open-mid back rounded vowel|/ɔ/]] in VCC, and the digraphs are not used in that case.
* The [[w:Dot (diacritic)|overdot accent]] is used to over ⟨a, o⟩ to indicate coda /a o/.
::* The letter o always represents the sound /u/ in coda.
::* The overdot is also used over ⟨c, g⟩ to indicate [[w:Palatalization (sound change)|palatalisation]].
* The [[w:Diaeresis (diacritic)|diaeresis accent]] is used to distinguish from a [[w:Digraph (orthography)|digraph]] or a [[w:Diphthong|diphthong]].
* The [[w:Diaeresis (diacritic)|diaeresis accent]] is used to distinguish from a [[w:Digraph (orthography)|digraph]] or a [[w:Diphthong|diphthong]].
* The letter ⟨s⟩ can symbolise voiced or voiceless consonants. ⟨s⟩ symbolises /s/ onset before a vowel, when clustered with a voiceless consonant (⟨p, f, c, q⟩), and when doubled (geminate); it symbolises /z/ when between vowels and when clustered with voiced consonants.
* The letter ⟨s⟩ can symbolise voiced or voiceless consonants. ⟨s⟩ symbolises [[w:Voiceless alveolar fricative|/s/]] onset before a vowel, when clustered with a voiceless consonant (⟨p, f, c, q⟩), and when doubled (geminate); it symbolises [[w:Voiced alveolar fricative|/z/]] when between vowels and when clustered with voiced consonants.
::* Similarly, the letter ⟨z⟩ can symbolise voiced or voiceless consonants. ⟨z⟩ symbolises /t͡s/ onset before a vowel, when clustered with a voiceless consonant (⟨p, f, c, q⟩), and when doubled (geminate); it symbolises /d͡z/ when between vowels and when clustered with voiced consonants.
** Similarly, the letter ⟨z⟩ can symbolise voiced or voiceless consonants. ⟨z⟩ symbolises [[w:Voiceless alveolar affricate|/t͡s/]] onset before a vowel, when clustered with a voiceless consonant (⟨p, f, c, q⟩), and when doubled (geminate); it symbolises [[w:Voiced alveolar affricate|/d͡z/]] when between vowels (except in ''-zione'' suffixed nouns) and when clustered with voiced consonants. However, ⟨zz⟩ stands for both [[w:Gemination|/tt͡s/]] and [[w:Gemination|/dd͡z/]].
* The letter ⟨þ⟩ can symbolise voiced or voiceless consonants. ⟨þ⟩ symbolises [[w:Voiceless dental fricative|/θ/]] in all cases, except when clustered with a voiced consonant, standing for [[w:Voiced dental fricative|/ð/]].
* The status of the letter ⟨ð⟩ is debatable, and is one of the main reasons for common misspellings in Luthic, however, it is only used for etymological reasons, or when [[w:Voiced dental fricative|/ð/]] is needed in a position where [[w:Tuscan gorgia|Gorgia tuscana]] can not affect [[w:Voiced dental and alveolar plosives|/d/]] (vide [[Luthic#Lenition|§ Lenition]]). Nevertheless, many writers and scholars just ignore the existence of it.


{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
Line 123: Line 331:
|+ '''Standard Luthic Alphabet'''
|+ '''Standard Luthic Alphabet'''
|-
|-
| [[w:A|A]], a || a [ˈa] || asga [ˈaz.ɡɐ] || /ɐ/ or /a/ || â, ȧ
| [[w:A|A]], a || a [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈa]]] || asga [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈaz.ɡɐ]]] || [[w:Near-open central vowel|/ɐ/]] or [[w:Open central unrounded vowel|/a/]] || â
|-
| [[w:B|B]], b || bi [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbi]]] || baerca [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbɛr.kɐ]]] || [[w:Voiced bilabial plosive|/b/]] or [[w:Voiced bilabial fricative|/β/]] || —
|-
|-
| [[w:B|B]], b || bi [bi] || bairka [ˈbɛɾ.] || /b/ or /ʋ/ || —
| [[w:C|C]], c || ci [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈt͡ʃi]]] || cauno [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈk̠ɔ.no]]] || [[w:Voiceless velar plosive|/k/]], [[w:Voiceless postalveolar affricate|/t͡ʃ/]] or [[w:Voiceless velar fricative|/x/]] || —
|-
|-
| [[w:C|C]], c || ci [ˈt͡ʃi] || caunȯ [ˈkɔ.no] || /k/, /t͡ʃ/ or /x/ || ċ
| [[w:D|D]], d || di [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈdi]]] || dagu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈda.ɣu]]] || [[w:Voiced dental plosive|/d/]] or [[w:Voiced dental fricative|/ð/]] ||
|-
|-
| [[w:D|D]], d || di [ˈdi] ||dago [ˈda.ɣ˕u] || /d/ or /ð̞/ || —
| [[w:Eth|Ð]], ð || eððe [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɛð.ðe]]] || ∅ || [[w:Voiced dental fricative|/ð/]] || —
|-
|-
| [[w:E|E]], e || e [ˈɛ] || aiqqo [ˈɛk.kʷu] || /e/ or /ɛ/ || ê
| [[w:E|E]], e || e [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɛ]]] || aeqqu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɛk.kʷu]]] || [[w:Close-mid front unrounded vowel|/e/]] or [[w:Open-mid front unrounded vowel|/ɛ/]] || ê
|-
|-
| [[w:F|F]], f || effe [ˈɛf.fe] || faiho [ˈfɛ.hu] || /f/ or /p͡f/ || —
| [[w:F|F]], f || effe [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɛɸ.ɸe]]] || faeu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈfɛ.u]]] || [[w:Voiceless bilabial fricative|/ɸ/]] or [[w:Voiceless labiodental fricative|/f/]] || —
|-
|-
| [[w:G|G]], g || gi [ˈd͡ʒi] || giva [ˈd͡ʒi.] || /ɡ/, /ɣ˕/ or /ŋ/ || ġ
| [[w:G|G]], g || gi [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈd͡ʒi]]] || geva [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈd͡ʒe.βɐ]]] || [[w:Voiced velar plosive|/ɡ/]], [[w:Voiced postalveolar affricate|/d͡ʒ/]], [[w:Voiced velar fricative|/ɣ/]] or [[w:Voiced velar nasal|/ŋ/]] ||
|-
|-
| [[w:H|H]], h || acca [ˈak.kɐ] || haġlo [ˈhaʎ.ʎu] || /h/ or /ç/ || —
| [[w:H|H]], h || acca [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈak.kɐ]]] || hagliu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈaʎ.ʎu]]] || || —
|-
|-
| [[w:I|I]], i || i [ˈi] || eisso [ˈis.su] || /i/ or /j/ || ï
| [[w:I|I]], i || i [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈi]]] || eissu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈis.su]]] || [[w:Close front unrounded vowel|/i/]] or [[w:Voiced palatal approximant|/j/]] || ï
|-
|-
| [[w:L|L]], l || elle [ˈɛl.le] || lago [ˈla.ɣ˕u] || /l/ || —
| [[w:L|L]], l || elle [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɛl.le]]] || lagu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈla.ɣu]]] || [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar lateral approximants|/l/]] || —
|-
|-
| [[w:M|M]], m || emme [ˈẽ.me] || manno [ˈmɐ̃.nu] || /m/ || —
| [[w:M|M]], m || emme [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈẽ.me]]] || mannu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈmɐ̃.nu]]] || [[w:Voiced bilabial nasal|/m/]] || —
|-
|-
| [[w:N|N]], n || enne [ˈẽ.ne] || nauþo [ˈnɔ.θu] || /n/ || —
| [[w:N|N]], n || enne [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈẽ.ne]]] || nauþu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈnɔ.θu]]] || [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar nasals|/n/]] or [[w:Voiced velar nasal|/ŋ/]] || —
|-
|-
| [[w:O|O]], o || o [ˈɔ] || oþalȯ [oˈθa.lo] || /o/ or /ɔ/ || ô, ȯ
| [[w:O|O]], o || o [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɔ]]] || oþalo [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[oˈθa.lo]]] || [[w:Close-mid back rounded vowel|/o/]] or [[w:Open-mid back rounded vowel|/ɔ/]] || ô
|-
|-
| [[w:P|P]], p || pi [ˈpi] || pairþa [ˈpɛɾ.t͡θɐ] || /p/ or /f/ || —
| [[w:P|P]], p || pi [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈpi]]] || paerþa [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈpɛr.θɐ]]] || [[w:Voiceless bilabial plosive|/p/]] or [[w:Voiceless bilabial fricative|/ɸ/]] || —
|-
|-
| [[w:Q|Q]], q || qoppa [ˈkʷɔp.pɐ] || qairþa [ˈkʷɛɾ.t͡θɐ] || /kʷ/ || —
| [[w:Q|Q]], q || qoppa [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈkʷɔp.pɐ]]] || qaerþa [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈkᶣɛr.θɐ]]] || [[w:Labialization|/kʷ/]] || —
|-
|-
| [[w:R|R]], r || erre [ɛˈʀe] || raida [ˈʁɛ.ð̞ɐ] || /ʀ/, /ʁ/ or /ɾ/ || —
| [[w:R|R]], r || erre [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɛrˈre]]] || raeða [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈrɛ.ðɐ]]] || [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar trills|/r/]] || —
|-
|-
| [[w:S|S]], s || esse [ɛsˈse] || sauila [ˈsɔj.lɐ] || /s/, /t͡s/ or /z/ || —
| [[w:S|S]], s || esse [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɛsˈse]]] || sauila [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈsɔj.lɐ]]] || [[w:Voiceless alveolar fricative|/s/]] or [[w:Voiced alveolar fricative|/z/]] || —
|-
|-
| [[w:T|T]], t || ti [ˈti] || teivo [ˈti.vu] || /t/ or /θ/ || —
| [[w:T|T]], t || ti [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈti]]] || teivu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈti.βu]]] || [[w:Voiceless dental plosive|/t/]] or [[w:Voiceless dental fricative|/θ/]] || —
|-
|-
| [[w:Thorn (letter)|Þ]], þ || eþþe [ˈɛθ.θe] || þaurno [ˈθɔɾ.nu] || /θ/ or /t͡θ/ || —
| [[w:Thorn (letter)|Þ]], þ || eþþe [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɛθ.θe]]] || þaurnu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈθɔr.nu]]] || [[w:Voiceless dental fricative|/θ/]] or [[w:Voiced dental fricative|/ð/]] || —
|-
|-
| [[w:U|U]], u || u [ˈu] || uro [ˈu.ɾu] || /u/ or /w/ || û, ü
| [[w:U|U]], u || u [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈu]]] || uru [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈu.ru]]] || [[w:Close back rounded vowel|/u/]] or [[w:Voiced labial–velar approximant|/w/]] || û, ü
|-
|-
| [[w:V|V]], v || vi [ˈvi] || viġna [ˈviɲ.ɲɐ] || /v/ || —
| [[w:V|V]], v || vi [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈvi]]] || vignia [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈviɲ.ɲɐ]]] || [[w:Voiced bilabial fricative|/β/]] or [[w:Voiced labiodental fricative|/v/]] || —
|-
|-
| [[w:Z|Z]], z || zi [ˈt͡si] || zetta [ˈt͡sɛt.tɐ] || /t͡s/ or /d͡z/ || —
| [[w:Z|Z]], z || zi [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈt͡si]]] || zetta [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈt͡sɛt.tɐ]]] || [[w:Voiceless alveolar affricate|/t͡s/]] or [[w:Voiced alveolar affricate|/d͡z/]] || —
|}
|}
[[File:Luthic keyboard.png|thumb|A Luthic computer keyboard layout.]]
[[File:Luthic_keyboard_2.png|thumb|A Luthic computer keyboard layout.]]


Luthic has geminate, or double, consonants, which are distinguished by [[w:Length (phonetics)|length]] and intensity. Length is distinctive for all consonants except for /d͡z/, /ʎ/, /ɲ/, which are always geminate when between vowels, and /z/, which is always single. Geminate plosive and affricates are realised as lengthened closures. Geminate fricatives, nasals, and /l/ are realised as lengthened continuants. When triggered by [[w:Tuscan gorgia|Gorgia Toscana]], voiceless fricatives are always constrictive, but voiced fricatives are not very constrictive and often closer to approximants.
Luthic has geminate, or double, consonants, which are distinguished by [[w:Length (phonetics)|length]] and intensity. Length is distinctive for all consonants except for [[w:Voiced alveolar affricate|/d͡z/]], [[w:Voiced palatal lateral approximant|/ʎ/]] and [[w:Voiced palatal nasal|/ɲ/]], which are always geminate when between vowels, and [[w:Voiced alveolar fricative|/z/]], which is always single. Geminate plosive and affricates are realised as lengthened closures. Geminate fricatives, nasals, and [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar lateral approximants|/l/]] are realised as lengthened continuants. When triggered by [[w:Tuscan gorgia|Gorgia Toscana]], voiceless fricatives are always constrictive, but voiced fricatives are not very constrictive and often closer to approximants.


===Phonology===
===Phonology===
There is a maximum of 8 oral vowels, 5 nasal vowels, 2 semivowels and 35 consonants; though some varieties of the language have fewer phonemes. Gothic, Frankish, [[w:Suebi|northern Suebi]], Langobardic, [[w:Lepontic language|Lepontic]] and [[w:Cisalpine Gaulish|Cisalpine Gaulish]] ([[w:Roman Gaul|Roman Gaul]]) influences were highly absorbed into the local Vulgar Latin dialect. An early form of Luthic was already spoken in the Ostrogothic Kingdom during Theodoric’s reign and by the year 600 Luthic had already become the [[w:Vernacular|vernacular]] of Ravenna. Luthic developed in the region of the former Ostrogothic capital of Ravenna, from Late Latin dialects and Vulgar Latin. As Theodoric emerged as the new ruler of Italy, he upheld a Roman legal administration and scholarly culture while promoting a major building program across Italy, his cultural and architectural attention to Ravenna led to a most conserved dialect, resulting in modern Luthic.
There is a maximum of 8 oral vowels, 5 nasal vowels, 2 semivowels and 31 consonants; though some varieties of the language have fewer phonemes. [[w:Gothic language|Gothic]], [[w:Frankish language|Frankish]], [[w:Suebi|northern Suebi]], [[w:Lombardic language|Langobardic]], [[w:Lepontic language|Lepontic]] and [[w:Cisalpine Gaulish|Cisalpine Gaulish]] ([[w:Roman Gaul|Roman Gaul]]) influences were highly absorbed into the local Vulgar Latin dialect. An early form of Luthic was already spoken in the Ostrogothic Kingdom during Theodoric’s reign and by the year 600 Luthic had already become the [[w:Vernacular|vernacular]] of Ravenna. Luthic developed in the region of the former Ostrogothic capital of Ravenna, from Late Latin dialects and Vulgar Latin. As Theodoric emerged as the new ruler of Italy, he upheld a Roman legal administration and scholarly culture while promoting a major building program across Italy, his cultural and architectural attention to Ravenna led to a most conserved dialect, resulting in modern Luthic.
 
====Vowels====
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ '''Vowel phonemes of Standard Luthic'''
|-
!rowspan="2"|
!colspan="2"|[[w:Front vowel|Front]]
!colspan="2"|[[w:Central vowel|Central]]
!colspan="2"|[[w:Back vowel|Back]]
|-
!{{small|oral}}
!{{small|nasal}}
!{{small|oral}}
!{{small|nasal}}
!{{small|oral}}
!{{small|nasal}}
|-
![[w:Close vowel|Close]]
|[[w:Close front unrounded vowel|i]]
|[[w:Nasalization|ĩ]]
|
|
|[[w:Close back rounded vowel|u]]
|[[w:Nasalization|ũ]]
|-
![[w:Close-mid vowel|Close-mid]]
|[[w:Close-mid front unrounded vowel|e]]
|[[w:Nasalization|ẽ]]
|colspan="2"|
|[[w:Close-mid back rounded vowel|o]]
|[[w:Nasalization|õ]]
|-
![[w:Open-mid vowel|Open-mid]]
|[[w:Open-mid front unrounded vowel|ɛ]]
|
|[[w:Near-open central vowel|ɐ]]
|[[w:Nasalization|ɐ̃]]
|[[w:Open-mid back rounded vowel|ɔ]]
|
|-
![[w:Open vowel|Open]]
|colspan="2"|
|[[w:Open central unrounded vowel|a]]
|
|colspan="2"|
|}
 
=====Notes=====
[[File:Luthic oral vowels.png|thumb|[[w:Monophthong|Oral monophthongs]] of Standard Luthic]]
[[File:Luthic nasal vowels.png|thumb|[[w:Nasal vowel|Nasal monophthongs]] of Standard Luthic]]
When the mid vowels [[w:Help:IPA|/ε, ɔ/]] precede a nasal, they become close [[w:Help:IPA|[ẽ]]] rather than [[w:Help:IPA|[ε̃]]] and [[w:Help:IPA|[õ]]] rather than [[w:Help:IPA|[ɔ̃]]].
 
* /i/ is close front unrounded [[w:Close front unrounded vowel|[i]]]. <small>f1 =337 y f2 =2300; f1 =400 y f2 =2600 hz</small>.
* /ĩ/ is close front unrounded [[w:Close front unrounded vowel|[ĩ]]]. <small>f1 =337 y f2 =2300; f1 =400 y f2 =2600 hz</small>.
* /u/ is close back rounded [[w:Close back rounded vowel|[u]]]. <small>f1 =350 y f1 =1185; f1 =400 y f2 =925 hz</small>.
* /ũ/ is close back rounded [[w:Close back rounded vowel|[ũ]]]. <small>f1 =350 y f1 =1185; f1 =400 y f2 =925 hz</small>.
* /e/ is close-mid front unrounded [[w:Close-mid front unrounded vowel|[e]]]. <small>f1 =475 hz y f2 =1700 hz</small>.
* /ẽ/ is close-mid front unrounded [[w:Close-mid front unrounded vowel|[ẽ]]]. <small>f1 =475 hz y f2 =1700 hz</small>.
* /o/ is close-mid back rounded [[w:Close-mid back rounded vowel|[o]]]. <small>f1 =490 y f2 =1015; f1 =500 y f2=1075</small>.
* /õ/ is close-mid back rounded [[w:Close-mid back rounded vowel|[õ]]]. <small>f1 =490 y f2 =1015; f1 =500 y f2=1075</small>.
* /ɛ/ has been variously described as mid front unrounded [[w:Open-mid front unrounded vowel|[ɛ̝]]] and open-mid front unrounded [[w:Open-mid front unrounded vowel|[ɛ]]]. <small>f1 =700 hz y f2 =1800 hz</small>.
* /ɔ/ is somewhat fronted open-mid back rounded [[w:Open-mid back rounded vowel|[ɔ̟]]]. <small>f1 =555 hz y f2 =1100; f1 =600 hz y f2 =1100 hz</small>.
* /ɐ/ is near-open central unrounded [[w:Near-open central vowel|[ɐ]]]. f1 =700 y f2 =1300 hz; <small>f1 =715 hz y f2 =1400 hz</small>.
* /ɐ̃/ is near-open central unrounded [[w:Near-open central vowel|[ɐ̃]]]. f1 =700 y f2 =1300 hz; <small>f1 =715 hz y f2 =1400 hz</small>.
* /a/ has been variously described as open front unrounded [[w:Open central unrounded vowel|[a]]] and open central unrounded [[w:Open central unrounded vowel|[ä]]]. <small>f1 =700 y f2 =1350 hz; f1 =750 y f2 =1500 hz</small>.
 
It has been registered that word-final [[w:Help:IPA|/i, u/]] are raised and end in a voiceless vowel: [[w:Help:IPA|[ii̥, uu̥]]]. The voiceless vowels may sound almost like [[w:Voiceless palatal fricative|[ç]]] and [[w:Voiceless velar fricative|[x]]] retrospectively, mainly around [[w:Lugo, Emilia-Romagna|Lugo]], it is also transcribed as [[w:Help:IPA|[ii̥ᶜ̧, uu̥ˣ]]] or [[w:Help:IPA|[iᶜ̧, uˣ]]]. In the same region, it is common to have interconsonantal laxed variants [[w:Help:IPA|[i̽, u̽]]] and these laxed forms often have a schwa-like off-glide [[w:Help:IPA|[i̽ə̯, u̽ə̯]]], that is further described as an extra short schwa-like off-glide [[w:Help:IPA|[ə̯̆]]] ([[w:Help:IPA|[i̽ə̯̆, u̽ə̯̆]]] or [[w:Help:IPA|[i̽ᵊ, u̽ᵊ]]]). The status of [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɛ]]] and [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɔ]]] is up to debate, and it is often believed that the long vowel phonemes that were present in Gothic resulted in schwa-glides [[w:Help:IPA|[ɛə̯̆, ɔə̯̆]]], or further fortified to a quasi-diphthong [[w:Help:IPA|[ɛæ̯̆, ɔɒ̯̆]]] (henceforth only written ⟨[ɛ, ɔ]⟩ due to its questionable nature and for simplicity).
 
====Diphthongs and triphthongs====
{|
|- style="vertical-align: top;"
|
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align: center"
|+Diphthongs
! colspan="2" rowspan="2" |
! colspan="2" |Endpoint
|-
!<small>/j/</small>
!<small>/w/</small>
|-
! rowspan="8" |Start point
!<small>/a/</small>
|aj
|aw
|-
!<small>/ɐ/</small>
|ɐj
|ɐw
|-
!<small>/ɛ/</small>
|ɛj
|ɛw
|-
!<small>/e/</small>
|ej
|ew
|-
!<small>/i/</small>
| style="background:gray" |
|iw
|-
!<small>/ɔ/</small>
|ɔj
| style="background:gray" |
|-
!<small>/o/</small>
|oj
|ow
|-
!<small>/u/</small>
|uj
| style="background:gray" |
|}
|
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align: center"
|+Triphthongs
! colspan="2" rowspan="2" |
! colspan="4" |Endpoint
|-
! colspan="3" |<small>/j/</small>
!<small>/o/</small>
|-
! rowspan="2" |Start point
!<small>/j/</small>
|jɐj
|jɛj
|jɔj
|jwo
|-
!<small>/w/</small>
|wɐj
|wɛj
|wɔj
| style="background:gray" |
|}
|}
 
=====Notes=====
* Diphthongs starting in [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/i/]] or [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/u/]] such as [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/iw/]] and [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/uj/]] are in free variation with [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/ju/]] and [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/wi/]].
* All vowels are lowered and retracted before [[w:Voiced labial–velar approximant|/w/]]: [[w:Help:IPA|[ɪ, u̞, ë̞, o̞, æ̈, ʌ, ɒ, ɑ]]].
* All vowels are raised and advanced before [[w:Voiced palatal approximant|/j/]]: [[w:Help:IPA|[i, u, e̟, o̟, ɛ̝, ɐ̝, ɔ̝, ä̝]]].
 
It has also been registered that vowels may be [[w:Roundedness|rounded]] before [[w:Voiced labial–velar approximant|/w/]]: [[w:Help:IPA|[y, u, ø, o, œ, ɐ͗, ɔ, a͗]]], resulting in further lowered and retracted rounded vowels [[w:Help:IPA|[ʏ, u̞, ø̞̈, o̞, æ̹̈, ɔ, ɒ, ɒ]]]. This mainly occurs where other [[w:Gallo-Italic languages|Gallo-Italic languages]] are more predominant, such as [[w:Lombard language|Lombard]] and [[w:Piedmontese language|Piedmontese]].
 
====Consonants====
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Consonant phonemes of Standard Luthic
! colspan=2 rowspan=2 |
! rowspan=2| [[w:Labial consonant|Labial]]
! rowspan=2| [[w:Dental consonant|Dental]]/<br />[[Alveolar consonant|Alveolar]]
! rowspan=2| [[w:Postalveolar consonant|Postalveolar]]
! rowspan=2| [[w:Palatal consonant|Palatal]]
! colspan=2| [[w:Velar consonant|Velar]]
|-
! {{small|plain}}
! {{small|[[w:Labialization|labialized]]}}
|-
!colspan=2| [[w:Nasal consonant|Nasal]]
| [[w:Voiced bilabial nasal|m]]
| [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar nasals|n]]
|
| [[w:Voiced palatal nasal|ɲ]]
| [[w:Voiced velar nasal|ŋ]]
| [[w:Labialization|(ŋʷ)]]
|-
!rowspan=2| [[w:Stop consonant|Plosive]]
! {{small|[[w:voicelessness|voiceless]]}}
| [[w:Voiceless bilabial plosive|p]]
| [[w:Voiceless dental plosive|t]]
|
|
| [[w:Voiceless velar plosive|k]]
| [[w:Labialization|kʷ]]
|-
! {{small|[[w:voice (phonetics)|voiced]]}}
| [[w:Voiced bilabial plosive|b]]
| [[w:Voiced dental plosive|d]]
|
|
| [[w:Voiced velar plosive|ɡ]]
| [[w:Labialization|ɡʷ]]
|-
!rowspan=2| [[w:Fricative consonant|Fricative]]
! {{small|[[w:voicelessness|voiceless]]}}
| [[w:Voiceless bilabial fricative|ɸ]] [[w:Voiceless labiodental fricative|(f)]]
| [[w:Voiceless alveolar fricative|s]] [[w:Voiceless dental fricative|θ]]
| [[w:Voiceless postalveolar fricative|ʃ]]
|
| [[w:Voiceless velar fricative|(x)]]
|-
! {{small|[[w:voice (phonetics)|voiced]]}}
| [[w:Voiced bilabial fricative|β]] [[w:Voiced labiodental fricative|(v)]]
| [[w:Voiced alveolar fricative|z]] [[w:Voiced dental fricative|ð]]
|
|
| [[w:Voiceled velar fricative|(ɣ)]]
|
|-
!rowspan=2| [[w:Affricate consonant|Affricate]]
! {{small|[[w:voicelessness|voiceless]]}}
|
| [[w:Voiceless alveolar affricate|t͡s]]
| [[w:Voiceless postalveolar affricate|t͡ʃ]]
|
|colspan=2|
|-
! {{small|[[w:voicelessness|voiceless]]}}
|
| [[w:Voiced alveolar affricate|d͡z]]
| [[w:Voiced postalveolar affricate|d͡ʒ]]
|
|colspan=2|
|-
!rowspan=2| [[w:Approximant consonant|Approximant]]
! {{small|[[w:semivowel|semivowel]]}}
|
|
|
| [[w:Voiced palatal approximant|j]]
|
| [[w:Voiced labial–velar approximant|w]]
|-
! {{small|[[w:Lateral consonant|lateral]]}}
|
| [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar lateral approximants|l]]
|
| [[w:Voiced palatal lateral approximant|ʎ]]
|colspan=2|
|-
!colspan=2| [[w:Trill consonant|Trill]]
|
| [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar trills|r]]
|
|
|colspan=2|
|}
 
=====Notes=====
 
* '''Nasals:'''
** /n/ is laminal alveolar [[w:Laminal consonant|[n̻]]].
** /ɲ/ is alveolo-palatal, always geminate when intervocalic.
** /ŋ/ has a labio-velar allophone [[w:Labialization|[ŋʷ]]] before labio-velar plosives.
*** [[w:Labialization|[ŋʷ]]] may be further palatalised to a palato-labialised velar nasal [[w:Palatalization (phonetics)|[ŋᶣ]]] before [[w:Palatalization (phonetics)|[kᶣ, ɡᶣ]]].
** /ŋ/ is pre-velar [[w:Voiced_palatal_nasal#Post-palatal|[ŋ˖]]] before [[w:Voiceless_velar_plosive#cite_note-1|[k̟, ɡ̟]]].
** /ŋ/ is post-velar [[w:Voiced uvular nasal|[ŋ˗]]] before [[w:Voiceless_velar_plosive#cite_ref-2|[k̠, ɡ˗]]], it may also be described as an uvular [[w:Voiced uvular nasal|[ɴ]]].
 
* '''Plosives:'''
** /p/ /b/ are purely bilabial.
** /t/ and /d/ are laminal dentialveolar [[w:Laminal consonant|[t̻, d̻]]].
** /k/ and /ɡ/ are pre-velar [[w:Voiceless_velar_plosive#cite_note-1|[k̟, ɡ̟]]] before [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/i, e, ɛ, j/]].
** /k/ and /ɡ/ are post-velar [[w:Voiceless_velar_plosive#cite_ref-2|[k̠, ɡ˗]]] before [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/o, ɔ, u/]], they may also be described as uvulars [[w:Voiced uvular plosive|[q]], [[w:Voiceless uvular plosive|ɢ]​]].
** /kʷ/ and /ɡʷ/ are palato-labialised [[w:Palatalization (phonetics)|[kᶣ, ɡᶣ]]] before [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/i, e, ɛ, j/]].
 
* '''Affricates:'''
** /t͡s/ and /d͡z/ are dentalised laminal alveolar [[w:Laminal consonant|[t̻͡s̪, d̻͡z̪]]].
** /t͡ʃ/ and /d͡ʒ/ are strongly labialised palato-alveolar [[w:Labialization|[t͡ʃʷ, d͡ʒʷ]]].
 
* '''Fricatives:'''
** /ɸ/ and /β/ are bilabial.
** [[w:Voiceless labiodental fricative|[f]]] and [[w:Voiced labiodental fricative|[v]]] are labiodental and only happens as an allophone of /ɸ/ and /β/ word-initially and postconsonantal.
** /θ/ and /ð/ are laminal dentialveolar.
** /s/ and /z/ are laminal alveolar [[w:Laminal consonant|[s̻, z̻]]].
** /ʃ/ is strongly labialised palato-alveolar [[w:Labialization|[ʃʷ]]].
** /x/ and /ɣ/ are velar, and only found when triggered by Gorgia Toscana.
 
* '''Approximants, trill and laterals:'''
** /j/ and /w/ are always geminate when intervocalic.
** /r/ is alveolar [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar trills#Voiced_alveolar_trill|[r]]].
** /l/ is laminal alveolar [[w:Laminal consonant|[l̻]]].
** /ʎ/ is alveolo-palatal, always geminate when intervocalic.
 
====Historical phonology====
The phonological system of the Luthic language underwent many changes during the period of its existence. These included the palatalisation of velar consonants in many positions and subsequent [[w:Lenition|lenitions]]. A number of phonological processes affected Luthic in the period before the earliest documentation. The processes took place chronologically in roughly the order described below (with uncertainty in ordering as noted).
 
=====Vowel system=====
The most sonorous elements of the [[w:Syllable|syllable]] are [[w:Vowel|vowels]], which occupy the [[w:Nucleus (syllable)|nuclear]] position. They are prototypical [[w:Mora (linguistics)|mora]]-bearing elements, with simple vowels monomoraic, and long vowels bimoraic. Latin vowels occurred with one of five qualities and one of two weights, that is short and long [[w:Help:IPA|/i e a o u/]]. At first, weight was realised by means of longer or shorter duration, and any articulatory differences were negligible, with the short:long opposition stable. Subtle articulatory differences eventually grow and lead to the abandonment of length, and reanalysis of vocal contrast is shifted solely to quality rather than both quality and quantity; specifically, the manifestation of weight as length came to include differences in tongue [[w:Vowel height|height]] and tenseness, and quite early on, /ī, ū/ began to differ from /ĭ, ŭ/ articulatorily, as did /ē, ō/ from /ĕ, ŏ/. The long vowels were stable, but the short vowels came to be realised lower and laxer, with the result that /ĭ, ŭ/ opened to [[w:Near-close near-front unrounded vowel|
[ɪ]], [[w:Near-close near-back rounded vowel|ʊ]​]], and /ĕ, ŏ/ opened to [[w:Open-mid front unrounded vowel|[ε]], [[w:Open-mid back rounded vowel|ɔ]​]]. The result is the merger of Latin /ĭ, ŭ/ and /ē, ō/, since their contrast is now realised sufficiently be their distinct vowel quality, which would be easier to articulate and perceive than vowel duration.
[[File:Vowel changes in Luthic.png|thumb|Gotho-Romance vowel changes from Latin.]]
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align: center;"
|-
|+ Vowels phoneme in Classical Latin
!
! [[w:Front vowel|Front]]
! [[w:Central vowel|Central]]
! [[w:Back vowel|Back]]
|-
! [[w:Close vowel|Close]]
| [[w:Close front unrounded vowel|i]] [[w:Length (phonetics)|iː]] [[w:Nasal vowel|ĩː]]
|
| [[w:Close back rounded vowel|u]] [[w:Length (phonetics)|uː]] [[w:Nasal vowel|ũː]]
|-
! [[w:Mid vowel|Mid]]
| [[w:Close-mid front unrounded vowel|e]] [[w:Length (phonetics)|eː]] [[w:Nasal vowel|ẽː]]
|
| [[w:Close-mid back rounded vowel|o]] [[w:Length (phonetics)|oː]] [[w:Nasal vowel|õː]]
|-
! [[w:Open vowel|Open]]
|
| [[w:Open central unrounded vowel|ä]] [[w:Length (phonetics)|äː]] [[w:Nasal vowel|ä̃ː]]
|
|}
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align: center;"
|-
|+ Vowels phoneme in Early Spoken Latin
!
! [[w:Front vowel|Front]]
! [[w:Central vowel|Central]]
! [[w:Back vowel|Back]]
|-
! [[w:Close vowel|Close]]
| [[w:Near-close near-front unrounded vowel|ɪ]] [[w:Length (phonetics)|iː]] [[w:Nasal vowel|ĩː]]
|
| [[w:Near-close near-back rounded vowel|ʊ]] [[w:Length (phonetics)|uː]] [[w:Nasal vowel|ũː]]
|-
! [[w:Mid vowel|Mid]]
| [[w:Open-mid front unrounded vowel|ɛ]] [[w:Length (phonetics)|eː]] [[w:Nasal vowel|ẽː]]
|
| [[w:Open-mid_back_rounded_vowel|ɔ]] [[w:Length (phonetics)|oː]] [[w:Nasal vowel|õː]]
|-
! [[w:Open vowel|Open]]
|
| [[w:Open central unrounded vowel|ä]] [[w:Length (phonetics)|äː]] [[w:Nasal vowel|ä̃ː]]
|
|}
 
Unstressed a resulted in a slightly raised a [[w:Near-open central vowel|[ɐ]]]. In hiatus, unstressed front vowels become [[w:Voiced palatal approximant|/j/]], while unstressed back vowels become [[w:Voiced labial–velar approximant|/w/]]. Unlike other Romance languages, the Luthic vowel system was not so affected by [[w:Metaphony|metaphony]], such as [[w:Close-mid front unrounded vowel|/e/]] raising to [[w:Close front unrounded vowel|/i/]] or [[w:Open-mid front unrounded vowel|/ɛ/]] raising to [[w:Close-mid front unrounded vowel|/e/]]:
 
* Classical Latin [[wikt:vindemia#Latin|''vī̆ndēmia'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[u̯i(ː)n̪.ˈd̪eː.mi.ä]]] > Vulgar Latin [[w:Proto-Romance_language#Phonology|*[benˈde.mja]]] > Spanish [[wikt:vendimia#Spanish|''vendimia'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:es|[bẽn̪ˈd̪i.mja]]], but the Luthic cognate ''vendemia'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[venˈde.mjɐ]]]
 
In addition to monophthongs, Luthic has diphthongs, which, however, are both phonemically and phonetically simply combinations of the other vowels. None of the diphthongs are, however, considered to have distinct phonemic status since their constituents do not behave differently from how they occur in isolation, unlike the diphthongs in other languages like English and German. Grammatical tradition distinguishes “falling” from “rising” diphthongs, but since rising diphthongs are composed of one semiconsonantal sound [[w:Voiced palatal approximant|[j]]] or [[w:Voiced labial–velar approximant|[w]]] and one vowel sound, they are not actually diphthongs. The practice of referring to them as “diphthongs” has been criticised by phoneticians like Alareicu Villavolfu.
 
======Irregularities======
* /ē̆/ > [[w:Close front unrounded vowel|/i/]] in most monosyllabic in auslaut
** Latin [[wikt:de#Latin|''dē'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[d̪eː]]] > Luthic ''di'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[di]]]
** Latin [[wikt:res#Latin|''rēs'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[reːs̠]]] > Luthic '''''ri'''ppiuvica'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ripˈpju.βi.xɐ]]]
** Latin [[wikt:re-#Latin|''re-'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[re]]] > Luthic ''ri-'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ri]]]
* /ŭ/ > [[w:Close back rounded vowel|/u/]] in auslat
** Latin [[wikt:romanus#Latin|''rōmānus'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[roːˈmäː.nus̠ ~ roːˈmäː.nʊs̠]]] > Luthic ''romanu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[roˈma.nu]]]
** Gothic [[wikt:𐌳𐌿#Gothic|𐌳𐌿]] (''du'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[du]]] > Luthic [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[du]]]
* [[wikt:AP:pron:la|/ũː/]] > [[w:Close-mid back rounded vowel|/o/]] in auslaut due to [[w:Folk etymology|analogical reformation]]
** Latin [[wikt:romanus#Latin|''rōmānum'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[roːˈmäː.nũː]]] > Luthic ''romano'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[roˈma.no]]]
 
Luthic also diphthongises /ō̆/ to [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/wɔ/]] in the following environments:
* mō̆- > muo-
** Latin [[wikt:moveo#Latin|''movēre'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[mo.ˈu̯eː.re ~ mɔ.ˈu̯eː.rɛ]]] > Luthic ''muovere'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[mwɔˈβe.re]]]
** Latin [[wikt:mobilia#Latin|''mōbilia'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[ˈmoː.bi.l(ʲ)i.ä ~ ˈmoː.bɪ.l(ʲ)ɪ.ä]]] > Luthic ''muobiglia'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[mwɔˈbiʎ.ʎɐ]]]
* bō̆- > buo-
** Proto-Germanic [[wikt:Reconstruction:Proto-Germanic/bōks|''*bōks'']] [[w:Proto-Germanic_language#Phonology|/bɔːks/]] > Luthic ''buocu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbwɔ.xu]]]
** Latin [[wikt:bos#Latin|''bovem'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[ˈbo.u̯ẽː]]] > Luthic ''buove'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbwɔ.βe]]]
* (Ⓒ)ō̆v- > (Ⓒ)uov-
** Latin [[wikt:novus#Latin|''novus'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[ˈno.u̯us̠ ~ ˈno.u̯ʊs̠]]] > Luthic ''nuovu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈnwɔ.βu]]]
** Latin [[wikt:ovum#Latin|''ōvum'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[ˈoː.u̯ũː]] > Luthic ''uovo'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈwɔ.βo]]]
 
======Monophthongization======
The diphthongs ⟨au⟩, ⟨ae⟩ and ⟨oe⟩ [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[au̯, ae̯, oe̯]]] were monophthongized (smoothed) to [[w:Help:IPA|[ɔ, ɛ, e]]] by Gothic influence, as the Germanic diphthongs [[w:Proto-Germanic_language#Phonology|/ai̯/]] and [[w:Proto-Germanic_language#Phonology|/au̯/]] appear as digraphs written ⟨ai⟩ and ⟨au⟩ in Gothic. Researchers have disagreed over whether they were still pronounced as diphthongs [[w:Gothic_language#Phonology|/ai̯/]] and [[w:Gothic_language#Phonology|/au̯/]] in Ulfilas' time (4th century) or had become long open-mid vowels: [[w:Gothic_language#Phonology|/ɛː/]] and [[w:Gothic_language#Phonology|/ɔː/]]: [[wikt:𐌰𐌹𐌽𐍃#Gothic|𐌰𐌹𐌽𐍃]] (''ains'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[ains]]] / [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[ɛːns]]] “one” (German [[wikt:eins#German|''eins'']], Icelandic [[wikt:einn#Icelandic|''einn'']]), [[wikt:𐌰𐌿𐌲𐍉#Gothic|𐌰𐌿𐌲𐍉]] (''augō'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[auɣoː]]] / [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[ɔːɣoː]]] “eye” (German [[wikt:Auge#German|''Auge'']], Icelandic [[wikt:auga#Icelandic|''auga'']]). It is most likely that the latter view is correct, as it is indisputable that the digraphs ⟨ai⟩ and ⟨au⟩ represent the sounds /ɛː/ and /ɔː/ in some circumstances (see below), and ⟨aj⟩ and ⟨aw⟩ were available to unambiguously represent the sounds [[w:Gothic_language#Phonology|/ai̯/]] and [[w:Gothic_language#Phonology|/au̯/]]. The digraph ⟨aw⟩ is in fact used to represent /au/ in foreign words (such as [[wikt:𐍀𐌰𐍅𐌻𐌿𐍃#Gothic|𐍀𐌰𐍅𐌻𐌿𐍃]] (''Pawlus'') “Paul”), and alternations between ⟨ai⟩/⟨aj⟩ and ⟨au⟩/⟨aw⟩ are scrupulously maintained in paradigms where both variants occur (e.g. [[wikt:𐍄𐌰𐌿𐌾𐌰𐌽#Gothic|𐍄𐌰𐌿𐌾𐌰𐌽]] (''taujan'') “to do” vs. [[w:Past tense|past tense]] [[wikt:𐍄𐌰𐍅𐌹𐌳𐌰#Gothic|𐍄𐌰𐍅𐌹𐌳𐌰]] (''tawida'') “did”). Evidence from transcriptions of Gothic names into Latin suggests that the sound change had occurred very recently when Gothic spelling was standardised: Gothic names with Germanic au are rendered with au in Latin until the 4th century and o later on (''Austrogoti'' > ''Ostrogoti'').
 
=====Consonant system=====
As [[w:Classical Latin|Classical Latin]] developed into [[w:Proto-Romance language|Proto-Romance]] and then Gotho-Romance it experienced various [[w:Sound change|sound changes]]. An approximate summary of changes on the [[w:Phoneme|phonemic]] level is provided below. Their precise order is uncertain.
 
======Cluster smoothing======
Clusters such as -p.t- -k.t- -x.t- are always smoothed to -t.t-.
 
* Latin [[wikt:aptus#Latin|''aptus'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[ˈäp.t̪us̠ ~ ˈäp.t̪ʊs̠]]] > Luthic ''attu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈat.tu]]]
* Latin [[wikt:actualis#Latin|''āctuālis'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[äːk.t̪uˈäː.lʲis̠ ~ äːk.t̪uˈäː.lʲɪs̠]]] > Luthic ''attuale'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐtˈtwa.le]]]
* Gothic [[wikt:𐌰𐌷𐍄𐌰𐌿#Gothic|𐌰𐌷𐍄𐌰𐌿]] (''ahtau'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[ˈax.tɔː]]] > Luthic ''attau'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈat.tɔ]]]
* Gothic [[wikt:𐌽𐌰𐌷𐍄𐍃#Gothic|𐌽𐌰𐌷𐍄𐍃]] (''nahts'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[naxts]]] > Luthic ''nattu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈnat.tu]]]
 
This is also valid for other CC clusters with similar [[w:Manner of articulation|manner]] or [[w:Place of articulation|place]].
 
======Absorption of nasals before fricatives======
This is the source of such alterations as modern Standard Luthic ''fimfe'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈfĩ.ɸe]]] “five”, ''monþu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈmõ.θu]]] “mouth” versus Gothic [[wikt:𐍆𐌹𐌼𐍆#Gothic|𐍆𐌹𐌼𐍆]] (''fimf'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[ˈɸimɸ]]] “''id.''”, [[wikt:𐌼𐌿𐌽𐌸𐍃#Gothic|𐌼𐌿𐌽𐌸𐍃]] (''munþs'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[ˈmunθs]]] “''id.''” and German [[wikt:fünf#German|fünf]] [[wikt:AP:pron:de|[fʏnf]]] “''id.''”, [[wikt:Mund#German|Mund]] [[wikt:AP:pron:de|[mʊnt]]] “''id.''”.
 
======Palatalisation======
Early evidence of palatalised pronunciations of [[w:Help:IPA|/tj kj/]] appears as early as the 2nd–3rd centuries AD in the form of spelling mistakes interchanging ⟨ti⟩ and ⟨ci⟩ before a following vowel, as in ⟨tribunitiae⟩ for [[wikt:tribuniciae#Latin|''tribūnīciae'']]. This is assumed to reflect the fronting of Latin [[w:Voiceless velar plosive|/k/]] in this environment to [[w:Help:IPA|[c ~ t͡sʲ]]]. Palatalisation of the velar consonants [[w:Voiceless velar plosive|/k/]] and [[w:Voiced velar plosive|/ɡ/]] occurred in certain environments, mostly involving front vowels; additional palatalisation is also found in dental consonants [[w:Voiceless dental and alveolar plosives|/t/]], [[w:Voiced dental and alveolar plosives|/d/]], [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar lateral approximants|/l/]] and [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar nasals|/n/]], however, these are often not palatalised in word initial environment.
 
* Latin [[wikt:amicus#Latin|''amīcus'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[äˈmiː.kus̠ ~ äˈmiː.kʊs̠]]], [[wikt:amici#Latin|''amīcī'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[äˈmiː.kiː]]] > Luthic ''amicu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐˈmi.xu]]], ''amici'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐˈmi.t͡ʃi]]].
* Gothic [[wikt:𐌲𐌹𐌱𐌰#Gothic|𐌲𐌹𐌱𐌰]] (''giba'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[ˈɡiβa]]] > Luthic ''geva'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈd͡ʒe.βɐ]]].
* Latin [[wikt:ratio#Latin|''ratiō'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[ˈrä.t̪i.oː]]] > Luthic ''razione'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[rɐdˈd͡zjo.ne]]].
* Latin [[wikt:filius#Latin|''fīlius'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[ˈfiː.l(ʲ)i.us̠ ~ ˈfiː.l(ʲ)i.ʊs̠]]] > Luthic ''figliu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈfiʎ.ʎu]]].
* Latin [[wikt:linea#Latin|''līnea'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[ˈl(ʲ)iː.ne.ä]]] > Luthic ''ligna'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈliɲ.ɲɐ]]].
* Latin [[wikt:pugnus#Latin|''pugnus'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[ˈpuŋ.nus̠ ~ ˈpʊŋ.nʊs̠]]] > Luthic ''pogniu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈpoɲ.ɲu]]].
* Latin [[wikt:acrimonia#Latin|''ācrimōnia'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[äː.kriˈmoː.ni.ä ~ äː.krɪˈmoː.ni.ä]]] > Luthic ''acremognia'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐ.kreˈmoɲ.ɲɐ]]].
 
Labio-velars remain unpalatalised, except in monosyllabic environment:
 
* Latin [[wikt:quis#Latin|''quis'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[kʷis̠ ~ kʷɪs̠]]] > Luthic ''ce'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[t͡ʃe]]].
* Gothic [[wikt:𐌵𐌹𐌼𐌰𐌽#Gothic|𐌵𐌹𐌼𐌰𐌽]] (''qiman'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[ˈkʷiman]]] > Luthic ''qemare'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[kᶣeˈma.re]]].
 
In some cases, palatalisation occurs word initially, mainly if [[w:Help:IPA|/kn/]] is the initial cluster:
 
* Gothic [[wikt:𐌺𐌽𐍉𐌸𐍃#Gothic|𐌺𐌽𐍉𐌸𐍃]] (''knōþs'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[knoːθs]]] > Luthic ''gnioðe'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɲo.ðe]]].
* Gothic [[wikt:𐌺𐌿𐌽𐌽𐌰𐌽#Gothic|𐌺𐌿𐌽𐌽𐌰𐌽]] (''kunnan'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[ˈkunːan]]], influenced by Latin [[wikt:cognosco#Latin|''(co)gnōscere'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[koŋˈnoːs̠.ke.re ~ kɔŋˈnoːs̠.kɛ.rɛ]]] and later Langobardic [[wikt:knajan#Old_High_German|''*knājan'']] [[w:Old_High_German#Phonology|*/ˈknaːjan/]] > Luthic ''gnioscere'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɲoʃˈʃe.re]]]
* Langobardic [[wikt:knohha#Old_High_German|''*knohha'']] [[w:Old_High_German#Phonology|*/ˈknoxːa ~ ˈknɔxːa/]] > Luthic ''gnioccu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɲɔk̠.k̠u]]].
 
It may not happen if intervocalic:
 
* Gothic [[wikt:𐌺𐌴𐌻𐌹𐌺𐌽#Gothic|𐌺𐌴𐌻𐌹𐌺𐌽]] (''kēlikn'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[ˈkeːlikn]]] > Luthic ''celecna'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[t͡ʃeˈlek.nɐ]]].
* Gothic [[wikt:𐌰𐌿𐌺𐌽𐌰𐌽#Gothic|𐌰𐌿𐌺𐌽𐌰𐌽]] (''auknan'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[ˈɔːknan]]] > Luthic ''aucnare'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɔkˈna.re]]].
 
Velar and labial plosive clusters with l are also palatalised, fl is also palatalised:
 
* Latin [[wikt:publicus#Latin|''pūblicus'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[ˈpuː.blʲi.kus̠ ~ ˈpuː.blʲɪ.kʊs̠]]] > ''*plūbicus'' > Luthic ''piuvicu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈpju.βi.xu]]].
* Gothic [[wikt:𐌱𐌻𐍉𐌼𐌰#Gothic|𐌱𐌻𐍉𐌼𐌰]] (''blōma'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[ˈbloːma]]] > Luthic ''biomna'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbjom.nɐ]]].
* Latin [[wikt:clarus#Latin|''clārus'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[ˈkɫ̪äː.rus̠ ~ ˈkɫ̪äː.rʊs̠]]] > Luthic ''chiaru'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈk̟ja.ru]]].
* Latin [[wikt:glacies#Latin|''glaciēs'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[ˈɡɫ̪ä.ki.eːs̠]]] > ''glacia'' > Luthic ''ghiaccia'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɡ̟jat.t͡ʃɐ]]].
* Latin [[wikt:flagellum#Latin|''flagellum'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[fɫ̪äˈɡelʲ.lʲũː ~ fɫ̪äˈɡɛlʲ.lʲũː]]] > Luthic ''fiagello'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[fjɐˈd͡ʒɛl.lo]]].
 
This usually doesn't happen in Cli- clusters:
 
* Latin [[wikt:applico#Latin|''applicāre'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[äp.plʲiˈkäː.re ~ äp.plʲɪˈkäː.rɛ]]] > Luthic ''applicare'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ap.pliˈka.re]]].
 
======Lenition======
The Gotho-Romance family suffered very few lenitions, but in most cases the unstressed stops /p t k/ are lenited to /b d ɡ/ if not in onset position, before or after a sonorant or in intervocalic position as a geminate, but in general, stops are rather [[w:Lenition#Spirantization|spirantised]] than [[w:Lenition#Sonorization|sonorised]] due to Gorgia Toscana. A similar process happens with unstressed /b/ that is lenited to /v ~ β/ in the same conditions. The unstressed labio-velar /kʷ/ delabialises before hard vowels, as in:
 
* Gothic [[wikt:𐍈𐌰𐌽#Gothic|𐍈𐌰𐌽]] (''ƕan'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[ʍan]]] > *[kʷɐn] > Luthic ''can'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[kɐn]]].
* Latin [[wikt:numquam#Latin|''numquam'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[ˈnuŋ.kʷä̃ː ~ ˈnʊŋ.kʷä̃ː]]] > Luthic ''nogca'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈnoŋ.kɐ]]].
 
Luthic is further affected by the Gorgia Toscana effect, where every plosive is spirantised (or further approximated if voiced). Plosives, however, are not affected if:
 
* Geminate.
* Labialised.
* Nearby another fricative.
* Nearby a rhotic, a lateral or nasal.
* Stressed and anlaut.
 
======Fortition======
In every case, [[w:Voiced palatal approximant|/j/]] and [[w:Voiced labial–velar approximant|/w/]] are fortified to [[w:Voiced postalveolar affricate|/d͡ʒ/]] and [[w:Voiced labiodental fricative|/v]] ~ [[w:Voiced bilabial fricative|β/]], except when triggered by hiatus collapse. The Germanic [[w:Help:IPA|/xʷ ~ hʷ ~ ʍ/]] is also fortified to [[w:Labialization|/kʷ/]] in every position; which can be further lenited to [[w:Voiceless velar plosive|/k]] ~ [[w:Voiceless postalveolar affricate|t͡ʃ/]] in the environments given above. The Germanic [[w:Voiceless glottal fricative|/h]] ~ [[w:Voiceless velar fricative|x/]] is fortified to [[w:Voiceless velar plosive|/k/]] before a rhotic or a lateral, as in:
 
* Gothic [[wikt:𐌷𐌻𐌰𐌹𐍆𐍃#Gothic|𐌷𐌻𐌰𐌹𐍆𐍃]] (''hlaifs'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[ˈhlɛːɸs]]] > ''*claefu'' > Luthic ''chiaefu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈk̟jɛ.ɸu]]].
* Gothic [[wikt:Reconstruction:Gothic/𐌷𐍂𐌹𐌲𐌲𐍃#Gothic|*𐌷𐍂𐌹𐌲𐌲𐍃]] (''hriggs'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[ˈhriŋɡs ~ ˈhriŋks]]] > Luthic ''creggu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈkreŋ˗.ɡ˗u]]].
 
Furthermore, Luthic is affected by [[w:Syntactic gemination|syntactic gemination]], a common feature in [[w:Italian language|Italian]] and [[w:Neapolitan language|Neapolitan]] as well, also known as '''raddoppiamento sintattico''' in Italian, and '''riddoppiamento sintattico''' in Luthic. Syntactic means that [[w:Gemination|gemination]] spans word boundaries, as opposed to word-internal geminate consonants. Syntatic gemination is optionally appointed orthographically (for the sake of simplicity, not on this article), and it only happens before a ''trigger word'', however, neither does doubling occur when the initial consonant is followed by another consonant or if is there a pause in between, both phonetically and orthographically, for example “giâ·mmeino haertene ist sfracellato” (now my heart is broken), but “giâ, meino haertene ist sfracellato” (now, my heart is broken). ''Trigger words'' include:
 
* All feminine plural nouns, preceded by the feminine plural definite article, ''le''.
* All neuter singular nouns, preceded by the neuter singular definite article, ''atha''.
* Stressed monosyllabic words that end in a vowel, examples include ''giâ'', ''þû'', ''fiê'', ''piê'', etc.
* The prepositions ''a'', ''a'', ''da'', and the conjunctions ''au'', ''e'', ''né''.
* The first person singular conjugated forms ''stô'', ''gô'' and other monosyllabic irregular verbs such as ''chiô''.
* The proximal demonstrative pronouns in the following forms: su, sa, þatha, þo, þa, þammo, þe.
* all polysyllables stressed on the final vowel ([[w:Oxytone|oxytones]]).
 
Examples include:
 
* ''Vino au·vvadne?'' (wine or water?).
* ''Vino au·mmeluco?'' (wine or milk?).
* ''Stô·bbene'' (I am well).
* ''Le·ccanzoni'' (the songs).
* ''Atha·mmeino'' (my).
* ''Þû·ttaugis'' (you do/make).
 
Similarly, coda consonants with similar articulations often [[w:Sandhi|sandhi]] in the following conditions:
 
* Voiced and unvoiced pairs of the same consonant, for example [[w:Voiceless dental fricative|/θ/]] and [[w:Voiced dental fricative|/ð/]].
* Two consonants of the same manner, fricatives or nasals for example.
** However, the two must be either voiced or voiceless.
 
Examples include:
 
* ''Ed þû, ce taugis?'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/eð ˈθu | t͡ʃe ˈtɔ.d͡ʒis/]] > [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[e.θ‿ˈθu | t͡ʃe ˈtɔ.d͡ʒis]]] (and you, what are you doing?), also spelt as ''e·þþû, ce taugis?''.
* ''La cittâ stâþ sporca'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/lɐ t͡ʃitˈta ˈstaθ ˈspor.kɐ/]] > [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[lɐ t͡ʃitˈta.s‿ˈsta.s‿ˈspor.kɐ]]] (the citty is dirty), but never spelt as ''la cittâ·sstâ·ssporca'', as explained in the syntactic gemination section above, even though this is a different phonological process.
 
======Deletion======
In some rare cases, the consonants are fully deleted ([[w:Elision|elision]]), as in the verb ''havere'', akin to Italian [[wikt:avere#Italian|''avere'']], which followed a very similar paradigm and evolution:
 
* 1st person indicative present: Latin [[wikt:habeo#Latin|''habeō'']], Gothic [[wikt:𐌷𐌰𐌱𐌰#Gothic|𐌷𐌰𐌱𐌰]] (''haba''), Luthic ''hô'', Italian [[wikt:ho#Italian|''ho'']].
* 2nd person indicative present: Latin [[wikt:habes#Latin|''habēs'']], Gothic [[wikt:𐌷𐌰𐌱𐌰𐌹𐍃#Gothic|𐌷𐌰𐌱𐌰𐌹𐍃]] (''habais''), Luthic ''hais'', Italian [[wikt:hai#Italian|''hai'']].
* 3rd person indicative present: Latin [[wikt:habet#Latin|''habet'']], Gothic [[wikt:𐌷𐌰𐌱𐌰𐌹𐌸#Gothic|𐌷𐌰𐌱𐌰𐌹𐌸]] (''habaiþ''), Luthic ''hâþ'', Italian [[wikt:ha#Italian|''ha'']].
 
Vowels other than [[w:Open central unrounded vowel|/ä/]] are often syncopated in unstressed word-internal syllables, especially when in contact with liquid consonants:
 
* Latin [[wikt:angulus#Latin|''angulus'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[ˈäŋ.ɡu.ɫ̪us̠ ~ ˈäŋ.ɡʊ.ɫ̪ʊs̠]]] > *[ˈaŋ.ɡlu] > Luthic ''aggiu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈaŋ˖.ɡ̟ju]]].
* Latin [[wikt:speculum#Latin|''speculum'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[ˈs̠pɛ.ku.ɫ̪ũː ~ ˈs̠pɛ.kʊ.ɫ̪ũː]]] > *[ˈspɛ.klo] > Luthic ''spechio'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈspɛ.k̟jo]]].
* Latin [[wikt:avunculus#Latin|''avunculus'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[äˈu̯uŋ.ku.ɫ̪us̠ ~ äˈu̯ʊŋ.kʊ.ɫ̪ʊs̠]]] > *[ɐˈβoŋ.klu] > Luthic ''avogciu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐˈβoŋ˖.k̟ju]]].
 
A similar process happens when vowels (except [[w:Open central unrounded vowel|/ä/]]) are interconsonantal between [[w:Voiced bilabial nasal|/m/]] and [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar nasals|/n/]]:
 
* Latin [[wikt:dominus#Latin|''dominus'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[ˈd̪o.mi.nus̠ ~ ˈd̪ɔ.mɪ.nʊs̠]]] > Luthic ''domnu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈdɔm.nu]]] or [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈdom.nu]]] (apophony).
* Latin [[wikt:lamina#Latin|''lāmina'']] [[wikt:AP:pron:la|[ˈɫ̪äː.mi.nä ~ ˈɫ̪äː.mɪ.nä]]] > Luthic ''lamna'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈlam.nɐ]]].
* Gothic [[wikt:𐌲𐌰𐌼𐌿𐌽𐌰𐌽#Gothic|𐌲𐌰𐌼𐌿𐌽𐌰𐌽]] (''gamunan'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[ɡaˈmunan]]] > Luthic ''gamnare'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɡɐmˈna.re]]].
 
In some [[w:Gothic_declension#The_-an_declension|Gothic an-stem]] and other general environments, the interconsonantal vowel is deleted between [[w:Voiced velar fricative|/ɣ/]] and [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar nasals|/n/]], triggering palatalisation:
 
* Gothic [[wikt:𐌰𐌿𐌲𐍉#Gothic|𐌰𐌿𐌲𐍉]] (''augō'', stem ''augVn-'') [[wikt:AP:pron:got|[ˈɔːɣoː]]] > Luthic ''augnio'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɔɲ.ɲo]]].
 
In vulgar dialects where cases are fully ignored and prepositions are more used instead, it is very common to [[w:Apocope|apocope]] the last vowel (except [[w:Near-open central vowel|/ɐ/]]) after a sonorant ([[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/m n l r/]]) in singular forms, this feature is also very used by poets and it is often considered a poetic characteristic of Luthic:
 
* Luthic ''mannu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈmɐ̃.nu]]] > ''mann'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈmɐ̃n]]].
* Luthic ''hemeno'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈe.me.no]]] > ''hemen'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈe.men]]].
* Luthic ''virgine'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈvir.d͡ʒi.ne]]] > ''virgin'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈvir.d͡ʒin]]].
 
This is very common to happen with third-person plural verbal forms and infinitive verbal forms as well. Words ending in -N.CV- may result in apocope of the consonant as well:
 
* Luthic ''santu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈsan.tu]]] > ''san'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈsan]]].
* Luthic ''ambu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈam.bu]]] > ''am'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈam]]].
 
====Phonotactics====
Luthic allows up to three consonants in syllable-initial position, though there are limitations. The syllable structure of Luthic is (C)(C)(C)(G)V(G)(C)(C). As with English, there exist many words that begin with three consonants. Luthic lacks bimoraic (diphthongs and long vowels), as the so-called diphthongs are composed of one semiconsonantal ([[w:Semivowel|glide]]) sound [[w:Voiced palatal approximant|[j]]] or [[w:Voiced labial–velar approximant|[w]]].
 
{| class="wikitable"  style="text-align: center;"
! width="33%"|C₁
! width="33%"|C₂
! width="33%"|C₃
|+ '''Onset'''
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|f ~ ɸ v ~ β p b t d k ɡ]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|r]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|j w]]
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|s]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|p k]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|r l]]
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|s]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|f ~ ɸ t]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|r]]
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|z]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|b]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|l]]
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|z]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|d ɡ]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|r]]
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|z]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|m n v ~ β d͡ʒ r l]] || —
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|p b f ~ ɸ v ~ β k ɡ]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|r l]] || —
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|ɡ]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|n l]] || —
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|p t k d]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|r]] || —
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|θ ð]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|v ~ β r]] || —
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|t]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|v ~ β]] || —
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|kʷ ɡʷ t͡s t͡ʃ d͡ʒ ʃ r ɲ l ʎ]] || — || —
|}
 
'''CC'''
 
* [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/s/]] + any voiceless stop or [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/f ~ ɸ/]];
* [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/z/]] + any voiced stop, [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/v ~ β d͡ʒ m n l r/]];
* [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/f ~ ɸ v ~ β/]], or any stop + [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/r/]];
* [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/f ~ ɸ v ~ β/]], or any stop except [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/t d/]] + [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/l/]];
* [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|f ~ ɸ v ~ β s z/]], or any stop or nasal + [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/j w/]];
* In Graeco-Roman words origin which are only partially assimilated, other combinations such as [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/pn/]] (e.g. ''pneumaticu''), [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/mn/]] (e.g. ''mnemonicu''), [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/tm/]] (e.g. ''tmesi''), and [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/ps/]] (e.g. ''pseudo-'') occur.
 
As an onset, the cluster [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/s/]] + voiceless consonant is inherently unstable. Phonetically, word-internal s+C normally syllabifies as [s.C]. A competing analysis accepts that while the syllabification /s.C/ is accurate historically, modern retreat of i-[[w:Prothesis (linguistics)|prosthesis]] before word initial /s/+C (e.g. ''miþ isforzȧ'' “with effort” has generally given way to ''miþ sforza'') suggests that the structure is now underdetermined, with occurrence of /s.C/ or /.sC/ variable “according to the context and the idiosyncratic behaviour of the speakers.”
 
'''CCC'''
 
* [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/s/]] + voiceless stop or [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/f ~ ɸ/]] + [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/r/]];
* [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/z/]] + voiced stop + [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/r/]];
* [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/s/]] + [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/p k/]] + [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/l/]];
* [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/z/]] + [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/b/]] + [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/l/]];
* [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/f ~ ɸ v ~ β/]] or any stop + [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/r/]] + [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/j w/]].
 
{| class="wikitable"  style="text-align: center;"
! width="33%"|V₁
! width="33%"|V₂
! width="33%"|V₃
|+ '''Nucleus'''
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|a ɐ e ɛ]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|i [j] u [w]]] || —
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|o ɔ]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|i [j]]]|| —
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|i [j]]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|e o]] || —
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|i [j]]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|ɐ ɛ ɔ]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|i [j]]]
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|i [j]]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|u [w]]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|o]]
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|u [w]]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|ɐ ɛ ɔ]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|i [j]]]
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|u [w]]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|e o]] || —
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|u [w]]] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|i]] || —
|}
 
The nucleus is the only mandatory part of a syllable and must be a vowel or a diphthong. In a falling diphthong the most common second elements are [[w:Help:IPA|/i̯/]] or [[w:Help:IPA|/u̯/]]. Combinations of [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/j w/]] with vowels are often labelled diphthongs, allowing for combinations of /j w/ with falling diphthongs to be called triphthongs. One view holds that it is more accurate to label [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/j w/]] as consonants and /jV wV/ as consonant-vowel sequences rather than rising diphthongs. In that interpretation, Luthic has only falling diphthongs (phonemically at least, cf. [[w:Synaeresis|synaeresis]]) and no triphthongs.
 
{| class="wikitable"  style="text-align: center;"
! width="50%"|C₁
! width="50%"|C₂
|+ '''Coda'''
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|m n l r]] || Cₓ
|-
| Cₓ || —
|}
 
Luthic permits a small number of coda consonants. Outside of loanwords, the permitted consonants are:
 
* The first element of any geminate.
* A nasal consonant that is either [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/n/]] (word-finally) or one that is homorganic to a following consonant.
* [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/r/]] and [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/l/]].
* [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/s/]] (though not before fricatives).
 
=====Prosody=====
Luthic is quasi-[[w:Paroxytone|paroxytonic]], meaning that most words receive stress on their penultimate (second-to-last) syllable. Monosyllabic words tend to lack stress in their only syllable, unless emphasised or accentuated. Enclitic and other unstressed personal pronouns do not affect stress patterns. Some monosyllabic words may have natural stress (even if not emphasised), but it is weaker than those in polysyllabic words.
 
* ''rasda'' (ʀᴀ-sda ~ ʀᴀs-da) [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈra.zdɐ ~ ˈraz.dɐ]]];
* ''Italia'' (i-ᴛᴀ-lia) [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[iˈta.ljɐ]]];
* ''approssimativamente'' (ap-pros-si-ma-ti-va-ᴍᴇɴ-te) [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐp.pros.si.mɐ.θi.βɐˈmen.te]]].
 
Compound words have secondary stress on their penultimate syllable. Some suffixes also maintain the suffixed word secondary stress.
 
* ''panzar'' + ''campo'' + ''vagniu'' > ''panzarcampovagniu'' (ᴘᴀɴ-zar-ᴄᴀᴍ-po-ᴠᴀ-gniu) [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˌpan.t͡sɐrˌkam.poˈβaɲ.ɲu]]];
* ''broþar'' + ''-scape'' > ''broþarscape'' (ʙʀᴏ-þar-sᴄᴀ-pe) [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˌbro.θɐrˈska.ɸe]]].
 
Secondary stress is however often omitted by Italian influence. Tetrasyllabic (and beyond) words may have a very weak secondary stress in the fourth-to-last syllable (i.e. two syllables before the main or primary stress).
 
==Research==
[[File:Ravenna University's arms.png|thumb|Ravenna University’s arms]]
Luthic is a well-studied language, and multiple universities in Italy have departments devoted to Luthic or linguistics with active research projects on the language, mainly in Ravenna, such as the '''Linguistic Circle of Ravenna''' (Luthic: ''Creizzo Rasdavitascapetico Ravenne''; Italian: ''Circolo Linguistico di Ravenna'') at '''Ravenna University''', and there are many dictionaries and technological resources on the language. The language council ''Gafaurdu faul·la Rasda Lûthica'' also publishes research on the language both nationally and internationally. Academic descriptions of the language are published both in Luthic, Italian and English. The most complete grammar is the ''Grammatica gli Lûthice Rasde'' (Grammar of the Luthic Language) by Alessandru Fiscar & Luca Vagnar, and it is written in Luthic and contains over 800 pages. Multiple corpora of Luthic language data are available. The ''Luthic Online Dictionary project'' provides a curated corpus of 35,000 words.
 
===History===
The Ravenna School of Linguistics evolved around Giuvanni Laggobardi and his developing theory of language in [[w:Structural linguistics|linguistic structuralism]]. Together with Soġnafreþo Rossi he founded the Circle of Linguistics of Ravenna in 1964, a group of linguists based on the model of the [[w:Prague Linguistic Circle|Prague Linguistic Circle]]. From 1970, Ravenna University offered courses in languages and philosophy but the students were unable to finish their studies without going to [[w:Accademia della Crusca|Accademia della Crusca]] for their final examinations.
 
* '''Ravenna University Circle of [[w:Phonological Development|Phonological Development]]''' (Luthic: ''Creizzo Sviluppi Phonologici gi’Accademia Ravenna'') was developed in 1990, however very little research has been done on the earliest stages of phonological development in Luthic.
* '''Ravenna University Circle of [[w:Theology|Theology]]''' (Luthic: ''Creizzo Theologie gi’Accademia Ravenna'') was developed in 2000 in association with the [[w:Ravenna Cathedral|Ravenna Cathedral or Metropolitan Cathedral of the Resurrection of Our Lord Jesus Christ]] (Luthic: ''Cathedrale metropolitana deï Osstassi Unsari Signiori Giesaus Christi''; Italian: ''Cattedrale metropolitana della Risurrezione di Nostro Signore Gesù Cristo; Duomo di Ravenna'').
 
===Phonological development===
Phonological development refers to how children learn to organize sounds into meaning or language (phonology) during their stages of growth.
 
====Phoneme inventory and phonotactics====
Word-final consonants are rarely produced during the early stages of word production. Consonants are usually found in word-initial position, or in intervocalic position. At 6 months, infants are also able to make use of prosodic features of the ambient language to break the speech stream they are exposed to into meaningful units, e.g., they are better able to distinguish sounds that occur in stressed vs. unstressed syllables. This means that at 6 months infants have some knowledge of the stress patterns in the speech they are exposed and they have learned that these patterns are meaningful.
 
=====10 months=====
Most consonants are word-initial only: They are voiced stops [[w:Voiced dental and alveolar plosives|/d/]], [[w:Voiced bilabial plosive|/b/]] and the nasal [[w:Voiced bilabial nasal|/m/]]. A presence of voiceless stops is also found as [[w:Voiceless dental and alveolar plosives|/t/]], [[w:Voiceless bilabial plosive|/p/]] and rarely [[w:Voiceless velar plosive|/k/]]; who can be allphones of each other. A preference for a front place of articulation is present. Clicks are also present, although mostly for imitative suckling sounds, [[w:Blowing a raspberry|blowing a raspberry]] has also a common register between toddlers.
 
[[w:Babbling|Babbling]] becomes distinct from previous, less structured vocal play. Initially, syllable structure is limited to CVCV, called [[w:Reduplication|reduplicated babbling]]. Consonant clusters are still absent. Children’s first ten words appear around month 12, and take CVCV format, such as ''mama'' “mother”, ''papa'' “father” and ''dada'' “give me!”.
 
=====21 months=====
More phones now appear: the nasal [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar nasals|/n/]], the voiceless fricative [[w:Voiceless postalveolar affricate|/t͡ʃ/]], who can be an allphone of [[w:Voiceless dental and alveolar plosives|/t]] ~ [[w:Voiced dental and alveolar plosives|d/]]; as voice is still not a distinctive feature, and the liquid [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar lateral approximants|/l]]/. The preference for front articulation is still present, triggering palatalisation.
 
=====24 months=====
Fricatives may appear: [[w:Voiceless labiodental fricative|/f]] ~ [[w:Voiced labiodental fricative|v/]] and [[w:Voiceless alveolar fricative|/s/]] (who can be further palatalised to [[w:Voiceless postalveolar fricative|/ʃ/]]), primarily at intervocalic position. Voice may become a distinctive feature at this stage. [[w:Onomatopoeia|Onomatopoeiae]] are also produced, such as [[w:Help:IPA|/aw aw/]] for [[w:Bark|dog’s barking]]; [[w:Help:IPA|/ow/]], or preferably [[w:Help:IPA|/aj/]] for denoting pain. Production of trisyllabic words begins, such as C₁VC₂VC₃V. Consonant clusters are now present and are often subject to [[w:Consonant harmony|consonant harmony]], such as ''-mb-'', ''-nd-'' and ''-dr-''; however voiced-voiceless clusters are still rare, such as ''-mp-'' and ''-tr-''.
 
=====30 months=====
Approximately equal numbers of phones are now produced in word-initial and intervocalic position. Additions to the phonetic inventory are the voiced stop [[w:Voiced velar plosive|/ɡ/]] and a few consonant clusters. Co-articulations are perceived, such as labio-velar plosives. Alveolars and bilabials are the two most common places of articulation. Labiodental and postalveolar production increases throughout development, while velar production decreases. Luthic lenitions also become evident, as more fricatives and approximants are produced. Children develop syllabic segmentation awareness earlier than phonemic segmentation awareness.
 
=====Word processes=====
These phonological processes may happen within a range of 3 to 6 years.
 
* ''Nasal assimilation:'' non-nasal sounds often become nasal sound due to a nasal sound in the word [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈrɛn.dɐ]]] > [[w:Help:IPA|[ˈnen.nɐ]]];
* ''Weak syllable deletion:'' word-initial and word-terminal unstressed syllables are often omitted [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[bɐˈna.nɐ]]] > [[w:Help:IPA|[ˈna.nɐ]]];
* ''Coda deletion:'' omission of general coda consonant and the final consonant in the word [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[kɐr]]] > [[w:Help:IPA|[kɐ]]], [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbro.θɐr]]] > [[w:Help:IPA|[ˈbro.θɐ]]] ([[w:Help:IPA|[ˈbro]]]);
* ''Consonant harmony:'' a target word consonant takes on features of another target word consonant [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[kɐn]]] > [[w:Help:IPA|[kɐŋ]]], [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈstɛk.kɐ]]] > [[w:Help:IPA|[ˈstɛt.tɐ]]] ([[w:Help:IPA|[ˈstɛt ~ ˈstɛ]]]);
* ''Coalescence:'' adjacent consonants are merged into one with similar features [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈzbaɸ.ɸu]]] > [[w:Help:IPA|[ˈβaɸ.ɸu]]] ([[w:Help:IPA|[ˈva.fu]]]);
* ''Cluster reduction:'' consonant clusters are often simplifed into a single consonant [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[oˈrek̟.k̟jɐ]]] > [[w:Help:IPA|[oˈrej.jɐ]]] ([[w:Help:IPA|[ˈre.jɐ]]]);
* ''Velar fronting:'' velar plosives are often replaced by alveolar ones nearby a front vowel [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ki]]] > [[w:Help:IPA|[ti ~ t͡ʃi]]];
* ''Stopping or affrication:'' fricatives are often fortified nearby a front vowel [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[si]]] > [[w:Help:IPA|[ti ~ t͡ʃi]]];
* ''Gliding:'' taps and liquids are replaced by a glide [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈka.ru]]] > [[w:Help:IPA|[ˈka.wu]]], [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈaʎ.ʎo]]] > [[w:Help:IPA|[ˈaj.jo]]].
 
=====6 years=====
Children produce mostly adult-like segments. Their ability to produce complex sound sequences and multisyllabic words continues to improve throughout middle childhood.
 
===Typology===
[[File:Luthic Indo-European family.png|thumb|Luthic’s link to other Indo-European languages]]
Luthic has right symmetry, as other VO languages (verb before object) like English.
{| class="wikitable"
 
! Correlation !! VO language !! Examples
|-
| Adposition type || prepositions|| ''of..., than..., on...''
|-
| Order of noun and genitive || noun before genitive|| ''father'' + ''of John''
|-
| Order of adjective and standard of comparison || adjective before standard|| ''taller'' + ''than Bob''
|-
| Order of verb and adpositional phrase || verb before adpositional phrase|| ''slept'' + ''on the floor''
|-
| Order of verb and manner adverb || verb before manner adverb|| ''ran'' + ''slowly''
|-
| Order of copula and predicative || copula before predicate|| ''is'' + ''a teacher''
|-
| Order of auxiliary verb and content verb || auxiliary before content verb|| ''want'' + ''to see Mary''
|-
| Place of adverbial subordinator in clause || clause-initial subordinators|| ''because'' + ''Bob has left''
|-
|Order of noun and relative clause
|noun before relative clause
| ''movies'' + ''that we saw''
|}
 
====WALS====
The [https://wals.info/|World Atlas of Language Structures (WALS)] is a large database of structural (phonological, grammatical, lexical) properties of languages gathered from descriptive materials (such as reference grammars) by a team of [https://wals.info/author| 55 authors].
 
{| class="wikitable mw-collapsible" style="text-align:center;"
|+Morphophonological WALS Features
!
! <small>WALS</small>
!Luthic
!Italian¹
!Romanian¹
!English
!German
!Icelandic¹
|-
! Headed
|||{{Some|Mixed}}||{{Some|Mixed}}||{{Some|Mixed}}||{{Some|Mixed}}||{{Some|Mixed}}||{{Some|Mixed}}
|-
! Typology
|||{{Yes|Analytic (partially)}}||{{Yes|Analytic (partially)}}||{{Yes|Analytic (partially)}}||{{Yes|Analytic (partially)}}||{{Yes|Analytic (partially)}}||{{Yes|Analytic (partially)}}
|-
! Isochrony
|||{{Yes|Syllable}}||{{Yes|Syllable}}||{{Some|Stress}}||{{Some|Stress}}||{{Some|Stress}}||{{Yes|Syllable}}
|-
! Pro-drop
|||{{Yes}}||{{Yes}}||{{Yes}}||{{No}}||{{Some|Mostly (colloquial)}}||{{No}}
|-
! Consonant Inventories
|1A||{{No|Large}}||{{Yes|Average}}||{{Yes|Average}}||{{Yes|Average}}||{{Yes|Average}}||{{Yes|Average}}
|-
! Vowel Quality Inventories
|2A||{{No|Large (7-14)}}||{{Yes|Average (5-6)}}||{{No|Large (7-14)}}||{{No|Large (7-14)}}||{{No|Large (7-14)}}||{{No|Large (7-14)}}
|-
! Consonant-Vowel Ratio
|3A||{{No|Moderately high}}||{{Some|Average}}||{{Some|Average}}||{{Yes|Low}}||{{Yes|Low}}||{{Yes|Low}}
|-
! Voicing in Plosives and Fricatives
|4A||{{Yes|In both plosives and fricatives}}||{{Yes|In both plosives and fricatives}}||{{Yes|In both plosives and fricatives}}||{{Yes|In both plosives and fricatives}}||{{Yes|In both plosives and fricatives}}||{{Yes|In both plosives and fricatives}}
|-
! Voicing and Gaps in Plosive Systems
|5A||{{Yes|None missing in /p t k b d g/}}||{{Yes|None missing in /p t k b d g/}}||{{Yes|None missing in /p t k b d g/}}||{{Yes|None missing in /p t k b d g/}}||{{Yes|None missing in /p t k b d g/}}||{{Yes|None missing in /p t k b d g/}}
|-
! Uvular Consonants
|6A||{{Some|Uvular continuants only}}||{{No|None}}||{{No|None}}||{{No|None}}||{{Some|Uvular continuants only}}||{{No|None}}
|-
! Glottalised Consonants
|7A||{{No|No glottalised consonants}}||{{No|No glottalised consonants}}||{{No|No glottalised consonants}}||{{No|No glottalised consonants}}||{{No|No glottalised consonants}}||{{No|No glottalised consonants}}
|-
! Lateral Consonants
|8A||{{Some|/l/, no obstruent laterals}}||{{Some|/l/, no obstruent laterals}}||{{Some|/l/, no obstruent laterals}}||{{Some|/l/, no obstruent laterals}}||{{Some|/l/, no obstruent laterals}}||{{Some|/l/, no obstruent laterals}}
|-
! The Velar Nasal
|9A||{{Some|No initial velar nasal}}||{{No|No velar nasal}}||{{No|No velar nasal}}||{{Some|No initial velar nasal}}||{{Some|No initial velar nasal}}||{{Some|No initial velar nasal}}
|-
! Vowel Nasalisation
|10A||{{Yes|Contrast present}}||{{No|Contrast absent}}||{{No|Contrast absent}}||{{No|Contrast absent}}||{{No|Contrast absent}}||{{No|Contrast absent}}
|-
! Front Rounded Vowels
|11A||{{No|None}}||{{No|None}}||{{No|None}}||{{No|None}}||{{Yes|High and mid}}||{{Yes|High and mid}}
|-
! Syllable Structure
|12A||{{No|Complex}}||{{Some|Moderately complex}}||{{Some|Moderately complex}}||{{No|Complex}}||{{No|Complex}}||{{No|Complex}}
|-
! Fixed Stress Locations
|14A||{{No|No fixed stress}}||{{No|No fixed stress}}||{{No|No fixed stress}}||{{No|No fixed stress}}||{{No|No fixed stress}}||{{Yes|Initial}}
|-
! Weight-Sensitive Stress
|15A||{{Yes|Right-oriented: One of the last three}}||{{Some|Right-edge: Ultimate or penultimate}}||{{Some|Right-edge: Ultimate or penultimate}}||{{Yes|Right-oriented: One of the last three}}||{{Yes|Right-oriented: One of the last three}}||{{No|Fixed stress (no weight-sensitivity)}}
|-
! Weight Factors in Weight-Sensitive Stress Systems
|16A||{{Yes|Lexical stress}}||{{Yes|Lexical stress}}||{{Yes|Lexical stress}}||{{Some|Long vowel or coda consonant}}||{{Some|Coda consonant}}||{{No|No weight}}
|-
! Rhythm Types
|17A||{{Some|Undetermined}}||{{Some|Undetermined}}||{{Some|Undetermined}}||{{Yes|Trochaic}}||{{Yes|Trochaic}}||{{Yes|Trochaic}}
|-
! Absence of Common Consonants
|18A||{{Some|All present}}||{{Some|All present}}||{{Some|All present}}||{{Some|All present}}||{{Some|All present}}||{{Some|All present}}
|-
! Presence of Uncommon Consonants
|19A||{{Yes|‘Th’ sounds}}||{{No|None}}||{{No|None}}||{{Yes|‘Th’ sounds}}||{{No|None}}||{{Yes|‘Th’ sounds}}
|-
! Fusion of Selected Inflectional Formatives
|20A||{{Some|Exclusively concatenative}}||{{Some|Exclusively concatenative}}||{{Some|Exclusively concatenative}}||{{Some|Exclusively concatenative}}||{{Some|Exclusively concatenative}}||{{Some|Exclusively concatenative}}
|-
! Exponence of Tense-Aspect-Mood Inflection
|21B||{{Yes|TAM+agreement}}||{{Yes|TAM+agreement}}||{{Yes|TAM+agreement}}||{{Some|Monoexponential TAM}}||{{Some|Monoexponential TAM}}||{{Some|Monoexponential TAM}}
|-
! Inflectional Synthesis of the Verb
|22A||{{Yes|4-5 categories per word}}||{{Yes|4-5 categories per word}}||{{Yes|4-5 categories per word}}||{{Some|2-3 categories per word}}||{{Some|2-3 categories per word}}||{{Some|2-3 categories per word}}
|-
! Locus of Marking in the Clause
|23A||{{Yes|Double marking}}||{{Yes|Double marking}}||{{Yes|Double marking}}||{{Some|Dependent marking}}||{{Some|Dependent marking}}||{{Some|Dependent marking}}
|-
! Locus of Marking in Possessive Noun Phrases
|24A||{{Some|Dependent marking}}||{{Some|Dependent marking}}||{{Some|Dependent marking}}||{{Some|Dependent marking}}||{{Some|Dependent marking}}||{{Some|Dependent marking}}
|-
! Locus of Marking: Whole-language Typology
|25A||{{No|Inconsistent or other}}||{{No|Inconsistent or other}}||{{No|Inconsistent or other}}||{{Yes|Dependent-marking}}||{{Yes|Dependent-marking}}||{{Yes|Dependent-marking}}
|-
! Zero Marking of A and P Arguments
|25B||{{Yes|Non-zero marking}}||{{Yes|Non-zero marking}}||{{Yes|Non-zero marking}}||{{Yes|Non-zero marking}}||{{Yes|Non-zero marking}}||{{Yes|Non-zero marking}}
|-
! Prefixing vs. Suffixing in Inflectional Morphology
|26A||{{Some|Strongly suffixing}}||{{Some|Strongly suffixing}}||{{Some|Strongly suffixing}}||{{Some|Strongly suffixing}}||{{Some|Strongly suffixing}}||{{Some|Strongly suffixing}}
|-
! Reduplication
|27A||{{No|No productive reduplication}}||{{No|No productive reduplication}}||{{No|No productive reduplication}}||{{No|No productive reduplication}}||{{No|No productive reduplication}}||{{No|No productive reduplication}}
|-
! Case Syncretism
|28A||{{Yes|Core and non-core}}||{{Yes|Core and non-core}}||{{Yes|Core and non-core}}||{{Some|Core cases only}}||{{Yes|Core and non-core}}||{{Yes|Core and non-core}}
|-
! Syncretism in Verbal Person/Number Marking
|29A||{{Yes|Syncretic}}||{{Yes|Syncretic}}||{{Yes|Syncretic}}||{{Yes|Syncretic}}||{{Yes|Syncretic}}||{{Yes|Syncretic}}
|}
: ¹ Some features and values are stipulated due to lack of resources.
 
====Information rate====
The concept of “[[w:Entropy (information theory)|information density]]” relates to how languages convey [[w:Semantics|semantic information]] within the speech signal. Essentially, a language is considered dense if it uses fewer [[w:Part of speech|speech elements]] to convey a given amount of semantic meaning compared to a sparser language. Units such as [[w:Communication#Human|features]] or [[w:Articulatory gestures|articulatory gestures]] involve complex multidimensional patterns (such as gestural scores or feature matrices) that are unsuitable for computing average information density during speech communication. In contrast, each speech sample can be described in terms of discrete sequences of [[w:Phone (phonetics)|segments]] or [[w:Syllable|syllables]], which are potential candidates, although their exact significance and role in communication remain uncertain. Therefore, this study opts to utilise syllables for both methodological and theoretical reasons.
 
Assuming that for each text ''T<sub>k</sub>'', composed of ''σ<sub>k</sub>(L)'' syllables in language ''L'', the over-all semantic content ''S<sub>k</sub>'' is equivalent from one language to another, the average quantity of information per syllable for ''T<sub>k</sub>'' and for language ''L'' is calculated as in 1.
 
[[File:Equation 1.png|frameless]]
 
Since ''S<sub>k</sub>'' is language-independent, it was eliminated by computing a normalised information density (''ID'') using [[w:Vietnamese language|Vietnamese]] (''VI'') as the benchmark. For each text ''T<sub>k</sub>'' and language ''L'', ''ID<sup>k</sup><sub>L</sub>'' resulted from a pairwise comparison of the text lengths (in terms of syllables) in ''L'' and ''VI'' respectively.
 
[[File:Luthic Equation 2.png|frameless]]
 
Next, the average information density ''ID<sub>L</sub>'' (in terms of linguistic information per syllable) with reference to ''VI'' is defined as the mean of ''ID<sup>k</sup><sub>L</sub>'' evaluated for the ''K'' texts.
 
[[File:Equation 3.png|frameless]]
 
{| class="wikitable"  style="text-align: center;"
! width="25%"|Language
! width="25%"|ID<sub>L</sub>
! width="25%"|Syllabic rate
! width="25%"|Information rate
|-
| English || 0.91 || 6.19 || 1.08
|-
| French || 0.74 || 7.18 || 0.99
|-
| Italian || 0.72 || 6.99 || 0.96
|-
| Spanish || 0.63 || 7.82 || 0.98
|-
| German || 0.79 || 5.67 || 0.90
|-
| Luthic || 0.81 || 6.45 || 0.97
|-
| Vietnamese || 1 (reference) || 5.22 || 1 (reference)
|}
 
Another factor is the syllabic complexity index, being measured in two ways: '''type''' and '''token'''.
 
# Type complexity: considers each unique syllable only once when calculating the average complexity.
# Token complexity: takes into account the frequency of occurrence of each unique syllable in the corpus by weighting the complexity accordingly.
 
{| class="wikitable"  style="text-align: center;"
! width="25%"|Language
! width="25%"|Syllable inventory size
! width="25%"|Type complexity
! width="25%"|Token complexity
|-
| English || 7,931 || 3.70 || 2.48
|-
| French || 5,646 || 3.50 || 2.21
|-
| Italian || 2,719 || 3.50  || 2.30
|-
| Spanish || 1,593 || 3.30 || 2.40
|-
| German || 4,207 || 3.70 || 2.68
|-
| Luthic || 4,129 || 3.60 || 2.40
|}
 
===The Handbook of Luthic Linguistics, Culture and Religion===
{{Quote box |align=right|quoted=true |
|salign=right
|quote=''Aena lettura essenziale summa importanza, inu andarogiugga.'' <br /> “An essential lecture, of the highest importance, without equivalents.”
|source= Lucia Giamane
}}
[[File:Luthic_Inherited_Lexicon.jpg|thumb|The EDLIL]]
In 2012, a collaboration of the Circle of Linguistics, the Circle of Phonological Development and the Circle of Theology resulted in '''''The Handbook of Luthic Linguistics, Culture and Religion''''' (Luthic: ''Il Handobuocu Rasdavitascapetice, Colture e Religioni Lûthice'', abbreviated '''''HLLCR''''' / Luthic: HRCRL) initiated in 2005 by Lucia Giamane, designed to illuminate an area of knowledge that encompasses both general linguistics and specialised, philologically oriented linguistics as well as those fields of science that have developed in recent decades from the increasingly extensive research into the diverse phenomena of communicative action.
 
====Etymological Dictionary of the Luthic Inherited Lexicon====
Within the HLLCR, an entire [[w:Etymological dicitonary|etymological dictionary]] is provided. The '''''Etymological Dictionary of the Luthic Inherited Lexicon''''' (Luthic: ''Vaurdobuocu Etimologicu Lûthici Lessici Hereditati'', abbreviated '''''EDLIL''''' / Luthic: VELLH). For every Luthic entry an etymology is given, together with many Indo-European cognates, in some cases, the history of etymological research is also provided; for every entry, translations in English, French, Spanish, Italian and German are provided, together with an IPA key for the Luthic pronunciation. An [https://docs.google.com/document/d/149IdOZ6W3m8o1AZqC30LhQZ5xU5-9f3RZ0-YMH8zBLg/edit?usp=sharing| online version] of the EDLIL is provided by Ravenna University, however only the dictionary has free access, thence separated from the HLLCR.
 
===Mnemonics===
A '''mnemonic device''' ([[w:Help:IPA|/nɪˈmɒnɪk/]] [[w:Help:Pronunciation respelling key|nih-MON-ik]]) or '''memory device''' is any [[w:Learning|learning]] technique that aids information retention or retrieval in the human [[w:Memory|memory]], often by associating the information with something that is easier to remember.
 
A '''Luthic mnemonic verse''' or '''mnemonic rhyme''' is a [[w:Mnemonic|mnemonic]] device for teaching and remembering Luthic grammar. Such mnemonics have been considered by teachers to be an effective technique for schoolchildren to learn the complex rules of Luthic accidence and syntax. Mnemonics may be helpful in learning foreign languages, for example by transposing difficult foreign words with words in a language the learner knows already, also called [[w:Cognate|“cognates”]] which are very common in [[w:Romance languages|Romance languages]] and other [[w:Germanic languages|Germanic languages]]. A useful such technique is to find [[w:Linkword|linkwords]], words that have the same pronunciation in a known language as the target word, and associate them visually or auditorially with the target word; such tecniques have been applied into Luthic learning for children, Italian and other ''dialleti'' speakers.
 
 
A Luthic rhyme for remembering the masculine nominative singular, masculine accusative singular and neuter nominato-accusative singular is given by many teachers during school first years:
 
<poem>
: buonu: veglio vessare
: buono: veglio stare
: ac e buono? veglo mangiare!
</poem>
 
Translated it into English as follows:
 
<poem>
: good: I want to be
: in a good place: I want to be in
: but what about a good food? I want to eat!
</poem>
 
The '''Ravenna University Circle of Phonological Development''' also found out that mnemonics can be used in aiding children with [[w:Autism spectrum|autism spectrum disorder (ASD)]] and other [[w:Neurodevelopmental disorder|neurodevelopmental disorders]], patients with memory deficits that could be caused by [[w:Head injuries|head injuries]], [[w:Strokes|strokes]], [[w:Epilepsy|epilepsy]], [[w:Multiple sclerosis|multiple sclerosis]] and other neurological conditions, however, in the case of stroke patients, the results did not reach statistical significance.
 
==Grammar==
Luthic Grammar is the body of rules describing the properties of the Luthic language. Luthic words can be divided into the following [[w:Part of speech|lexical categories]]: articles, nouns, adjectives, pronouns, verbs, adverbs, prepositions, conjunctions, and interjections.
 
===Nouns===
Luthic grammar is almost typical of the grammar of Romance languages in general. Cases exist for personal pronouns (nominative, accusative, dative, genitive), and unlike other Romance languages (except Romanian), they also exist for nouns, but are often ignored in common speech, mainly because of the Italian influence, a language who lacks noun cases. There are three basic classes of nouns in Luthic, referred to as genders, masculine, feminine and neuter. Masculine nouns typically end in ''-u'', with plural marked by ''-i'', feminine nouns typically end in ''-a'', with plural marked by ''-e'', and neuter nouns typically end in ''-o'', with plural marked by ''-a''. Some feminine nouns, together with masculine nouns, the so called u-stems may also typically end in ''-u'', with the plural marked by ''-us'', while neuter u-stems have the plural marked by ''-ua''. A fifth category of nouns is [[w:Marker (linguistics)|unmarked]] for gender, ending in ''-e'' in the singular and ''-i'' in the plural; a variant of the unmarked declension is found ending in ''-r'' in the singular and ''-i'' in the plural, it lacks neuter nouns:
 
Examples:
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
! Definition !! Gender !! Singular nominative !! Plural nominative
|-
| Son || Masculine || Figliu || Figli
|-
| Flower || Feminine || Biomna || Biomne
|-
| Fruit || Neuter || Acrano || Acrana
|-
| Port || Masculine || Portu || Portus
|-
| Hand || Feminine || Manu || Manus
|-
| Wealth || Neuter || Faeu || Faeua
|-
| Love || Masculine || Amore || Amori
|-
| Art || Feminine || Crafte || Crafti
|-
| Water || Neuter || Vadne || Vadni
|-
| King || Masculine || Rege || Regi
|-
| Heart || Neuter || Haertene || Haerteni
|-
| Father || Masculine || Faðar || Faðari
|-
| Mother || Feminine || Moðar || Moðari
|}
 
Declension paradigm in [[w:Formal language|formal]] Standard Luthic:
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
! Number
! Case
! o-stem <sup>m</sup>
! a-stem <sup>f</sup>
! o-stem <sup>n</sup>
! i-stem <sup>unm</sup>
! r-stem <sup>unm</sup>
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| dagu
| geva
| hauviþo
| crafte
| broþar
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| dago
| geva
| hauviþo
| crafte
| broþare
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| daga
| geva
| hauviþa
| crafti
| broþari
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| dagi
| geve
| hauviþi
| crafti
| broþari
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| dagi
| geve
| hauviþa
| crafti
| broþari
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| dagos
| gevas
| hauviþa
| craftes
| broþares
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| dagom
| gevam
| hauviþom
| craftivo
| broþarivo
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| dagoro
| gevaro
| hauviþoro
| craftem
| broþarem
|}
 
The declension paradigm of u-stems nouns is simplier than other nouns, since the nominative is identical to the accusative.
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
! Number
! Case
! u-stem <sup>m</sup>
! u-stem <sup>f</sup>
! u-stem <sup>n</sup>
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| portu
| manu
| faeu
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| portu
| manu
| faeu
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| portau
| manau
| faeau
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| portaus
| manaus
| faeaus
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| portus
| manus
| faeua
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| portus
| manus
| faeua
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| portivo
| manivo
| faeivo
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| portum
| manum
| faeum
|}
 
A small class of quasi-irregular nouns is found, itself being a variant of the unmarked class. The nominative forms always are [[w:Oxytone|oxytones]] and hide their consonant stem ''-d-''. These are often called d-stem:
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
! Number
! Case
! d-stem <sup>unm</sup>
! d-stem <sup>unm</sup>
! d-stem <sup>unm</sup>
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| piê
| fê
| -tâ
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| piede
| fede
| -tade
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| piedi
| fedi
| -tadi
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| piedi
| fedi
| -tadi
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| piedi
| fedi
| -tadi
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| piedes
| fedes
| -tades
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| piedivo
| fedivo
| -tadivo
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| piedem
| fedem
| -tadem
|}
 
===Pronouns===
Luthic, like Latin and Gothic, inherited the full set of Indo-European pronouns: personal pronouns (including [[w:Reflexive pronoun|reflexive pronouns]] for each of the three [[w:Grammatical person|grammatical persons]]), possessive pronouns, both simple and compound demonstratives, relative pronouns, interrogatives and indefinite pronouns. Each follows a particular pattern of inflection (partially mirroring the noun declension), much like other Indo-European languages. Although Luthic inherited a paradigm extremely close to Gothic (and Common Germanic), the Italic influence is visible in the genitive and plural formations.
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
! PIE !! Latin !! Gothic !! German !! Luthic
|-
| [[wikt:Reconstruction:Proto-Indo-European/wéy|*u̯ei̯]] <sup>nom</sup>, [[wikt:Reconstruction:Proto-Indo-European/n̥smé|*n̥s]] <sup>acc</sup> || [[wikt:nos#Latin|nōs]] <sup>nom/acc</sup> || [[wikt:𐍅𐌴𐌹𐍃|𐍅𐌴𐌹𐍃]] <sup>nom</sup>, [[wikt:𐌿𐌽𐍃|𐌿𐌽𐍃]] <sup>acc</sup> || [[wikt:wir#German|wir]] <sup>nom</sup>, [[wikt:uns#German|uns]] <sup>acc</sup> || vi <sup>nom</sup>, unse <sup>acc</sup>
|}
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+Personal pronouns of Standard Luthic
! rowspan=2| Number
! rowspan=2| Case
! rowspan=2| 1<small><sup>st</sup></small> person
! rowspan=2| 2<small><sup>st</sup></small> person
! colspan=3| 3<small><sup>rd</sup></small> person
! rowspan=2| reflexive
|-
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| ic
| þû
| is
| ia
| atha
| —
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| mic
| þuc
| ino
| ina
| atha
| sic
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| mis
| þus
| ia
| ia
| ia
| sis
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| meina
| þeina
| eis
| ise
| eis
| seina
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| vi
| gi
| eis
| ise
| ia
| —
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| unse
| isve
| eis
| isas
| ia
| sic
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| unsis
| isvis
| eis
| eis
| eis
| sis
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| unsara
| isvara
| eisôro
| eisâro
| eisôro
| seina
|}
 
Pronouns often become a [[w:Clitic|clitic]] nearby verbs, mainly with imperative or after non-finite forms of verbs (often apocopating the terminal -e of infinitives), being applied as [[w:Clitic#Enclitic|enclitics]]. A good example is ''faur þuc'' “for you” but ''(ic) dauþo·t'' “I kill you”. Paradigmata is given below:
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+Enclitic pronouns
! rowspan=2| Number
! rowspan=2| Case
! rowspan=2| 1<small><sup>st</sup></small> person
! rowspan=2| 2<small><sup>st</sup></small> person
! colspan=3| 3<small><sup>rd</sup></small> person
! rowspan=2| reflexive
|-
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
|-
!rowspan=3| Singular
! {{small|acc.}}
| mi <br> ·m
| ti <br> ·t
| lo <br> ·l
| la <br> ·l
| lo <br> ·l
| si <br> ·s
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| mi <br> ·m
| ti <br> ·t
| gli <br> ·gl
| gle <br> ·gl
| gli <br> ·gl
| si <br> ·s
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| —
| —
| ne <br> ·n
| ne <br> ·n
| ne <br> ·n
| ne <br> ·n
|-
!rowspan=3| Plural
! {{small|acc.}}
| ci
| vi
| los <br> ·l
| las <br> ·l
| la <br> ·l
| si <br> ·s
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| ci
| vi
| li <br> ·l
| li <br> ·l
| li <br> ·l
| si <br> ·s
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| —
| —
| ne <br> ·n
| ne <br> ·n
| ne <br> ·n
| ne <br> ·n
|}
 
Apocopated forms happen before or after (vide below) a vowel, e.g.:
* ''(Ic) gevo·t lo chiaefo'' “I give you the bread”
* ''(Vi) gevamos·ti lo chiaefo'' “we give you the bread
* ''(Þû) gevas·mi lo chiaefo'' “you give me the bread”
* ''(Eis) gevando·m lo chiaefo'' “they give me the bread”
 
Luthic has [[wikt:mesoclitic|mesoclitic pronouns]], which happen in compounded verbs with ''havere'' (vide [[Luthic#Verbs|§ Verbs]]), i.e. the present conditionals active and passive and the future indicatives active and passive:
* ''(Ic) gever·t’ô lo chiaefo'' “I will give you the bread”
* ''(Ic) gever·vi·ô lo chiaefo'' “I will give you the bread”
* ''(Vi) gever·l’êmos lo chiaefo'' “We will give him the bread”
 
Optionally, ''ti'' or ''·t'' can be voiced to ''di'' or ''·d'' after a voiced sonorant:
* ''(Ic) gever·d’ô lo chiaefo'' “I will give you the bread”
 
Verbs that start with a vowel or ⟨h⟩ call for a [[w:Clitic#Proclitic|proclitic]], except for first and second person plural:
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+Proclitic pronouns
! rowspan=2| Number
! rowspan=2| Case
! rowspan=2| 1<small><sup>st</sup></small> person
! rowspan=2| 2<small><sup>st</sup></small> person
! colspan=3| 3<small><sup>rd</sup></small> person
! rowspan=2| reflexive
|-
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
|-
!rowspan=3| Singular
! {{small|acc.}}
| m’
| t’
| l’
| l’
| l’
| s’
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| m’
| t’
| gl’
| gl’
| gl’
| s’
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| —
| —
| n’
| n’
| n’
| n’
|-
!rowspan=3| Plural
! {{small|acc.}}
| —
| —
| l’
| l’
| l’
| s’
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| —
| —
| l’
| l’
| l’
| s’
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| —
| —
| n’
| n’
| n’
| n’
|}
 
* (Ic) t’amo “I love you”
* (Ic) t’hazo “I hate you”
* (Eis) t’helpando “they help you”
 
Furthermore, Luthic has a set of poetic pronouns, often used to translate [[w:Italian poetry|Italian poetry]] or to better fit [[w:Metre (poetry)|metre]], these are also very common in [[w:Sociolects|sociolects]] influenecd by Italian or other nearby Romance languages.
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+Poetic variants
! rowspan=2| Number
! rowspan=2| Case
! rowspan=2| 1<small><sup>st</sup></small> person
! rowspan=2| 2<small><sup>st</sup></small> person
! colspan=3| 3<small><sup>rd</sup></small> person
! rowspan=2| reflexive
|-
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| '''io'''
| þû
| is
| ia
| atha
| —
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| '''mi'''
| '''þi'''
| ino
| ina
| atha
| '''si'''
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| '''mi'''
| '''þi'''
| ia
| ia
| ia
| '''si'''
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| meina
| þeina
| eis
| ise
| eis
| seina
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| '''nôi'''
| '''vôi'''
| eis
| ise
| ia
| —
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| '''nôi'''
| '''vôi'''
| eis
| isas
| ia
| '''si'''
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| '''ci'''
| '''vi'''
| eis
| eis
| eis
| '''si'''
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| '''nosâra'''
| '''vosâra'''
| eisôro
| eisâro
| eisôro
| seina
|}
 
* These forms are also common in everday speech due to Italian influence. Nevertheless, both declension paradigmata are considered to be correct. Main differences are emphasised.
 
Some Luthic speakers may have [[w:T–V distinction|T–V distinction]] (the contextual use of different pronouns that exists in some languages and serves to convey formality or [[w:Social distance|familiarity]]).
{| class="wikitable"
!colspan="2"| Unequal authority
!colspan="2"| Equal authority
|-
| Employer        || Costumer        || Parent          || Elder sibling
|-
| T↓V ↑V || T↓V ↑V || T↓↑V              || T↓↑V
|-
| Employee        || Waiter          || Child            || Younger sibling
|}
 
The superior has choice on T–V while the subordinate has not; except if talking to one another, then both subordinates can choice. In Luthic, ''þû'' is only used as an informal pronoun. It is only addressed to persons that one knows well, like family members and friends. It is also most commonly used among peers as a sign of equality, especially among young people. In formal situations with strangers and acquaintances, ''vôi'' is used instead. The pronoun ''gi'' was used in formal situations; this was once the abundant usage, but it has completely fallen out of use. In the plural form, ''gi'' is a T pronoun.
 
====Possessive pronouns====
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+Possessive pronouns of Standard Luthic
! rowspan=2| Number
! rowspan=2| Case
!colspan=3| 1<small><sup>st</sup></small> person singular
!colspan=3| 2<small><sup>st</sup></small> person singular
!colspan=3| 3<small><sup>rd</sup></small> person singular
|-
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| meinu
| meina
| meino
| þeinu
| þeina
| þeino
| seinu
| seina
| seina
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| meino
| meina
| meino
| þeino
| þeina
| þeino
| seino
| seina
| seino
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| meina
| meina
| meina
| þeina
| þeina
| þeina
| seina
| seina
| seina
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| meini
| meine
| meini
| þeini
| þeine
| þeini
| seini
| seine
| seini
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| meini
| meine
| meina
| þeini
| þeine
| þeina
| seini
| seine
| seina
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| meinos
| meinas
| meina
| þeinos
| þeinas
| þeina
| seinos
| seinas
| seina
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| meinom
| meinam
| meinom
| þeinom
| þeinam
| þeinom
| seinom
| seinam
| seinom
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| meinoro
| meinaro
| meinoro
| þeinoro
| þeinaro
| þeinoro
| seinoro
| seinaro
| seinoro
|}
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+Possessive pronouns of Standard Luthic
! rowspan=2| Number
! rowspan=2| Case
!colspan=3| 1<small><sup>st</sup></small> person plural
!colspan=3| 2<small><sup>st</sup></small> person plural
!colspan=3| 3<small><sup>rd</sup></small> person plural
|-
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| unsar
| unsara
| unsaro
| isvar
| isvara
| isvaro
| seinu
| seina
| seino
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| unsare
| unsara
| unsaro
| isvare
| isvara
| isvaro
| seino
| seina
| seino
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| unsari
| unsara
| unsara
| isvari
| isvara
| isvara
| seina
| seina
| seina
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| unsari
| unsare
| unsari
| isvari
| isvare
| isvari
| seini
| seine
| seini
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| unsari
| unsare
| unsara
| isvari
| isvare
| isvara
| seini
| seine
| seina
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| unsares
| unsaras
| unsara
| isvares
| isvaras
| isvara
| seinos
| seinas
| seina
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| unsarivo
| unsaram
| unsarom
| isvarivo
| isvaram
| isvarom
| seinom
| seinam
| seinom
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| unsarem
| unsararo
| unsaroro
| isvarem
| isvararo
| isvaroro
| seinoro
| seinaro
| seinoro
|}
 
The pronouns unsar, isvar have an irregular declension, being declined like an unmarked adjective in the masculine gender and marked in the other genders. Every possessive pronoun is declined like an o-stem adjective for masculine and neuter gender, while its feminine counterpart is declined as an a-stem adjective
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+Poetic variants
! rowspan=2| Number
! rowspan=2| Case
!colspan=3| 1<small><sup>st</sup></small> person singular
!colspan=3| 2<small><sup>st</sup></small> person singular
!colspan=3| 3<small><sup>rd</sup></small> person singular
|-
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| miu
| mia
| mio
| þiu
| þia
| þio
| siu
| sia
| sio
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| mio
| mia
| mio
| þio
| þia
| þio
| sio
| sia
| sio
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| mia
| mia
| mia
| þia
| þia
| þia
| sia
| sia
| sia
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| miei
| mie
| miei
| þiei
| þie
| þiei
| sui
| sue
| sui
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| miei
| mie
| mia
| þiei
| þie
| þia
| sui
| sue
| sua
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| mios
| mias
| mia
| þios
| þias
| þia
| suos
| suas
| sua
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| miom
| miam
| miom
| þiom
| þiam
| þiom
| suom
| suam
| suom
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| mioro
| miaro
| mioro
| þioro
| þiaro
| þioro
| suoro
| suaro
| suoro
|}
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+Poetic variants
! rowspan=2| Number
! rowspan=2| Case
!colspan=3| 1<small><sup>st</sup></small> person plural
!colspan=3| 2<small><sup>st</sup></small> person plural
!colspan=3| 3<small><sup>rd</sup></small> person plural
|-
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| nostru
| nostra
| nostro
| vostru
| vostra
| vostro
| suu
| sua
| suo
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| nostro
| nostra
| nostro
| vostro
| vostra
| vostro
| suo
| sua
| suo
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| nostra
| nostra
| nostra
| vostra
| vostra
| vostra
| sua
| sua
| sua
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| nostri
| nostre
| nostri
| vostri
| vostre
| vostri
| sui
| sue
| sui
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| nostri
| nostre
| nostra
| vostri
| vostre
| vostra
| sui
| sue
| sua
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| nostros
| nostras
| nostra
| vostros
| vostras
| vostra
| suos
| suas
| sua
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| nostrom
| nostram
| nostrom
| vostrom
| vostram
| vostrom
| suom
| suam
| suom
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| nostroro
| nostraro
| nostroro
| vostroro
| vostraro
| vostroro
| suoro
| suaro
| suoro
|}
 
====Interrogative and indefinite pronouns====
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+Interrogative pronouns of Standard Luthic
! rowspan=2| Number
! rowspan=2| Case
!colspan=3| what, who
!colspan=3| which
|-
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| ce
| ce
| ce
| carge
| carge
| carge
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| ci
| ci
| ci
| cargi
| cargi
| cargi
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| ciammo
| cise
| ciammo
| cargiammo
| cargise
| cargiammo
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| cis
| cise
| cis
| cargis
| cargise
| cargis
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| ci
| ce
| cia
| cargi
| carge
| cargia
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| ces
| cias
| cia
| cargios
| cargias
| cargia
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| civo
| civo
| civo
| cargiom
| cargiam
| cargiom
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| coro
| caro
| coro
| cargioro
| cargiaro
| cargioro
|}
 
* In the masculine singular, not agreeing with any other word: “who”.
** As a predicate agreeing in gender and number with subject: “who”.
* In the neuter singular, not agreing with any other word: “what”.
* Accusative forms: “whom”.
* Genitive forms: “whose”.
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+Indefinite pronouns of Standard Luthic
! rowspan=2| Number
! rowspan=2| Case
!colspan=3| each, everyone, everything
!colspan=3| every
!colspan=3| whatever, whoever
|-
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| casu
| casa
| caso
| cargisu
| cargisa
| cargiso
| cece
| cece
| cece
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| caso
| casa
| caso
| cargiso
| cargisa
| cargiso
| ceci
| ceci
| ceci
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| cammo
| chise
| cammo
| cargiamme
| cargise
| cargiamme
| ceciammo
| cecise
| ceciammo
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| chis
| chise
| chis
| cargesu
| cargesu
| cargesu
| cecis
| cecise
| cecis
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
| ceci
| cece
| cecia
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
| ceces
| cecias
| cecia
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
| cecivo
| cecivo
| cecivo
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
| cecoro
| cecaro
| cecoro
|}
 
The relative pronoun ''ei'' is fully indeclinable, it is sometimes called “common relative particle”.
 
====Demonstrative pronouns====
 
Luthic has a Proximal-Medial-Distal demonstrative system:
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+Demonstrative pronouns of Standard Luthic
! rowspan=2| Number
! rowspan=2| Case
!colspan=3| Proximal
!colspan=3| Medial
!colspan=3| Distal
|-
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| su
| sa
| þatha
| este
| esta
| esto
| giaenu
| giaena
| giaeno
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| þo
| þa
| þatha
| este
| esta
| esto
| giaeno
| giaena
| giaeno
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| þammo
| þise
| þammo
| esti
| esta
| esta
| giaena
| giaena
| giaena
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| þis
| þise
| þis
| esti
| este
| esti
| giaeni
| giaene
| giaeni
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| þi
| þe
| þa
| esti
| este
| esta
| giaeni
| giaene
| giaena
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| þos
| þas
| þa
| estes
| estas
| esta
| giaenos
| giaenas
| giaena
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| þom
| þam
| þom
| estivo
| estam
| estom
| giaenom
| giaenam
| giaenom
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| þisoro
| þisaro
| þisoro
| estem
| estaro
| estoro
| giaenoro
| giaenaro
| giaenoro
|}
 
===Articles===
Luthic articles are used similarly to the [[w:English articles|English articles]], a and the. However, they are declined differently according to the number, gender and case of their nouns.
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
! rowspan=2| Number
! rowspan=2| Case
!colspan=3| Indefinite
!colspan=3| Definite
|-
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
! {{small|masculine}}
! {{small|feminine}}
! {{small|neuter}}
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| aenu
| aena
| aeno
| il
| la
| latha, atha
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| aeno
| aena
| aeno
| lo
| la
| latha, atha
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| aena
| aena
| aena
| la
| la
| la
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| aeni
| aene
| aeni
| gli, i
| gli, i
| gli, i
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| aeni
| aene
| aena
| gli, i
| le
| la
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| aenos
| aenas
| aena
| los
| las
| la
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| aenom
| aenam
| aenom
| lom
| lam
| lom
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| aenoro
| aenaro
| aenoro
| loro
| loro
| loro
|}
 
===Adjectives===
In Luthic, an adjective can be placed before or after the noun. The [[w:Markedness|unmarked]] placement for most adjectives is after the noun. Placing the adjective after the noun can alter its meaning or indicate [[w:Restrictiveness|restrictiveness]] of reference.
 
* ''Aenu buocu rossu'' “a red book” (unmarked)
* ''Aenu rossu buocu'' “a book that is red” (marked)
 
Adjectives are inflected for case, gender and number, the paradigmata are identical to the nominal paradigmata.
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
! Number
! Case
! o-stem <sup>m</sup>
! a-stem <sup>f</sup>
! o-stem <sup>n</sup>
! i-stem <sup>unm</sup>
! r-stem <sup>unm</sup>
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| rossu
| rossa
| rosso
| felice
| polchar
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| rosso
| rossa
| rosso
| felice
| polchare
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| rossa
| rossa
| rossa
| felici
| polchari
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| rossi
| rosse
| rossi
| felici
| polchari
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| rossi
| rosse
| rossa
| felici
| polchari
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| rossos
| rossas
| rossa
| felices
| polchares
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| rossom
| rossam
| rossom
| felicivo
| polcharivo
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| rossoro
| rossaro
| rossoro
| felicem
| polcharem
|}
 
Luthic has two grammatical constructions for expressing comparison: comparative and superlative. The suffixes ''-izu'' (the “comparative”) and ''-issimu'' (the “superlative”) are of Indo-European origin and are cognate with the Latin suffixes [[wikt:-ior|''-ior'']] and [[wikt:-issimus|''-issimus'']] and Ancient Greek [[wikt:-ίων|''-ῑ́ων'']] (''-īōn'') and [[wikt:-ιστος|''-ῐστος'']] (''-istos''). This system also contains a number of irregular forms, mainly because of [[wikt:Suppletion|suppletion]].
 
Regular examples are:
 
* ''rossu'' “red” > ''rossizu'' “redder”
* ''rossu'' “red” > ''rossissimu'' “reddest”
* ''polchar'' “beautiful” > ''polcharizu'' “more beautiful”
* ''polchar'' “beautiful” > ''polcharissimu'' “most beautiful”
 
Irregular examples are:
 
* ''buonu'' “good” > ''betezu'' “better”
* ''buonu'' “good” > ''betessimu'' “best”
* ''malu'' “bad” > ''vaersizu'' “worse”
* ''malu'' “bad” > ''vaersissimu'' “worst”
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ '''Comparative'''
|-
! Number
! Case
! o-stem <sup>m</sup>
! a-stem <sup>f</sup>
! o-stem <sup>n</sup>
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| -izu
| -iza
| -izo
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| -izo
| -iza
| -izo
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| -iza
| -iza
| -iza
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| -izi
| -ize
| -izi
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| -izi
| -ize
| -iza
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| -izos
| -izas
| -iza
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| -izom
| -izam
| -izom
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| -izoro
| -izaro
| -izoro
|}
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ '''Superlative'''
|-
! Number
! Case
! o-stem <sup>m</sup>
! a-stem <sup>f</sup>
! o-stem <sup>n</sup>
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| -issimu
| -issima
| -issimo
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| -issimo
| -issima
| -issimo
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| -issima
| -issima
| -issima
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| -issimi
| -issime
| -issimi
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| -issimi
| -issime
| -issima
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| -issimos
| -issimas
| -issima
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| -issimom
| -issimam
| -issimom
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| -issimoro
| -issimaro
| -issimoro
|}
 
===Numerals===
 
{| class="wikitable mw-collapsible" style="text-align:center;"
|+Standard Luthic numbers
! rowspan="2" | #
! colspan="2" | Cardinal
! colspan="2" | Ordinal
|-
! Word
! Declension
! Word
! Declension
|-
! 0
| zephero
| o-stem adjective, [[w:Singulare tantum|''singulare tantum'']]
| zepherêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 1
| aenu
| o-stem adjective
| fromu
| o-stem adjetive
|-
! 2
| tvi
| o-stem adjective, [[w:Plurale tantum|''plurale tantum'']]
| anþar
| r-stem adjetive
|-
! 3
| þreis
| indeclinable
| þrigiane
| i-stem adjetive
|-
! 4
| fidvor
| indeclinable
| fidvorêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 5
| fimfe
| indeclinable
| fimfêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 6
| sê
| indeclinable
| sestu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 7
| siu
| indeclinable
| siudu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 8
| attau
| indeclinable
| attudu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 9
| niu
| indeclinable
| niudu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 10
| ziu
| indeclinable
| ziudu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 11
| aellefe
| indeclinable
| aelleftu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 12
| tvelefe
| indeclinable
| tveleftu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 13
| þreiziu
| indeclinable
| þreiziudu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 14
| fidvorziu
| indeclinable
| fidvorziudu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 15
| fimfeziu
| indeclinable
| fimfeziudu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 16
| seziu
| indeclinable
| seziudu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 17
| setteziu
| indeclinable
| setteziudu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 18
| tvedivinta
| indeclinable
| tvedivintêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 19
| aendivinta
| indeclinable
| aendivintêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 20
| vinta
| indeclinable
| vintêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 28
| tvediþreinta
| indeclinable
| tvediþreintêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 29
| aendiþreinta
| indeclinable
| aendiþreintêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 30
| þreinta
| indeclinable
| þreintêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 38
| tvedifidvorinta
| indeclinable
| tvedifidvorintêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 39
| aendifidvorinta
| indeclinable
| aendifidvorintêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 40
| fidvorinta
| indeclinable
| fidvorintêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 50
| fimfinta
| indeclinable
| fimfintêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 60
| sessanta
| indeclinable
| sessantêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 70
| siunta
| indeclinable
| siuntêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 80
| attanta
| indeclinable
| attantêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 90
| niunta
| indeclinable
| niuntêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 98
| tvedihondu
| o-stem adjective
| tvedihondêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 99
| aendihondu
| o-stem adjective
| aendihondêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 100
| hondu
| o-stem adjective
| hondêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|}
 
* [[wikt:adverbial number|Adverbial numbers]] are formed together with the noun ''vece'': ''aena vece'' “once”, ''tve veci'' “twice”.
* [[wikt:multiplier number|Multiplier numbers]] are formed together with the noun ''falþu'': ''aenu falþu'' “single, onefold”, ''hondi falþi'' “centuple, hundredfold”. This noun was originally a suffix, compare Gothic [[wikt:𐌰𐌹𐌽𐍆𐌰𐌻𐌸𐍃|𐌰𐌹𐌽𐍆𐌰𐌻𐌸𐍃]] (''ainfalþs''), English [[wikt:onefold|''onefold'']], Icelandic [[wikt:einfaldur|''einfaldur'']].
* [[wikt:distributive number|Distributive numbers]] are formed together with the adjective ''falþoleicu'': ''þreis falþoleici'' “triply”.
* [[wikt:collective number|Collective numbers]] are formed together with the adjective ''somu'': ''tvelefe somi'' “dozen”.
* [[wikt:fractional number|Fractional numbers]] are formed together with the adjective ''integru'': ''fidvor integri'' “quarter”.
 
{| class="wikitable mw-collapsible" style="text-align:center;"
|+Standard Luthic large numbers
! rowspan="2" | #
! colspan="2" | Cardinal
! colspan="2" | Ordinal
|-
! Word
! Declension
! Word
! Declension
|-
! 200
| tvihondi <sup>α</sup>
| o-stem adjective, ''plurale tantum''
| tvihondêsimu <sup>β</sup>
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 500
| fimfehondi <sup>γ</sup>
| o-stem adjective, ''plurale tantum''
| fimfehondêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 1 000
| mille
| i-stem
| millêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 2 000
| tvimilli <sup>α</sup>
| i-stem adjective, ''plurale tantum''
| tvimillêsimu <sup>β</sup>
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 5 000
| fimfemilli <sup>γ</sup>
| i-stem adjective, ''plurale tantum''
| fimfemillêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 10 000
| ziumilli <sup>γ</sup>
| i-stem adjective, ''plurale tantum''
| ziumillêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 20 000
| vintamilli <sup>γ</sup>
| i-stem adjective, ''plurale tantum''
| vintamillêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 50 000
| fimfintamilli <sup>γ</sup>
| i-stem adjective, ''plurale tantum''
| fimfintamillêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 100 000
| hondimilli <sup>α</sup>
| i-stem adjective, ''plurale tantum''
| hondimillêsimu <sup>β</sup>
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 200 000
| tvihondimilli <sup>δ</sup>
| i-stem adjective, ''plurale tantum''
| tvihondimillêsimu <sup>β</sup>
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 500 000
| fimfehondimilli <sup>ε</sup>
| i-stem adjective, ''plurale tantum''
| fimfehondimillêsimu <sup>β</sup>
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 10<sup>6</sup>
| millione
| i-stem adjective
| millionêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 2 x 10<sup>6</sup>
| tvimillioni <sup>α</sup>
| i-stem adjective, ''plurale tantum''
| tvimillionêsimu <sup>β</sup>
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 10<sup>9</sup>
| milliarde
| i-stem adjective
| milliardêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 10<sup>12</sup>
| billione
| i-stem adjective
| billionêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 10<sup>15</sup>
| billiarde
| i-stem adjective
| billiardêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|-
! 10<sup>19</sup>
| trillione
| i-stem adjective
| trillionêsimu
| o-stem adjective
|}
 
:: <sup>α</sup> Both elements are declinable, e.g. ''tvehonde'', ''tvahonda'';
:: <sup>β</sup> Only the last element is declinable, e.g. ''tvihondêsima'', ''tvihondêsimoro'';
:: <sup>γ</sup> The first element is indeclinable;
:: <sup>δ</sup> All the three elements are declinable, e.g. ''tvarohondaromillem'', ''tvoshondosmilles'';
:: <sup>ε</sup> Only the two last elements are declinable, e.g. ''fimfehondommillivo''.
 
Luthic uses the [[w:Long and short scales|long scale]], unlike English that uses the [[w:Long and short scales|short scale]] instead. The long and short scales are two of several naming systems for integer powers of ten which use some of the same terms for different magnitudes. Luthic has a verbal system similar to Italian, German, Dutch and French:
[[File:EScalas corta y larga.svg|thumb|center|650px|Short and long scale usage throughout the world{{Div col|small=yes|colwidth=10em}}
{{Legend|#bee6a0|Long scale}}
{{Legend|#3b4e93|Short scale}}
{{Legend|#0088ab|Short scale with milliard instead of billion}}
{{Legend|#30bead|Both scales}}
{{Legend|#fc8d62|Other naming system}}
{{Legend|#E0E0E0|No data}}
{{div col end}}]]
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
!
! Luthic
! Italian
! German
! Dutch
! French
! English
|-
! 10<sup>6</sup>
| millione
| [[wikt:milione#Italian|milione]]
| [[wikt:Million#German|Million]]
| [[wikt:miljoen#Dutch|miljoen]]
| [[wikt:million#French|million]]
| [[wikt:million#English|million]]
|-
! 10<sup>9</sup>
| milliarde
| [[wikt:miliardo#Italian|miliardo]]
| [[wikt:Milliarde#German|Milliarde]]
| [[wikt:miljard#Dutch|miljard]]
| [[wikt:milliard#French|milliard]]
| [[wikt:billion#English|billion]]
|-
! 10<sup>12</sup>
| billione
| [[wikt:bilione#Italian|bilione]]
| [[wikt:Billion#German|Billion]]
| [[wikt:biljoen#Dutch|biljoen]]
| [[wikt:billiond#French|billion]]
| [[wikt:trillion#English|trillion]]
|}
 
Combinations of a decade and a unit are constructed in a regular way: the decade comes first followed by the unit. No spaces are written between them. Vowel collision triggers an [[w:Interpunct|interpunct]]. For example:
 
* 28 ''vinta·attau'' (lit “twenty eight”)
* 73 ''siuntaþreis'' (lit “seventy three”)
* 82 ''attantatvi'' (lit “eighty two”)
* 95 ''niuntafimfe'' (lit “ninety five”)
 
Combinations of a hundred and a lower number are expressed by just placing them together, with the hundred coming first.
 
* 111 ''honduaellefe''
* 164 ''hondusessantafidvor''
* 225 ''tvihondivintafimfe''
* 788 ''siuhondi·attanta·attau''
 
Combinations of a thousand and a lower number are expressed by placing them together, with the thousand coming first. A space is written between them.
 
* 1 066 ''mille sessantasê''
* 9 011 ''niumilli aellefe''
* 61 500 ''sessanta·aenomilli fimfehondi''
* 123 456 ''hondivintaþreismilli fidvorhondifimfintasê''
 
For millions and above, combinations with lower numbers are much the same as with the thousands.
 
* 123 456 789 ''hondivintaþreis millioni fidvorhondifimfintasêhondi siuhondiniunta·attau''
* 10 987 654 321 ''ziu milliardi niuhondi·attantasiumillioni sehondifimfintafidvorhondi þreishondivinta·aenu''
 
When alone, numbers are always in the masculine gender, however numbers always agree in gender and in case (if declinable) with the head noun. For example:
 
* ''aenu vaere'' (“one man”)
* ''aena qena'' (“one woman”)
* ''aenu harge hondom vaerivo'' (“an army [composed] of hundred men”)
* ''il meinu hareme hâþ tvashondas qenas'' (“my harem has two hundred women”)
 
Compound numbers have both elements declined (if possible):
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ '''tvihondi, tvehonde, tvahonda'''
! Number
! Case
! o-stem <sup>m</sup>
! a-stem <sup>f</sup>
! o-stem <sup>n</sup>
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| tvihondi
| tvehonde
| tvahonda
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| tvoshondos
| tvashondas
| tvahonda
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| tvomhondom
| tvamhondam
| tvomhondom
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| tvorohondoro
| tvarohondaro
| tvorohondoro
|}
 
===Verbs===
Luthic verbs have a high degree of [[w:Inflection|inflection]], the majority of which follows one of four common patterns of [[w:Grammatical conjugation|conjugation]]. Luthic conjugation is affected by [[w:Voice (grammar)|voice]], [[w:Grammatical mood|mood]], [[w:Grammatical person|person]], [[w:Grammatical tense|tense]], [[w: Grammatical number|number]], [[w:Grammatical aspect|aspect]] and occasionally [[w:Grammatical gender|gender]].
 
The four classes of verbs (conjugation’s patterns) are distinguished by the infinitive’s endings form of the verb:
 
* <span style="color:green">'''1st conjugation</span>:''' '''-are''' (þagc'''are''' “to think”);
* <span style="color:darkorange">'''2nd conjugation</span>:''' '''-ere''' (cred'''ere''' “to believe”);
* <span style="color:red">'''3rd conjugation</span>:''' '''-ore''' (hol'''ore''' “to accuse”);
* <span style="color:purple">'''4th conjugation</span>:''' '''-ire''' (dorm'''ire''' “to sleep”).
 
Additionally, Luthic has a number of verbs that do not follow predictable patterns in all conjugation classes, most markedly the present and the past. Often classified together as irregular verbs, their irregularities occur to different degrees, with forms of ''vessare'' “to be”, and somewhat less extremely, ''havere'' “to have”, the least predictable. Others, such as ''ganare'' “to go”, ''stare'' “to stay, to stand”, ''taugiare'' “to do, to make”,  and numerous others, follow various degrees of regularity within paradigms, largely due to suppletion, historical sound change or analogical developments.
 
====Present====
The present is used for:
 
* Events happening in the present;
* Habitual actions;
* Current states of being and conditions;
* Actions planned to occur in the future.
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Active Indicative
|-
!
! '''''þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>'''''
! '''''cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>'''''
! '''''hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>'''''
! '''''dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>'''''
! '''''vessare'''''
! '''''havere'''''
! '''''ganare'''''
! '''''stare'''''
! '''''taugiare'''''
|-
! ''ic''
| þagc<span style="color:green">o</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">o</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">o</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">o</span>
| ''im''
| ''aggio''
| ''gô''
| ''stô''
| ''taugio''
|-
! ''þû''
| þagc<span style="color:green">is</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">is</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">is</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">is</span>
| ''is''
| ''hais''
| ''gâs''
| ''stais''
| ''taugis''
|-
! ''is''
| þagc<span style="color:green">at</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">et</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ot</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">it</span>
| ''ist''
| ''hâþ''
| ''gâþ''
| ''stâþ''
| ''taugit''
|-
! ''vi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">iamos</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">iamos</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">iamos</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">iamos</span>
| ''ismos''
| ''abbiamos''
| ''ghiamos''
| ''stiamos''
| ''taugiamos''
|-
! ''gi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">ates</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">etes</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">otes</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ites</span>
| ''istes''
| ''havetes''
| ''gates''
| ''states''
| ''taugiates''
|-
! ''eis''
| þagc<span style="color:green">ando</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">ondo</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ondo</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ondo</span>
| ''sondo''
| ''hondo''
| ''gando''
| ''stando''
| ''taugiondo''
|}
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Passive Indicative
|-
!
! '''''þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>'''''
! '''''cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>'''''
! '''''hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>'''''
! '''''dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>'''''
! '''''vessare'''''
! '''''havere'''''
! '''''ganare'''''
! '''''stare'''''
! '''''taugiare'''''
|-
! ''ic''
| þagc<span style="color:green">ara</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">era</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ora</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ira</span>
| —
| ''aggiara''
| ''andara''
| —
| ''taugiara''
|-
! ''þû''
| þagc<span style="color:green">asa</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">esa</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">osa</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">isa</span>
| —
| ''haisa''
| ''andasa''
| —
| ''taugiasa''
|-
! ''is''
| þagc<span style="color:green">aða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">eða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">oða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">iða</span>
| —
| ''haiða''
| ''andaða''
| ''staða''
| ''taugiaða''
|-
! ''vi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">anða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">enða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">onða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">inða</span>
| —
| ''hanða''
| ''andanða''
| —
| ''taugianða''
|-
! ''gi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">anða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">enða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">onða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">inða</span>
| —
| ''hanða''
| ''andanða''
| —
| ''taugianða''
|-
! ''eis''
| þagc<span style="color:green">anða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">enða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">onða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">inða</span>
| —
| ''hanða''
| ''andanða''
| ''stanða''
| ''taugianða''
|}
 
=====Present subjunctive=====
Used for [[w:Dependent clause|subordinate clauses]] of the present to express opinion, possibility, desire, or doubt. The Subjunctive is almost always preceded by the ''common relative particle''.
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Active Subjunctive
|-
!
! '''''þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>'''''
! '''''cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>'''''
! '''''hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>'''''
! '''''dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>'''''
! '''''vessare'''''
! '''''havere'''''
! '''''ganare'''''
! '''''stare'''''
! '''''taugiare'''''
|-
! ''ic''
| þagc<span style="color:green">i</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">a</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">uo</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">a</span>
| ''sia''
| ''abbia''
| ''vada''
| ''stia''
| ''taugia''
|-
! ''þû''
| þagc<span style="color:green">is</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">as</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">as</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">as</span>
| ''sias''
| ''abbias''
| ''vadas''
| ''stias''
| ''taugias''
|-
! ''is''
| þagc<span style="color:green">it</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">at</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">uat</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">at</span>
| ''siaþ''
| ''abbiat''
| ''vadat''
| ''stiaþ''
| ''taugiat''
|-
! ''vi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">iamos</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">iamos</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">uamos</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">amos</span>
| ''siamos''
| ''abbiamos''
| ''andiamos''
| ''stiamos''
| ''taugiaumos''
|-
! ''gi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">iates</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">iates</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">uates</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ates</span>
| ''siates''
| ''abbiates''
| ''andiates''
| ''stiates''
| ''taugiautes''
|-
! ''eis''
| þagc<span style="color:green">indo</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">ando</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ando</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ando</span>
| ''siando''
| ''abbiando''
| ''vadando''
| ''stiando''
| ''taugiando''
|}
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Passive Subjunctive
|-
!
! '''''þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>'''''
! '''''cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>'''''
! '''''hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>'''''
! '''''dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>'''''
! '''''vessare'''''
! '''''havere'''''
! '''''ganare'''''
! '''''stare'''''
! '''''taugiare'''''
|-
! ''ic''
| þagc<span style="color:green">ira</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">ara</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">uara</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ara</span>
| —
| ''abbiara''
| ''vadara''
| —
| ''taugiaura''
|-
! ''þû''
| þagc<span style="color:green">isa</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">asa</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">uasa</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">asa</span>
| —
| ''abbiasa''
| ''vadasa''
| —
| ''taugiausa''
|-
! ''is''
| þagc<span style="color:green">iða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">aða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">uaða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">aða</span>
| —
| ''abbiaða''
| ''vadaða''
| ''stiaða''
| ''taugiauða''
|-
! ''vi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">inða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">ianða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">uonða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">anða</span>
| —
| ''abbianða''
| ''andianða''
| —
| ''taugiaunða''
|-
! ''gi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">inða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">ianða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">uonða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">anða</span>
| —
| ''abbianða''
| ''andianða''
| —
| ''taugiaunða''
|-
! ''eis''
| þagc<span style="color:green">inða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">ianða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">uonða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">anða</span>
| —
| ''abbianða''
| ''andianða''
| ''stianða''
| ''taugiaunða''
|}
 
=====Present conditional=====
Used for events that are dependent upon another event occurring. The conditional is also used for politely asking for something (as in English: “'''could''' I please have a glass of water?”)
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Active Conditinal
|-
!
! '''''þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>'''''
! '''''cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>'''''
! '''''hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>'''''
! '''''dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>'''''
! '''''vessare'''''
! '''''havere'''''
! '''''ganare'''''
! '''''stare'''''
! '''''taugiare'''''
|-
! ''ic''
| þagc<span style="color:green">erebbi</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erebbi</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orebbi</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irebbi</span>
| ''sarebbi''
| hav''erebbi''
| ''garebbi''
| ''starebbi''
| ''tavarebbi''
|-
! ''þû''
| þagc<span style="color:green">eresti</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">eresti</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">oresti</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">iresti</span>
| ''saresti''
| hav''eresti''
| ''garesti''
| ''staresti''
| ''tavaresti''
|-
! ''is''
| þagc<span style="color:green">erebbet</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erebbet</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orebbet</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irebbet</span>
| ''sarebbet''
| hav''erebbet''
| ''garebbet''
| ''starebbet''
| ''taverebbet''
|-
! ''vi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">eremmos</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">eremmos</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">oremmos</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">iremmos</span>
| ''saremmos''
| hav''eremmos''
| ''garemmos''
| ''staremmos''
| ''tavaremmos''
|-
! ''gi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">erestes</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erestes</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orestes</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irestes</span>
| ''sarestes''
| hav''erestes''
| ''garestes''
| ''starestes''
| ''tavarestes''
|-
! ''eis''
| þagc<span style="color:green">erebbero</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erebbero</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orebbero</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irebbero</span>
| ''sarebbero''
| hav''erebbero''
| ''garebbero''
| ''starebbero''
| ''tavarebbero''
|}
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Passive Conditinal
|-
!
! '''''þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>'''''
! '''''cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>'''''
! '''''hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>'''''
! '''''dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>'''''
! '''''vessare'''''
! '''''havere'''''
! '''''ganare'''''
! '''''stare'''''
! '''''taugiare'''''
|-
! ''ic''
| þagc<span style="color:green">erebbira</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erebbira</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orebbira</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irebbira</span>
| —
| hav''erebbira''
| ''garebbira''
| —
| ''tavarebbira''
|-
! ''þû''
| þagc<span style="color:green">eressa</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">eressa</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">oressa</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">iressa</span>
| —
| hav''eressa''
| ''garessa''
| —
| ''tavaressa''
|-
! ''is''
| þagc<span style="color:green">erebbeða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erebbeða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orebbeða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irebbeða</span>
| —
| hav''erebbeða''
| ''garebbeða''
| ''starebbeða''
| ''taverebbeða''
|-
! ''vi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">eremma</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">eremma</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">oremma</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">iremma</span>
| —
| hav''eremma''
| ''garemma''
| —
| ''tavaremma''
|-
! ''gi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">eremma</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">eremma</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">oremma</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">iremma</span>
| —
| hav''eremma''
| ''garemma''
| —
| ''tavaremma''
|-
! ''eis''
| þagc<span style="color:green">eremma</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">eremma</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">oremma</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">iremma</span>
| —
| hav''eremma''
| ''garemma''
| ''staremma''
| ''tavaremma''
|-
|}
 
* ''vessare'' lacks a passive voice form;
* ''stare'' passive voice form is only impersonal.
 
====Present perfect====
The present perfect is used for single actions or events (''sa maurgnia im ganatu a scuola'' “I went to school this morning”), or change in state (''sic ist þvaersotu can atha ia aggio rogiatu'' “he got angry when I told him that”), contrasting with the imperfect which is used for habits (''eggiavo bicichietta a scuola alla maurgnia'' “I used to go to school by bike every morning”), or repeated actions, not happening at a specific time (''sic þvaersovat alla vece ei, giuveðar can atha ia rogiavat'' “he got angry every time someone told him that”).
 
=====Past participle=====
The past participle is used to form the compound pasts (e.g. ''aggio tavitu'' “I have done”). Regular verbs follow a predictable pattern, but there are many verbs with an irregular past participle.
 
* <span style="color:green">'''1st conjugation</span>:''' '''-atu''' (þagc'''atu''' “thought”);
* <span style="color:darkorange">'''2nd conjugation</span>:''' '''-utu''' (cred'''utu''' “believed”);
* <span style="color:red">'''3rd conjugation</span>:''' '''-otu''' (hol'''otu''' “accused”);
* <span style="color:purple">'''4th conjugation</span>:''' '''-itu''' (dorm'''itu''' “slept”);
* ''vessare'' and ''stare'' have both '''statu''';
* ''qemare'' (“to come”) has '''qemutu''';
* ''havere'' has '''havutu''';
* ''taugiare'' has '''tavitu'''.
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ '''-ato, -uto, -oto, -ito declension'''
|-
! Number
! Case
! o-stem <sup>m</sup>
! a-stem <sup>f</sup>
! o-stem <sup>n</sup>
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| -atu, -utu, -otu, -itu
| -ata, -uta, -ota, -ita
| -ato, -uto, -oto, -ito
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| -ato, -uto, -oto, -ito
| -ata, -uta, -ota, -ita
| -ato, -uto, -oto, -ito
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| -ata, -uta, -ota, -ita
| -ata, -uta, -ota, -ita
| -ata, -uta, -ota, -ita
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| -ati, -uti, -oti, -iti
| -ate, -ute, -ote, -ite
| -ati, -uti, -oti, -iti
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| -ati, -uti, -oti, -iti
| -ate, -ute, -ote, -ite
| -ata, -uta, -ota, -ita
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| -atos, -utos, -otos, -itos
| -atas, -utas, -otas, -itas
| -ata, -uta, -ota, -ita
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| -atom, -utom, -otom, -itom
| -atam, -utam, -otam, -itam
| -atom, -utom, -otom, -itom
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| -atoro, -utoro, -otoro, -itoro
| -ataro, -utaro, -otaro, -itaro
| -atoro, -utoro, -otoro, -itoro
|}
 
Except with an immediately preceding third person pronominal direct object, the participle always ends in '''-u'''.
 
All [[w:Transitive verb|transitive verbs]] and most [[w:Intransitive verb|intransitive verbs]] form the present perfect by combining the auxiliary verb ''havere'' “to have” in the present tense with the past participle of the transitive verb. A small number of intransitive verbs, namely ''vessare'' itself and verbs indicating motion (''qemare'' “to come”, ''ganare'' “to go”, ''affargiare'' “to arrive”, etc.) use the auxiliary verb vessare instead of ''havere''. The past participle in this agrees with gender and number of the subject. Passive forms always use ''havere''.
 
====Imperfect====
The Imperfect fuses [[w:Past tense|past tense]] with [[w:Imperfective aspect|imperfective aspect]] and is used for:
 
* Repeated or habitual actions in the past;
* Ongoing actions in the past and ongoing actions in the past that are eventually interrupted;
* States of being and conditions in the past, including weather, time, age.
 
The difference between imperfective and [[w:Perfective aspect|perfective aspects]] can be illustrated clearly with the verb ''vitare'' “to know”. The Italian imperfect expresses being in possession of knowledge in the past, while the perfective expresses the moment of acquiring the knowledge.
 
Imperfective: ''Vitavo la vera''. “I knew the truth.” Perfective: ''Aggio vitatu la vera''. “I found out the truth.”
 
The Imperfect is, in most cases, formed by taking the stem along with the thematic vowel and adding ''-v-'' + the ending of the ''-are'' verbs in the present tense (with ''-amos'' instead of ''-iamos''). There are no irregular conjugations in the Imperfect except for a few forms inherited from Gothic [[w:Germanic weak verb|weak verbs]], suppletion, and ''vessare,'' which uses the stem ''er-'' and ''-v-'' appears only in 1st and 2nd person plurals.
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Active Indicative
|-
!
! '''''þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>'''''
! '''''cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>'''''
! '''''hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>'''''
! '''''dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>'''''
! '''''vessare'''''
! '''''havere'''''
! '''''ganare'''''
! '''''stare'''''
! '''''taugiare'''''
|-
! ''ic''
| þagc<span style="color:green">avo</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">evo</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ovo</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ivo</span>
| ''ero''
| ''havaeðo''
| ''eggiavo''
| st''avo''
| ''taviðo''
|-
! ''þû''
| þagc<span style="color:green">avas</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">evas</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ovas</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ivas</span>
| ''eras''
| ''havaeðas''
| ''eggiavas''
| st''avas''
| ''taviðas''
|-
! ''is''
| þagc<span style="color:green">avat</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">evat</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ovat</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ivat</span>
| ''erat''
| ''havaeðat''
| ''eggiavat''
| st''avat''
| ''taviðat''
|-
! ''vi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">avamos</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">evamos</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ovamos</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ivamos</span>
| ''eravamos''
| ''havaeðamos''
| ''eggiavamos''
| st''avamos''
| ''taviðamos''
|-
! ''gi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">avates</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">evates</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ovates</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ivates</span>
| ''eravates''
| ''havaeðates''
| ''eggiavates''
| st''avates''
| ''taviðates''
|-
! ''eis''
| þagc<span style="color:green">avando</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">evando</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ovando</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ivando</span>
| erando
| ''havaeðando''
| ''eggiavando''
| st''avando''
| ''taviðando''
|}
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Passive Indicative
|-
!
! '''''þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>'''''
! '''''cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>'''''
! '''''hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>'''''
! '''''dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>'''''
! '''''vessare'''''
! '''''havere'''''
! '''''ganare'''''
! '''''stare'''''
! '''''taugiare'''''
|-
! ''ic''
| þagc<span style="color:green">avara</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">evara</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ovara</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ivara</span>
| —
| ''havaeðara''
| ''eggiavara''
| —
| ''taviðara''
|-
! ''þû''
| þagc<span style="color:green">avasa</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">evasa</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ovasa</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ivasa</span>
| —
| ''havaeðasa''
| ''eggiavasa''
| —
| ''taviðasa''
|-
! ''is''
| þagc<span style="color:green">avaða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">evaða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ovaða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ivaða</span>
| —
| ''havaeðaða''
| ''eggiavaða''
| st''avaða''
| ''taviðaða''
|-
! ''vi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">avanða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">evanða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ovanða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ivanða</span>
| —
| ''havaeðanða''
| ''eggiavanða''
| —
| ''taviðanða''
|-
! ''gi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">avanða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">evanða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ovanða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ivanða</span>
| —
| ''havaeðanða''
| ''eggiavanða''
| —
| ''taviðanða''
|-
! ''eis''
| þagc<span style="color:green">avanða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">evanða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ovanða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ivanða</span>
| —
| ''havaeðanða''
| ''eggiavanða''
| st''avanða''
| ''taviðanða''
|}
 
=====Subjunctive imperfect=====
Used for the subordinate clauses of the imperfect indicative or the conditional. For regular verbs, the subjunctive is formed by taking the infinitive and replacing ''-re'' with ''-ssi'', ''-ssis'', ''-ssit'', ''-ssimos'', ''-ssites'', ''-ssero'':
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Active Subjunctive
|-
!
! '''''þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>'''''
! '''''cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>'''''
! '''''hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>'''''
! '''''dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>'''''
! '''''vessare'''''
! '''''havere'''''
! '''''ganare'''''
! '''''stare'''''
! '''''taugiare'''''
|-
! ''ic''
| þagc<span style="color:green">assi</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">essi</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ossi</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">issi</span>
| ''fossi''
| hav''essi''
| ''eggissi''
| ''stessi''
| ''tavissi''
|-
! ''þû''
| þagc<span style="color:green">assis</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">essis</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ossis</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">issis</span>
| ''fossis''
| hav''essis''
| ''eggissis''
| ''stessis''
| ''tavissis''
|-
! ''is''
| þagc<span style="color:green">assit</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">essit</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ossit</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">issit</span>
| ''fossit''
| hav''essit''
| ''eggissit''
| ''stessit''
| ''tavissit''
|-
! ''vi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">assimos</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">essimos</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ossimos</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">issimos</span>
| ''fossimos''
| hav''essimos''
| ''eggissimos''
| ''stessimos''
| ''tavissimos''
|-
! ''gi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">assites</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">essites</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ossites</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">issites</span>
| ''fossites''
| hav''essites''
| ''eggissites''
| ''stessites''
| ''tavissites''
|-
! ''eis''
| þagc<span style="color:green">assero</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">essero</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ossero</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">issero</span>
| ''fossero''
| hav''essero''
| ''eggissero''
| ''stessero''
| ''tavissero''
|}
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Passive Subjunctive
|-
!
! '''''þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>'''''
! '''''cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>'''''
! '''''hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>'''''
! '''''dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>'''''
! '''''vessare'''''
! '''''havere'''''
! '''''ganare'''''
! '''''stare'''''
! '''''taugiare'''''
|-
! ''ic''
| þagc<span style="color:green">assira</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">essira</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ossira</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">issira</span>
| —
| hav''essira''
| ''eggissira''
| —
| ''tavissira''
|-
! ''þû''
| þagc<span style="color:green">assisa</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">essisa</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ossisa</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">issisa</span>
| —
| hav''essisa''
| ''eggissisa''
| —
| ''tavissisa''
|-
! ''is''
| þagc<span style="color:green">assiða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">essiða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ossiða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">issiða</span>
| —
| hav''essiða''
| ''eggissiða''
| ''stessiða''
| ''tavissiða''
|-
! ''vi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">assinða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">essinða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ossinða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">issinða</span>
| —
| hav''essinða''
| ''eggissinða''
| —
| ''tavissinða''
|-
! ''gi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">assinða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">essinða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ossinða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">issinða</span>
| —
| hav''essinða''
| ''eggissinða''
| —
| ''tavissinða''
|-
! ''eis''
| þagc<span style="color:green">assinða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">essinða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ossinða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">issinða</span>
| —
| hav''essinða''
| ''eggissinða''
| ''stessinða''
| ''tavissinða''
|}
 
====Preterite====
The preterite (or perfect) has a function distinct from the present perfect. It is used for events which are distant from the present and no longer directly affect it (e.g. telling a story), whereas the present perfect is used for more recent events which may have a direct impact on the present.
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Active Indicative
|-
!
! '''''þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>'''''
! '''''cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>'''''
! '''''hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>'''''
! '''''dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>'''''
! '''''vessare'''''
! '''''havere'''''
! '''''ganare'''''
! '''''stare'''''
! '''''taugiare'''''
|-
! ''ic''
| þagc<span style="color:green">ai</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">eï</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">oi</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ei</span>
| ''fui''
| ''ebbi''
| ''gai''
| ''stetti''
| ''tavi''
|-
! ''þû''
| þagc<span style="color:green">asti</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">esti</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">osti</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">isti</span>
| ''fosti''
| hav''esti''
| ''gasti''
| ''stesti''
| ''tavisti''
|-
! ''is''
| þagc<span style="color:green">aut</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">aet</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">aut</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">eit</span>
| ''fuiþ''
| ''ebbet''
| ''gauþ''
| ''stettet''
| ''tavit''
|-
! ''vi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">ammos</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">emmos</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ommos</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">immos</span>
| ''fomos''
| hav''emmos''
| ''gammos''
| ''stemmos''
| ''tavimmos''
|-
! ''gi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">astes</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">estes</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ostes</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">istes</span>
| ''fostes''
| hav''estes''
| ''gastes''
| ''stestes''
| ''tavistes''
|-
! ''eis''
| þagc<span style="color:green">arondo</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erondo</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orondo</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irondo</span>
| ''furondo''
| ''ebbero''
| ''garondo''
| ''stettero''
| ''tavirondo''
|}
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Passive Indicative
|-
!
! '''''þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>'''''
! '''''cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>'''''
! '''''hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>'''''
! '''''dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>'''''
! '''''vessare'''''
! '''''havere'''''
! '''''ganare'''''
! '''''stare'''''
! '''''taugiare'''''
|-
! ''ic''
| þagc<span style="color:green">aera</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">eira</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">oira</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">eira</span>
| —
| ''ebbira''
| ''gaira''
| —
| ''tavira''
|-
! ''þû''
| þagc<span style="color:green">asa</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">essa</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ossa</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">issa</span>
| —
| hav''essa''
| ''gassa''
| —
| ''tavessa''
|-
! ''is''
| þagc<span style="color:green">auða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">aeða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">auða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">eiða</span>
| —
| ''ebbeða''
| ''gauða''
| ''stetteða''
| ''taveða''
|-
! ''vi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">amma</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">emma</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">omma</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">imma</span>
| —
| hav''emma''
| ''gamma''
| —
| ''tavemma''
|-
! ''gi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">amma</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">emma</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">omma</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">imma</span>
| —
| hav''emma''
| ''gamma''
| —
| ''tavemma''
|-
! ''eis''
| þagc<span style="color:green">amma</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">emma</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">omma</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">imma</span>
| —
| hav''emma''
| ''gamma''
| ''stettemma''
| ''tavemma''
|}
 
=====Subjunctive preterite=====
Used for subordinate clauses of the imperfect indicative or the conditional. The subjunctive preterite is formed the same as the present perfect, but with the auxiliary verb in the subjunctive present.
 
* '''Active'''
:* ''abbia þagcatu'';
:* ''sia qemutu'';
:* ''sias affargiatu''.
 
* '''Passive'''
:* ''abbiara þagcatu'';
:* ''abbiara qemutu'';
:* ''abbiasa affargiatu''.
 
=====Conditional preterite=====
Used for events that would, could or should have occurred or as a [[w:Prospective aspect|prospective]] past tense. The conditional preterite is formed the same as the present perfect, but with the auxiliary verb in the conditional.
 
* '''Active'''
:* ''haverebbi dormitu'';
:* ''sarebbi venutu''.
 
* '''Passive'''
:* ''haverebbira dormitu'';
:* ''haverebbira venutu''.
 
====Future====
The future tense is used for events that will happen in the [[w:Future tense|future]]. It is formed by adding the forms of havere to the infinitive (with ''abbiamos'' and ''havetes'' contracted to ''-êmos'' and ''-êtes'' respectively). Sometimes the infinitive undergoes some changes:
 
* It always loses its final ''-e'';
* Verbs in ''-are'' end in ''-er'', not in ''-ar'' (stare however retains ''star-'');
* Most irregular verbs lose the vowel before the last ''r'' altogether (e.g. ''havr-'' for havere and ''andr-'' for ''ganare'', suppletion from ''*andare''). Clusters ''-mr-'', ''-nr-'' and ''-lr-'' are simplified to ''-rr-'' (e.g. qerr- for ''qemare'');
* ''vessare'' has ''sar-''.
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Active Indicative
|-
!
! '''''þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>'''''
! '''''cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>'''''
! '''''hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>'''''
! '''''dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>'''''
! '''''vessare'''''
! '''''havere'''''
! '''''ganare'''''
! '''''stare'''''
! '''''taugiare'''''
|-
! ''ic''
| þagc<span style="color:green">eraggio</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">eraggio</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">oraggio</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">iraggio</span>
| ''saraggio''
| ''havraggio''
| ''andraggio''
| ''staraggio''
| taugi''eraggio''
|-
! ''þû''
| þagc<span style="color:green">erais</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erais</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orais</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irais</span>
| ''sarais''
| ''havrais''
| ''andrais''
| ''starais''
| taugi''erais''
|-
! ''is''
| þagc<span style="color:green">erât</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erât</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orât</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irât</span>
| ''sarât''
| ''havrât''
| ''andrât''
| ''starât''
| taugi''erât''
|-
! ''vi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">erêmos</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erêmos</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orêmos</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irêmos</span>
| ''sarêmos''
| ''havrêmos''
| ''andrêmos''
| ''starêmos''
| taugi''erêmos''
|-
! ''gi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">erêtes</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erêtes</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orêtes</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irêtes</span>
| ''sarêtes''
| ''havrêtes''
| ''andrêtes''
| ''starêtes''
| taugi''erêtes''
|-
! ''eis''
| þagc<span style="color:green">erondo</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erondo</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orondo</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irondo</span>
| ''sarondo''
| ''havrondo''
| ''androndo''
| ''starondo''
| taugi''erondo''
|}
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Passive Indicative
|-
!
! '''''þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>'''''
! '''''cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>'''''
! '''''hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>'''''
! '''''dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>'''''
! '''''vessare'''''
! '''''havere'''''
! '''''ganare'''''
! '''''stare'''''
! '''''taugiare'''''
|-
! ''ic''
| þagc<span style="color:green">erêra</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erêra</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orêra</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irêra</span>
| —
| ''havrêra''
| ''andrêra''
| —
| taugi''erêra''
|-
! ''þû''
| þagc<span style="color:green">erêsa</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erêsa</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orêsa</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irêsa</span>
| —
| ''havrêsa''
| ''andrêsa''
| —
| taugi''erêsa''
|-
! ''is''
| þagc<span style="color:green">erêða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erêða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orêða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irêða</span>
| —
| ''havrêða''
| ''andrêða''
| ''starêða''
| taugi''erêða''
|-
! ''vi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">erênða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erênða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orênða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irênða</span>
| —
| ''havrênða''
| ''andrênða''
| —
| taugi''erênða''
|-
! ''gi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">erênða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erênða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orênða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irênða</span>
| —
| ''havrênða''
| ''andrênða''
| —
| taugi''erênða''
|-
! ''eis''
| þagc<span style="color:green">erênða</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">erênða</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">orênða</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">irênða</span>
| —
| ''havrênða''
| ''andrênða''
| ''starênða''
| taugi''erênða''
|}
 
=====Future perfect=====
Used for events that will have happened when or before something else happens in the future. The future perfect is formed the same as the present perfect, but with the auxiliary verb in the future.
 
* '''Active'''
:* ''havraggio þagcatu'';
:* ''sarais holotu''.
 
* '''Passive'''
:* ''havrêra þagcatu'';
:* ''havrêsa holotu''.
 
====Imperative====
The imperative is used for giving commands. The imperative is formed by:
 
* Removing the infinitive ''-re'';
* Adding ''-te'' for the plural;
* The word becomes an oxytone in the singular.
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Affirmative
|-
!
! '''''þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>'''''
! '''''cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>'''''
! '''''hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>'''''
! '''''dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>'''''
! '''''vessare'''''
! '''''havere'''''
! '''''ganare'''''
! '''''stare'''''
! '''''taugiare'''''
|-
! ''þû''
| þagc<span style="color:green">â</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">ê</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ô</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ei</span>
| vess''â''
| hav''ê''
| gan''â''
| st''â''
| taugi''â''
|-
! ''gi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">ate</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">ete</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">ote</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">ite</span>
| vess''ate''
| hav''ete''
| gan''ate''
| st''ate''
| taugi''ate''
|}
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Negative
|-
!
! '''''þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>'''''
! '''''cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>'''''
! '''''hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>'''''
! '''''dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>'''''
! '''''vessare'''''
! '''''havere'''''
! '''''ganare'''''
! '''''stare'''''
! '''''taugiare'''''
|-
! ''þû''
| <span style="color:green">non</span> þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>
| <span style="color:darkorange">non</span> cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>
| <span style="color:red">non</span> hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>
| <span style="color:purple">non</span> dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>
| ''non'' vess''are''
| ''non'' hav''ere''
| ''non'' gan''are''
| ''non'' st''are''
| ''non'' taugi''are''
|-
! ''gi''
| <span style="color:green">non</span> þagc<span style="color:green">arete</span>
| <span style="color:darkorange">non</span> cred<span style="color:darkorange">erete</span>
| <span style="color:red">non</span> hol<span style="color:red">orete</span>
| <span style="color:purple">non</span> dorm<span style="color:purple">irete</span>
| ''non'' vess''arete''
| ''non'' hav''erete''
| ''non'' gan''arete''
| ''non'' st''arete''
| ''non'' taugi''arete''
|}
 
====Nominal verb forms====
Luthic verbs have three additional forms, known as nominal forms, because they can be used as nouns or adjectives, rather than as verbs.
 
* The '''past participle''' has been discussed above;
* The '''present participle''' is used as an adjective or a noun describing someone who is busy doing something. For example, rogiante means “talking” or “someone who is talking”:
:* Verbs in ''-are'' form the present participle by adding ''-ante'' to the stem;
:* Verbs in ''-ere'' and -ire form the present participle by adding ''-ente'' to the stem;
:* Verbs in ''-ore'' form the present participle by adding ''-onte'' to the stem.
* The '''gerund''' is the adverbial form of the present participle, and has a very broad use. For example: ''rogiandu'' can translate to “talking, while talking, by talking, because of one’s talking, through talking…”:
:* The gerund is identical to the present participle, but with final ''-te'' replaced by ''-du'';
:* Keep in mind that the gerund is an adverb, not an adjective, and so it does not agree in gender and number. The ending is always ''-u''.
 
====''vessare'', to be====
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align: center; margin-left: auto; margin-right: auto; border: none"
|-style="background: #c8c8c8; font-weight:bold"
| colspan="2" | Tense || colspan="6" | Forms
|-
! colspan="2" | Infinitive
| colspan="6" | vessare
|-
! colspan="2" | Auxiliary verb
| colspan="6" | vessare
|-
! colspan="2" | Past participle
| colspan="6" style="text-align:center;" |
{| class="wikitable" style="margin-left: auto; margin-right: auto; border: none;"
|-
! Number
! Case
! masculine
! feminine
! neuter
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| statu
| stata
| stato
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| stato
| stata
| stato
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| stata
| stata
| stata
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| stati
| state
| stati
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| stati
| state
| stata
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| statos
| statas
| stata
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| statom
| statam
| statom
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| statoro
| stataro
| statoro
|}
|-
! colspan="2" | Present participle
| colspan="6" style="text-align:center;" | vessante
|-
! colspan="2" | Gerund
| colspan="6" style="text-align:center;" | vessandu
|-
! colspan="2" style="background:linear-gradient(to top right,#EAECF0 49.5%,#aaa 49.5%,#aaa 50.5%,#EAECF0 50.5%);line-height:1;" | <div style="margin-left:2em;text-align:right;">Person&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;</div><div style="margin-right:2em;text-align:left;">&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Tense</div>
! style="width:12.5%" | first singular<br/>''ic''
! style="width:12.5%" | second singular<br/>''þû''
! style="width:12.5%" | third singular<br/>''is'', ''ia'', ''atha''
! style="width:12.5%" | first plural<br/>''vi''
! style="width:12.5%" | second plural<br/>''gi''
! style="width:12.5%" | third plural<br/>''eis'', ''ise'', ''ia''
|-
! rowspan="6" | Indicative
! Present
| im
| is
| ist
| ismos
| istes
| sondo
|-
! Present perfect
| im statu
| is statu
| ist statu
| ismos stati
| istes stati
| sondo stati
|-
! Imperfect
| ero
| eras
| erat
| eravamos
| eravates
| erando
|-
! Preterite
| fui
| fosti
| fuiþ
| fostes
| fomos
| furondo
|-
! Future
| saraggio
| sarais
| sarât
| sarêmos
| sarêtes
| sarondo
|-
! Future perfect
| saraggio statu
| sarais statu
| sarât statu
| sarêmos stati
| sarêtes stati
| sarondo stati
|-
! rowspan="3" | Subjunctive
! Present
| sia
| sias
| siaþ
| siamos
| siates
| siando
|-
! Imperfect
| fossi
| fossis
| fossit
| fossimos
| fossites
| fossero
|-
! Preterite
| sia statu
| sias statu
| siaþ statu
| siamos stati
| siates stati
| siando stati
|-
! rowspan="2" | Conditional
! Present
| sarebbi
| saresti
| sarebbet
| saremmos
| sarestes
| sarebbero
|-
! Preterite
| sarebbi statu
| saresti statu
| sarebbet statu
| saremmos stati
| sarestes stati
| sarebbero stati
|-
! rowspan="2" | Imperative
! Positive
| &nbsp;
| vessâ
| colspan="2" | &nbsp;
| vessate
| &nbsp;
|-
! Negative
| &nbsp;
| non vessare
| colspan="2" | &nbsp;
| non vessarete
| &nbsp;
|}
 
====''havere'', to have====
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align: center; margin-left: auto; margin-right: auto; border: none"
|-style="background: #c8c8c8; font-weight:bold"
| colspan="2" | Tense || colspan="6" | Forms
|-
! colspan="2" | Infinitive
| colspan="6" | havere
|-
! colspan="2" | Auxiliary verb
| colspan="6" | havere
|-
! colspan="2" | Past participle
| colspan="6" style="text-align:center;" |
{| class="wikitable" style="margin-left: auto; margin-right: auto; border: none;"
|-
! Number
! Case
! masculine
! feminine
! neuter
|-
!rowspan=4| Singular
! {{small|nom.}}
| havutu
| havuta
| havuto
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| havuto
| havuta
| havuto
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| havuta
| havuta
| havuta
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| havuti
| havute
| havuti
|-
!rowspan=4| Plural
! {{small|nom.}}
| havuti
| havute
| havuta
|-
! {{small|acc.}}
| havutos
| havutas
| havuta
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| havutom
| havutam
| havutom
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| havutoro
| havutaro
| havutoro
|}
|-
! colspan="2" | Present participle
| colspan="6" style="text-align:center;" | havente
|-
! colspan="2" | Gerund
| colspan="6" style="text-align:center;" | havendu
|-
! colspan="2" style="background:linear-gradient(to top right,#EAECF0 49.5%,#aaa 49.5%,#aaa 50.5%,#EAECF0 50.5%);line-height:1;" | <div style="margin-left:2em;text-align:right;">Person&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;</div><div style="margin-right:2em;text-align:left;">&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Tense</div>
! style="width:12.5%" | first singular<br/>''ic''
! style="width:12.5%" | second singular<br/>''þû''
! style="width:12.5%" | third singular<br/>''is'', ''ia'', ''atha''
! style="width:12.5%" | first plural<br/>''vi''
! style="width:12.5%" | second plural<br/>''gi''
! style="width:12.5%" | third plural<br/>''eis'', ''ise'', ''ia''
|-
! rowspan="12" | Indicative
! Present active
| aggio
| hais
| hâþ
| abbiamos
| havetes
| hondo
|-
! Present passive
| havara
| havasa
| havaða
| havanða
| havanða
| havanða
|-
! Present perfect active
| aggio havutu
| hais havutu
| hâþ havutu
| abbiamos havutu
| havetes havutu
| hondo havutu
|-
! Present perfect passive
| havara havutu
| havasa havutu
| havaða havutu
| havanða havutu
| havanða havutu
| havanða havutu
|-
! Imperfect active
| havaeðo
| havaeðas
| havaeðat
| havaeðamos
| havaeðates
| havaeðanno
|-
! Imperfect passive
| havaeðara
| havaeðasa
| havaeðaða
| havaeðanða
| havaeðanða
| havaeðanða
|-
! Preterite active
| ebbi
| havesti
| ebbet
| havemmos
| havestes
| ebbero
|-
! Preterite passive
| ebbira
| havessa
| ebbeða
| havemma
| havemma
| havemma
|-
! Future active
| havraggio
| havrais
| havrât
| havrêmos
| havrêtes
| havrondo
|-
! Future passive
| havrêra
| havrêsa
| havrêða
| havrênða
| havrênða
| havrênða
|-
! Future perfect active
| havraggio havutu
| havrais havutu
| havrât havutu
| havrêmos havutu
| havrêtes havutu
| havrondo havutu
|-
! Future perfect passive
| havrêra havutu
| havrêsa havutu
| havrêða havutu
| havrênða havutu
| havrênða havutu
| havrênða havutu
|-
! rowspan="6" | Subjunctive
! Present active
| abbia
| abbias
| abbiat
| abbiamos
| abbiates
| abbianno
|-
! Present passive
| abbiara
| abbiasa
| abbiaða
| abbianða
| abbianða
| abbianða
|-
! Imperfect active
| havessi
| havessis
| havessit
| havessimos
| havessites
| havessero
|-
! Imperfect passive
| havessira
| havessisa
| havessiða
| havessinða
| havessinða
| havessinða
|-
! Preterite active
| abbia havutu
| abbias havutu
| abbiat havutu
| abbiamos havutu
| abbiates havutu
| abbianno havutu
|-
! Preterite passive
| abbiara havutu
| abbiasa havutu
| abbiaða havutu
| abbianða havutu
| abbianða havutu
| abbianða havutu
|-
! rowspan="4" | Conditional
! Present active
| haverebbi
| haveresti
| haverebbet
| haveremmos
| haverestes
| haverebbero
|-
! Present passive
| haverebbira
| haveressa
| haverebbeða
| haveremma
| haveremma
| haveremma
|-
! Preterite active
| haverebbi havutu
| haveresti havutu
| haverebbet havutu
| haveremmos havutu
| haverestes havutu
| haverebbero havutu
|-
! Preterite passive
| haverebbira havutu
| haveressa havutu
| haverebbeða havutu
| haveremma havutu
| haveremma havutu
| haveremma havutu
|-
! rowspan="2" | Imperative
! Positive
| &nbsp;
| havae
| colspan="2" | &nbsp;
| havete
| &nbsp;
|-
! Negative
| &nbsp;
| non havere
| colspan="2" | &nbsp;
| non haverete
| &nbsp;
|}
 
===Adverbs===
An adjective can be made into a modal adverb by adding ''-mente'' (from Latin “mente”, ablative of “mens” (mind), feminine noun) to the ending of the feminine singular form of the adjective. E.g. ''lenta'' “slow (feminine)” becomes ''lenta'''mente''''' “slowly”. Adjectives ending in ''-re'' or ''-le'' lose their ''e'' before adding ''-mente'' (''facile'' “easy” becomes ''facil'''mente''''' “easily”, ''particolare'' “particular” becomes ''particolar'''mente''''' “particularly”). Other adjectives become adverbs by adding ''-e''. E.g. ''solu'' (alone) becomes ''sol'''e''''' (only).
 
These adverbs can also be derived from the [[w:#Degrees of comparison|absolute superlative]] form of adjectives, e.g. ''lent'''issima'''mente'' (“very slowly").
 
There is also a plethora of temporal, local, modal and interrogative adverbs, mostly derived from Latin.
 
===Prepositions===
Luthic has a [[w:closed class|closed class]] of basic prepositions, to which a number of [[w:Adverb|adverbs]] can be added that also double as prepositions.
 
In modern Luthic, all the basic prepositions have to be combined with an article placed next to them. Prepositions normally require the article before the following noun in a similar way as the English language does. However [[w:Latin|Latin’s]] (and to extension, [[w:Gothic language|Gothic]]) lack of articles influenced several cases of prepositions used without article in Luthic. The prepositions ''tra'' and ''fra'' are interchangeable, and often chosen on the basis of [[w:Phonaesthetics#Euphony_and_cacophony|euphony]].
 
{| class="wikitable" border="1"
|-
! colspan="9" | Mandatory contractions
|-
! rowspan="2" | Luthic
! rowspan="2" | English
! colspan="7" | Preposition + article
|-
!m. sg.
!f. sg.
!n. sg.
!l’
!m. pl.
!f. pl.
!n. pl.
|-
| '''di'''
| of, from
| da
| da
| da
| dal’
| dom
| dam
| dom
|-
| '''du'''
| to
| gia
| gia
| gia
| gi’
| giom
| giam
| giom
|-
| '''a'''
| to, at
| allo
| alla
| allatha
| all’
| allos
| allas
| alla
|-
| '''da'''
| from, by, since
| dalla
| dalla
| dalla
| dall’
| dallom
| dallam
| dallom
|-
| '''in'''
| in
| nallo
| nalla
| nallatha
| nall’
| nallos
| nallas
| nalla
|-
| '''ana'''
| into, on, onto
| agnio
| agnia
| agniatha
| an’
| agnios
| agnias
| agnia
|-
| '''su''' <sup>+ ACC</sup>
| on, about
| sullo
| sulla
| sullatha
| sull’
| sullos
| sullas
| sulla
|-
| '''su''' <sup>+ DAT</sup>
| on, about
| sulla
| sulla
| sulla
| sull’
| sullom
| sullam
| sullom
|}
 
{| class="wikitable" border="1"
|-
! colspan="9" | Optional contractions
|-
! rowspan="2" | Luthic
! rowspan="2" | English
! colspan="7" | Preposition + article
|-
!m. sg.
!f. sg.
!n. sg.
!l’
!m. pl.
!f. pl.
!n. pl.
|-
| '''miþ'''
| with
| miþþa
| miþþa
| miþþa
| miþþ’
| miþþom
| miþþam
| miþþom
|-
| '''inu'''
| without
| inna
| inna
| inna
| inn’
| innom
| innam
| innom
|-
| '''faur'''
| for, through
| faullo
| faulla
| faullatha
| faull’
| faullos
| faullas
| faulla
|-
| '''tra'''
| between, among
| tralla
| tralla
| tralla
| trall’
| trallom
| trallam
| trallom
|-
| '''fra'''
| between, among
| fralla
| fralla
| fralla
| frall’
| frallom
| frallam
| frallom
|}
 
{| class="wikitable" border="1"
|-
! colspan="3" | Preconsonantal apocopated forms
|-
! Luthic
! English
! Preposition + article
|-
| du
| to
| gi
|-
| a
| to, at
| al
|-
| da
| from, by, since
| dal
|-
| in
| in
| nal
|-
| ana
| into, on, onto
| gnia
|-
| su <sup>+ ACC/DAT</sup>
| on, about
| sul
|}
 
====Demonstrative pronouns contractions====
 
Furthermore, prepositions also have optional contractions with the proximal and medial demonstrative pronouns:
 
{| class="wikitable" border="1"
|-
! colspan="16" | Contractions with demonstrative pronouns
|-
! rowspan="2" | Luthic
! rowspan="2" | English
! colspan="12" | Preposition + article
|-
!m. sg. pro.
!f. sg. pro.
!n. sg. <br> pro.
!m. pl. pro.
!f. pl. pro.
!n. pl. pro.
!m. sg. med.
!f. sg. med.
!n. sg. med.
!m. pl. med.
!f. pl. med.
!n. pl. med.
|-
| '''di'''
| of, from
| daþþammo
| daþþise
| daþþammo
| daþþom
| daþþam
| daþþom
| desti
| desta
| desta
| destivo
| destam
| destom
|-
| '''du'''
| to
| giaþþammo
| giaþþise
| giaþþammo
| giaþþom
| giaþþam
| giaþþom
| giesti
| giesta
| giesta
| giestivo
| giestam
|-
| '''a'''
| to, at
| aþþo
| aþþa
| aþþatha
| aþþos
| aþþas
| aþþa
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
|-
| '''da'''
| from, by, since
| daþþammo
| daþþise
| daþþammo
| daþþom
| daþþam
| daþþom
| desti
| desta
| desta
| destivo
| destam
| destom
|-
| '''in'''
| in
| naþþo
| naþþa
| naþþatha
| naþþos
| naþþas
| naþþa
| neste
| nesta
| nestatha
| nestes
| nestas
| nesta
|-
| '''su''' <sup>+ ACC</sup>
| on, about
| suþþo
| suþþa
| suþþatha
| suþþos
| suþþas
| suþþa
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
|-
| '''su''' <sup>+ DAT</sup>
| on, about
| suþþammo
| suþþise
| suþþammo
| suþþom
| suþþam
| suþþom
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
|-
| '''miþ'''
| with
| miþþammo
| miþþise
| miþþammo
| miþþom
| miþþam
| miþþom
| miþþesti
| miþþesta
| miþþesta
| miþþestivo
| miþþestam
| miþþestom
|-
| '''faur'''
| for
| fauþþo
| fauþþa
| fauþþatha
| fauþþos
| fauþþas
| fauþþa
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
|-
| '''tra'''
| between, among
| traþþammo
| traþþise
| traþþammo
| traþþom
| traþþam
| traþþom
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
|-
| '''fra'''
| between, among
| fraþþammo
| fraþþise
| fraþþammo
| fraþþom
| fraþþam
| fraþþom
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
| —
|}
 
===Conjunctions===
Most of the Luthic monosyllabic conjunctions and prepositions have preconsonantal and prevocalic variations.
 
* ''e'' and ''ed''
* ''au'' and ''aud''
* ''a'' and ''ab''
* ''a'' and ''ad''
 
Intervocalic conjunctions are often reduced, these reductions are however not mandatory:
 
* ''e'', ''ed'' but ''·d'' if intervocalic
* ''ac'' but ''·c'' if intervocalic
 
Examples:
 
* Ic e þû (I and you)
* Ic ed is (I and he)
* Þû·d ic (You and I)
* Is ed ic (He and I)
* Ic au þû? (I or you?)
* Ic aud is? (I or he?)
* Þû·d ic? (You or I?)
* Is aud ic? (He or I?)
 
===Romance copula===
:: ''Main article:'' [[w:Romance copula|Romance copula]]
 
As a Romance language, Luthic shares the complexities of the copula in Romance languages when to its counterparts in other languages. A [[w:copula (linguistics)|copula]] is a word that links the [[w:subject (grammar)|subject]] of a sentence with a [[w:predicate (grammar)|predicate]] (a [[w:subject complement|subject complement]]). Whereas English has one main copula verb (and some languages like Russian mostly express the copula implicitly) some Romance languages have more complex forms.
 
''Vessare'' generally focuses on the essence of the subject, and specifically on qualities that include:
# Nationality
# Possession
# Physical and personality traits
# Material
# Origin
 
''Stare'' generally focuses on the condition of the subject, and specifically on qualities that include:
# Physical condition
# Feelings, emotions, and states of mind
# Appearance
 
''Vessare'' is the main copula. ''Stare'' refers to state rather than essence, but more narrowly than in Spanish. ''Vessare'' is used for almost all cases in which English uses “to be”.  It therefore makes sense to concentrate on the few uses of ''stare''.
 
* ''Stare'' means “to be”, “to be feeling”, or “to appear”.
* ''Stare'' is used to form continuous forms of tenses.
* ''Stare''’s past participle ''statu'' has replaced that of ''vessare'', and so ''statu'' is used for “been” in all senses.
* ''Stare'' is occasionally “to be located.”  This is very common for both transient and durable location.
 
===Sentence structure===
Luthic is an OV (Object-Verb) language. Additionally, Luthic, like all Germanic languages except English, uses [[w:V2 word order|V2 word order]], though only in independent clauses. In dependent clauses, the finite verb is placed last.
 
Declarative sentences use V2 (verb in the second position) word order: the finite verb is preceded by one and only one constituent (unlike in English, this doesn’t need to be the subject). The subject is usually omitted [[w:Null-subject language|when it is a pronoun]] – distinctive verb conjugations make it redundant. Subject pronouns are considered emphatic when used at all. All examples given below ignore possible clitics, reductions or other more complex grammatical features of Luthic, these are often labeled “book phrases” for Luthic students and have a very pure and simplified grammar.
 
 
:: ''(Ic) dregco la vadne.''
:: ''ic dregc-o l-a vadn-e''
:: I<small>.NOM</small> drink<small>-PRS.1SG</small> the<small>-ACC.SG.F</small> water<small>-ACC.SG</small>
:: “I drink water (lit. I drink the water).”
 
 
:: ''La vadne dregco (ic).''
:: ''l-a vadn-a dregc-o ic''
:: the<small>-ACC.SG.F</small> water<small>-ACC.SG</small> drink<small>-PRS.1SG</small> I<small>.NOM</small>
:: “The water I drink.”
 
 
Non-finite verbs as well as [[w:Separable verb|separable particles]] are placed at the end of the sentence:
 
 
:: ''La meina frigionda ist al festa '''anaqemandu'''.''
:: ''l-a mein-a frigiond-a ist al fest-a '''ana=qem-andu'''''
:: the<small>-ACC.SG.F</small> my<small>-ACC.SG.F</small> friend<small>-ACC.SG.F</small> is at<small>=</small>the<small>-DAT.SG.F</small> party<small>-DAT.SG</small> on<small>=</small>come<small>-GER</small>
:: “My friend is arriving (lit. is on-coming) at the party.”
 
 
:: ''La meina frigionda '''qemaut''' al festa '''ana'''.''
:: ''l-a mein-a frigion-a qem-aut al fest-a ana''
:: the<small>-ACC.SG.F</small> my<small>-ACC.SG.F</small> friend<small>-ACC.SG.F</small> come<small>-PRF.3SG</small> at<small>=</small>the<small>-DAT.SG.F</small> party<small>-DAT.SG</small> on
:: “My friend arrived (lit. on-came) at the party.”
 
 
An inversion is used to emphasise an adverbial phrase, a predicative, an object, or an inner verbal phrase in a sentence. The subject phrase, at the beginning of an indicative unstressed sentence, is moved directly behind the conjugated verb, and the component to be emphasised is moved to the beginning of the sentence. The conjugated verb is always the second sentence element in indicative statements.
 
 
Example 1:
:: ''Fliugat snele''. “(It) flies fast.” – not emphasised;
:: ''Snele fliugat''. “Fast (it) flies.” – emphasised, i.e. “Fast is how it flies.”
 
 
Example 2:
:: ''Is liuvaleicu''. “(You) are adorable.” – not emphasised;
:: ''Liuvaleicu is''. “Adorable (you) are.” – emphasised, i.e. “Adorable is what you are.”
 
 
Interrogative and command sentences use the V1 (verb-first) word order: the finite verb occupies the first position in the sentence. However, wh question sentences use the V2 word order. The pronoun subject is never omitted in those cases. Questions are formed by a rising intonation at the end of the sentence (in written form, a question mark).
 
 
:: ''Fliugas þû snele?''
:: ''fliug-as þû snel-e''
:: fly<small>-PRS.2SG</small> you<small>.SG</small> fast<small>-ADVR</small>
:: “Do you fly fast?”
 
 
:: ''Ce taugis þû?''
:: ''ce taugis þû''
:: what do<small>-PRS.2SG</small> you<small>-SG</small>
:: “What are you doing?”
 
 
:: ''Taugiâ þû svasve rogio!''
:: ''taugi-â þû svasve rogi-o''
:: do<small>-IMP.2SG</small> you<small>.SG</small> as say<small>-PRS.1SG</small>
:: “Do as I say!”
 
 
Relative and subordinate clauses maintain the same word order.
[[File:Luthic intonation.png|thumb|[[w:Intonation (linguistics)|Intonation]] of Luthic relative clauses]]
 
 
:: ''Galauvo ei, sariat beteze si þatha tavissimos gestradage.''
:: ''galauv-o ei sari-at betez-e si þatha ta-vi-ssimos gestradag-e''
:: think<small>-PRS.1SG</small> that be<small>-CND.PRS.3SG</small> better<small>-ADVR</small> if it<small>.ACC.SG</small> do<small>-IMPF-CND.1PL</small> tomorrow<small>-ADVR</small>
:: “I think that it would be better if we did it tomorrow.”
 
 
:: ''Galauvas þû ei, sariat beteze si þatha tavissimos gestradage?''
:: ''galauv-as þû ei sari-at betez-e si þatha ta-vi-ssimos gestradag-e''
:: think<small>-PRS.2SG</small> you<small>.SG</small> that be<small>-CND.PRS.3SG</small> better<small>-ADVR</small> if it<small>.ACC.SG</small> do<small>-IMPF-CND.1PL</small> tomorrow<small>-ADVR</small>
:: “Do you think that it would be better if we did it tomorrow?”
 
===Case usage===
Luthic case usage is very similar to Gothic, itself who calqued Ancient Greek grammar.
 
:* Nominative: ''(Ic) im lûthicu''. “I am Luthic”
:* Accusative: ''(Ic) spraco lo lûthico''. “I speak Luthic”
:* Dative: ''(Ic) laso lo lûthico þus''. “I teach Luthic to you”
:* Genitive: ''La rasda lûthicoro þiudesca non ist''. “The language of the Luths is not Germanic”
 
 
* '''Ablato-locatival accusative:'''
:* Extent of space: ''(Is) qaervaut þreis chilometros''. “He walked three kilometres”
:* Duration of time: ''(Is) non beidaut aeno dago''. “He didn’t wait for one day”
:* Place when: ''Þo staþo''. “In/on this place”
::* Sometimes prepositional: ''Naþþo staþo''. “''id.''”
:* Time when: ''Giaeno vintru''. “In/at/during that winter”
:* Within which: ''Leizelas horas (is) scolat sveltare''. “Within a few hours he shall die”
::* Sometimes prepositional (dative is used instead): ''Dentro di leizelam horam (is) scolat sveltare''. “Within a few hours he shall die”
 
 
* '''Dative:'''
:* Purpose: ''Mannesci non ovela, ac gôðana taugianda''. “Humans are not made for evil, but for good”
:* Action for: ''Þus scolo helfare los frigiondos þeinos''. “I must help your friends for you”
::* Purpose for action for: ''Qenam naseini im''. “I am the (cause of) salvation for women”
:* Action against: ''La þeina frescapi scolo gadauþare þuc''. “Against/in opposition to your freedom I shall kill you”
::* Purpose for action against: ''Manni dauþam im''. “I am the (cause of) death for men” (affects negatively)
:* Concerning: ''Ce þû mis scolas taugiare''? “What will you do for me? (expressing the speaker being especially interested in what the other is doing for him or her)”
 
 
* '''Instrumento-dative:'''
:* Instrument: ''(Ic) reizo penno''. “I write with a pen”
:* Means: ''(Ic) saeco augonivo''. “I see with the eyes”
:* Impersonal agent: ''Is gadauþada coltella velvi''. “He was killed by the knife of the robber”
:* Manner: ''(Ic) fregio þuc managa fregiaþþa''. “I love you with many affection”
::* Prepositional if with no adjective: ''(Ic) fregio þuc miþ fregiaþþa''. “I love you with affection”
:* Accompaniment: ''(Ic) scolo qemare frigiondom''. “I shall come with friends”
::* Sometimes prepositional: ''(Ic) scolo qemare miþ frigiondom''. “''id.''”
:* Degree of difference: ''(Is) alþezo aenom giarivo''. “He is older by a few years”
:* Quality: ''Aenu vaere summa honesta''. “A man of highest honesty”
 
 
* '''Ablato-dative:'''
:* Separation: ''(Ic) sculo cofare l’ovelo þus''. “I shall keep the evil away from you”
:* Motion away (prepositional): ''Giofa Ravenna du America furondo''. “They went from Ravenna to America”
:* Personal agent (prepositional): ''Roma a lom Gôthicom qesciada''. “Rome is destroyed by the Goths”
:* Comparison (adjectival): ''Qenam scauneza''. “More beautiful than women”
:* Cause: ''(Ic) greto ira ed agi''. “I cry with anger and fear” (marks the reason)
 
* '''Instrumento-genitive:'''
:* Material: ''La celecna staene''. “The tower made of stone”
:* Author/creator: ''Þa celecna taveða manum meinara''. “This tower was built by my hands”
:* Behaviour: ''Molle vadni''. “Soft like water”
::* Often displaced by the relative adverb: ''Molle svasve vadne''. “Soft like water”
 
====Example text====
[[w:Schleicher's fable|Schleicher’s fable]] in Standard Luthic:
: '''La pecora e gl’aeqqi'''
 
:: Aena pecora ei, stavat inu volla, saecaut somos aeqqos: aeno eisôro tiravat aeno pesante carro, aeno anþero baeravat aeno mêchelo carico ed aeno anþero transportavat aeno manno snele. La pecora roðit all’aeqqos: “Mic pianget atha haertene saecandu ce il mannu trattat l’aeqqos”. Gl’aeqqi roðirondo: “Ascoltâ, pecora: faur unse ist penosu saecare ei, il mannu, l’unsar signiore, sic taugit aena veste la volla pecore, mentre le pecore ristondo inu volla”. Dopo ascoltauða þatha, la pecora agro fliugat.
 
:: ''aen-a pecor-a ei st-avat inu voll-a saec-aut som-os aeqq-os aen-o eis-ôro tir-av-at aen-o pesant-e carr-o aen-o anþer-o baer-av-at aen-o mêchel-o caric-o ed aen-o anþer-o transport-av-at aen-o mann-o snel-e l-a pecor-a roð-it al-l=aeqq-os mic piang-et atha haerten-e saec-andu ce il mann-u tratt-at l=aeqq-os gl=aeqq-i roð-irondo ascolt-â pecor-a faur uns-e ist penos-u saec-are ei il mann-o l=unsar signior-e sic taug-it aen-a vest-e l-a voll-a pecor-e mentre l-e pecor-e rist-ondo inu voll-a dopo ascolt-au-ða þatha l-a pecor-a agr-o fliug-at''
 
:: a<small>-NOM.F.SG</small> sheep<small>-NOM.SG</small> that be<small>-IMPF.3SG</small> without wool<small>-DAT.SG</small> see<small>-PRF.3SG</small> some<small>-ACC.M.PL</small> horse<small>-ACC.PL</small> one<small>-ACC.M.SG</small> they<small>-GEN.M.PL</small> pull<small>-IMPF.3SG</small> wagon<small>-ACC.SG</small> one<small>-ACC.M.SG</small> other<small>-ACC.SG</small> bring<small>-IMPF.3SG</small> a<small>-ACC.M.SG</small> big<small>-ACC.M.SG</small> load<small>-ACC.SG</small> and one<small>-ACC.M.SG</small> other<small>-ACC.SG</small> carry<small>-IMPF.3SG</small> a<small>-ACC.M.SG</small> man<small>-ACC.SG</small> fast<small>-ADVR</small> the<small>-NOM.F.SG</small> sheep<small>-NOM.SG</small> say<small>-PRF.3SG</small> to<small>=</small>the<small>-ACC.M.PL</small> horse<small>-ACC.PL</small> I<small>.ACC.SG</small> pain<small>-PRS.3SG</small> the<small>-ACC.N.SG</small> heart<small>-ACC.SG</small> see<small>-GRD</small> how the<small>-NOM.M.SG</small> man<small>-NOM.SG</small> manage<small>-PRS.3SG</small> the<small>-ACC.M.PL=</small>horse<small>-ACC.PL</small> the<small>-NOM.M.PL=</small>horse<small>-NOM.PL</small> say<small>-PRF.3PL</small> hear<small>-IMP.2SG</small> sheep<small>-NOM.SG</small> for us<small>.ACC.PL</small> be<small>-PRS.3SG</small> pitiful see<small>-INF</small> that the<small>-NOM.M.SG</small> man<small>-NOM.SG</small> the<small>-NOM.M.SG=</small>our<small>-NOM.M.SG</small> lord<small>-NOM.SG</small> do<small>-PRS.3R.SG</small> a<small>-ACC.F.SG</small> garnment<small>-ACC.SG</small> the<small>-DAT.F.SG</small> wool<small>-DAT.SG</small> sheep<small>-GEN.SG</small> whereas the<small>-NOM.F.PL</small> sheep<small>-NOM.PL</small> remain<small>-PRS.3PL</small> without wool<small>-DAT.SG</small> after hear<small>-IMPF.PASS.3SG</small> that<small>.ACC.N.SG</small> the<small>-NOM.F.SG</small> sheep<small>-NOM.SG</small> field<small>-ACC.SG</small> flee<small>-PRS.3SG</small>
 
==Dialectology==
[[File:Dialect map.png|thumb|Geographical distribution.]]
Luthic has many [[w:Sociolect|sociolects]], whose differ in phonology and grammar; Standard Ravennese Luthic is the only form who declines noun by cases, other informal sociolects are way closer to other Romance languages in grammar (restrict [[w:Register (sociolinguistics)|register]]). Whereas sociolect refers to a variation in language between different social groups, dialect is a language variation based upon a geographical location, and Luthic has a small geographical area.
 
===Upper Luthic===
A major dialect is found nearby Ferrara, who was first mentioned when it was conquered by Germanic tribe the Lombards in 753 CE, and the Byzantine Empire lost its rule over the city. It was gifted to the [[w:Holy See|Holy See]] by the Franks in either 754 or 756 CE, and was led by the Bishops of Ravenna. Benedictine and Cistercian monasteries started reclaiming Podeltan lands in the 9th century. This contact with West Germanic languages, and the lesser presence of East Germanic influence (unlike Ravenna) modelled some sound changes in discrepancy when compared to Standard Ravennese Luthic. This dialect is often called '''Ferraresi Luthic''' (''Lûthica Estense'') or '''Upper Luthic''' (''Altalûthica'').
 
* '''Bilabial and labiodental merging:''' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/ɸ/]] and [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/β/]] are merged with [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|/f/]] and [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|/v/]], a common feature among Luthic dialects.
:* ''soffiare'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[soɸˈɸja.re]]] > ''soffiar'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[so.fjɐr]]];
:* ''avvoltu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐβˈβol.tu]]] > ''avvolt'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[ɐ.volt]]].
 
* '''Thorn fortition:''' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/θ/]] and [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/ð/]] are fortified to [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|/t/]] and [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|/d/]] in every position:
:* ''þû'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈθu]]] > ''tû'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[tu]]];
:* ''faðar'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈfa.ðɐr]]] > ''fadar'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[fɐ.dɐɾ]]].
 
* '''Vowel fracture:''' Luthic strong vowels become diphthongs, ⟨ae⟩ [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/ɛ/]] > ⟨ai⟩ /ɐj/, ⟨au⟩ [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/ɔ/]] > ⟨au⟩ /aw/, ⟨ei⟩ [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/i/]] > ⟨ei⟩ /ɐj/:
:* ''aenu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɛ.nu]]] > ''ain'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[ɐjn]]];
:* ''hauviþo'', ''hauviþa'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɔ.βi.θo ˈɔ.βi.θɐ]]] > ''auvit'', ''auvita'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[ɐw.vit ɐw.vi.tɐ]]];
:* ''þeinu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈθi.nu]]] > ''tein'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[tɐjn]]].
::* The feminine plural form is always realised as [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|/e/]].
 
* '''Monophthongisation:''' Luthic diphthong [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/ju/]] is monophthongised to [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|/y/]]:
:* ''diuso'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈdju.zo]]] > ''deus'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[dys]]].
 
* '''Loss of untressed final vowels and terminal devoicing:''' Every unstressed vowel is dropped, except in plurals and monosyllabic words; terminal consonants are devoiced (except if sonorants):
:* ''geva'', ''geve'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈd͡ʒe.βɐ ˈd͡ʒe.βe]]] > ''gef'', ''geve'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[ʒef ʒe.ve]]];
:* ''manago'', ''managi'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[mɐˈna.ɣu mɐˈna.d͡ʒi]]] > ''manac'', ''managi'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[mɐ.nɐk mɐ.nɐ.ʒi]]].
 
* '''Deaffrication:''' Affricates are lenited to fricatives:
:* ''ce'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[t͡ʃe]]] > ''ce'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[ʃe]]];
:* ''gi'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[d͡ʒi]]] > ''gi'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[ʒi]]].
 
* '''Loss of stress:''' Stress is fully lost, together with Gorgia Toscana:
:* ''qotidianu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[kʷo.θiˈdja.nu]]] > ''qotidian'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[ko.ti.djɐn]]].
 
* '''Degemination:''' Lack of gemination as a distinctive feature:
:* ''grassa'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɡras.sɐ]]] and ''graso'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[ˈɡra.zo]]] > ''gras'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[ɡɾɐs]]];
:* ''orecchia'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[oˈrek.k̟jɐ]]] > ''orecchi'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[o.ɾek̟i]]].
 
* '''Loss of coarticulations:'''
:* ''qena'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈkᶣe.nɐ]]] > ''qen'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[k̟en]]].
 
====Sample text and comparison====
{{Col-begin|80%}}
{{col-n|2}}
<poem style="font-style: italic">
* '''Orthographic version in Standard Ravennese Luthic'''
Faðar unsar, þû hemeno,
Veiða latha namno þeino;
La þiuðanagarda þeina qemit;
Lo vegliano þeino taugiat;
Svasve hemeno ed ana aerþa.
Il chiaefu qotidianu unsar gevâ unse oggi,
Ed afietâ las unsaras colpas,
Svasve afietiamos þos ei, colpando unsis;
E non letare unse in tentazione
Ac frieau unse da mala.
Faur þuc ist þiuðanagarda,
E la forza, la volþa,
Faur saechia saechioro. Amen.
</poem>
{{col-n|2}}
<poem>
* '''Orthographic version in Upper Luthic'''
Fadar unsar, tû in emen
Veit lat namn tein
La teudanagart tein qemit
Lo velhan tein taugiat;
Sva in emen et an airt.
Il qiaif qotidian unsar gevâ uns ogi
Et afietâ le unsere colpe
Sva afietiamos esti ei, colpan unsis
E non letar unse in tentazion
Ac friau unse di il mal.
Faur tuc ist la teudanagart,
E la forza, la glori
Faur la saiqia di la saiqia. Amen.
</poem>
{{Col-end}}
 
{{Col-begin|80%}}
{{col-n|2}}
<poem>
* '''Standard Ravennese Luthic narrow transcription'''
[ˈfa.ðɐr ˈũ.sɐr | ˈθu eˈme.no
ˈvi.ðɐ lɐ.tɐ.n‿ˈnam.no ˈθi.no
lɐ θjuˌða.nɐˈɡar.dɐ ˈθi.nɐ ˈkᶣe.miθ
lo veʎˈʎa.no ˈθi.no ˈtɔ.d͡ʒɐθ
zvɐ.zve eˈme.no e.ð‿ɐ.nɐ ˈɛr.θɐ
il ˈk̟jɛ.ɸu kʷo.θiˈdja.nu ˈũ.sɐr d͡ʒeˈβa ũ.se ˈɔd.d͡ʒi
e.ð‿ɐ.ɸjeˈta lɐs ˈũ.sɐ.rɐs ˈk̠ol.pɐs
zvɐ.zve ɐ.ɸjeˈtja.mo.θ‿θos ˈi | k̠olˈpɐn.do ũ.sis
e non leˈta.re ũ.se in ten.tɐtˈt͡sjo.ne
ɐ.f‿frjeˈɔ ũ.se da.m‿ˈma.la
fɔr θux ist θjuˌða.nɐˈɡar.da
e la ˈfɔr.t͡sa | la ˈvol.θa
fɔr ˈsɛ.k̟jɐ ˈsɛ.k̟jo.ru ‖ ˈa.men]
</poem>
{{col-n|2}}
<poem>
* '''Upper Luthic narrow transcription'''
[fɐ.dɐɾ ũ.sɐɾ | tu in e.men
vɐjt lɐt nɐmn tɐjn
lɐ ty.dɐ.nɐ.ɡɐɾt tɐjn k̟e.mit
lo ve.ʎɐn tɐjn tɐw.ʒɐt
zvɐ in e.men e.t‿ɐn ɐjɾt
il k̟jɐjf ko.ti.djɐn ũ.sɐɾ ʒe.va ũs ɔ.ʒi
e.t‿ɐ.fjeˈta le ũ.sɐ.ɾe kol.pe
zvɐ ɐ.fje.tjɐ.mos es.ti i | kol.pɐn ũ.sis
e non le.tɐɾ ũs in ten.tɐ.sjon
ɐk fɾjɔ ũs di il mɐl
fɔɾ tuk ist lɐ ty.dɐ.nɐ.ɡɐɾt
e lɐ fɔrs | lɐ ɡlɔ.ɾi
fɔɾ lɐ sɐj.k̟jɐ di lɐ sɐj.k̟jɐ ‖ ɐ.men]
</poem>
{{Col-end}}
 
Although general grammar remains very similar, prepositions become more frequent due to a lack of cases. Some sociolects may also lack the neuter gender, fully merging it with the masculine or the feminine (via the plural form). There are also many [[w:Ethnolect|ethnolects]] influenced by regional languages, such as the Lutho-Emilian ethnolect, who has its grammar and vocabulary largely affected and influenced by the [[w:Emilian dialects|Emilian dialects]]. The orthography may also be affected, since Upper Luthic lacks a regulatory body:
 
* ⟨gi⟩ or ⟨j⟩ for [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|/ʒ/]]: Standard Ravennese Luthic ''giâ'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈd͡ʒa]]], Upper Luthic ''gia'' or ''ja'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[ʒɐ]]];
* ⟨gli⟩ or ⟨lh⟩ for [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|/ʎ/]]: Standard Ravennese Luthic ''gli'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ʎi]]], Upper Luthic ''gli'' or ''lhi'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[ʎi]]];
* ⟨gni⟩ or ⟨nh⟩ for [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|/ɲ/]]: Standard Ravennese Luthic ''signiore'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[siɲˈɲo.re]]], Upper Luthic ''signior'' or ''sinhor'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[si.ɲoɾ]]];
* ⟨eu⟩, ⟨y⟩ or ⟨ü⟩ for [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|/y/]]: Standard Ravennese Luthic ''niu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[nju]]], Upper Luthic ''neu'', ''ny'' or ''nü''[[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic| [ny]]];
* Disagreement on voiceless terminal consonant spelling: Standard Ravennese Luthic ''ac'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐx]]], Upper Luthic ''ac'' or ''ag'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[ɐk]]]; Standard Ravennese Luthic ''garda'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɡar.dɐ]]], Upper Luthic ''gart'' or ''gard'' [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|[ɡɐɾt]]].
 
Another problem with Upper Luthic lacking a regulatory body is the lack of official statistics:
 
* Unknown amount of native speakers;
* Unknown status as an endangered language;
* Lack of resources.
 
====Upper Luthic phonology====
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ '''Estimate vowels of Upper Luthic'''
|-
!rowspan="2"|
!colspan="2"|[[w:Front vowel|Front]]
!colspan="2"|[[w:Central vowel|Central]]
!colspan="2"|[[w:Back vowel|Back]]
|-
!{{small|oral}}
!{{small|nasal}}
!{{small|oral}}
!{{small|nasal}}
!{{small|oral}}
!{{small|nasal}}
|-
![[w:Close vowel|Close]]
|[[w:Close front unrounded vowel|i]]
|[[w:Nasalization|ĩ]]
|
|
|[[w:Close back rounded vowel|u]]
|[[w:Nasalization|ũ]]
|-
![[w:Close-mid vowel|Close-mid]]
|[[w:Close-mid front unrounded vowel|e]]
|[[w:Nasalization|ẽ]]
|colspan="2"|
|[[w:Close-mid back rounded vowel|o]]
|[[w:Nasalization|õ]]
|-
![[w:Open-mid vowel|Open-mid]]
|[[w:Open-mid front unrounded vowel|ɛ]]
|
|[[w:Near-open central vowel|ɐ]]
|[[w:Nasalization|ɐ̃]]
|[[w:Open-mid back rounded vowel|ɔ]]
|
|}
 
* Nasal vowels may be realised as velar nasal release [[w:Nasal release|[ɐᵑ eᵑ iᵑ oᵑ uᵑ]]];
* /ɛ/ and /ɔ/ are in free variation with [[w:Open-mid central unrounded vowel|[ɜ]]] and [[w:Open-mid central rounded vowel|[ɞ]]];
* /ɐ/ is in free variation with [[w:Mid central vowel|[ə]]].
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Estimate consonants of Upper Luthic
!colspan=2|
! [[w:Labial consonant|Labial]]
! [[w:Dental consonant|Dental]]/<br />[[Alveolar consonant|Alveolar]]
! [[w:Postalveolar consonant|Postalveolar]]
! [[w:Palatal consonant|Palatal]]
! [[w:Velar consonant|Velar]]
! [[w:Uvular consonant|Uvular]]
|-
!colspan=2| [[w:Nasal consonant|Nasal]]
| [[w:Voiced bilabial nasal|m]]
| [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar nasals|n]]
|
| [[w:Voiced palatal nasal|ɲ]]
| [[w:Voiced velar nasal|ŋ]]
|
|-
!rowspan=2| [[w:Stop consonant|Plosive]]
! {{small|[[w:voicelessness|voiceless]]}}
| [[w:Voiceless bilabial plosive|p]]
| [[w:Voiceless dental plosive|t]]
|
|
| [[w:Voiceless velar plosive|k]]
|
|-
! {{small|[[w:voice (phonetics)|voiced]]}}
| [[w:Voiced bilabial plosive|b]]
| [[w:Voiced dental plosive|d]]
|
|
| [[w:Voiced velar plosive|ɡ]]
|
|-
!rowspan=2| [[w:Fricative consonant|Fricative]]
! {{small|[[w:voicelessness|voiceless]]}}
| [[w:Voiceless labiodental fricative|f]]
| [[w:Voiceless alveolar fricative|s]]
| [[w:Voiceless postalveolar fricative|ʃ]]
|
|
|
|-
! {{small|[[w:voice (phonetics)|voiced]]}}
| [[w:Voiced labiodental fricative|v]]
| [[w:Voiced alveolar fricative|z]]
| [[w:Voiced postalveolar fricative|ʒ]]
|
|
|
|-
!rowspan=2| [[w:Approximant consonant|Approximant]]
! {{small|[[w:semivowel|semivowel]]}}
|
|
|
| [[w:Voiced palatal approximant|j]]
| [[w:Voiced labial–velar approximant|w]]
|
|-
! {{small|[[w:Lateral consonant|lateral]]}}
|
| [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar lateral approximants|l]]
|
| [[w:Voiced palatal lateral approximant|ʎ]]
|
|
|-
! colspan="2" | [[w:Flap consonant|Flap]]
|
| [[w:Voiced dental and alveolar taps and flaps|ɾ]]
|
|
|
|
|-
! colspan="2" | [[w:Trill consonant|Trill]]
|
|
|
|
|
| [[w:Voiced uvular trill|ʀ]]
|}
 
* /k/ and /ɡ/ are described as pre-velar [[w:Voiceless_velar_plosive#cite_note-1|[k̟]]] and [[w:Voiceless_velar_plosive#cite_note-1|[ɡ̟]]] to palatal [[w:Voiceless palatal plosive|[c]]] and [[w:Voiced palatal plosive|[ɟ]]] before [[IPA for Luthic#Upper_Luthic|/i, e, ɛ, j/]];
* /ʃ/ and /ʒ/ are not labialised and are in free variation with [[w:Voiceless retroflex fricative|[ʂ]]] and [[w:Voiced retroflex fricative|[ʐ]]];
* /ʀ/ is in free variation with [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar trills|[r]]];
* /ʎ/ may be described as a fricative [[w:Voiced palatal lateral fricative|[ʎ̝]]].
 
====Upper Luthic morphology====
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+Nominal declension
! Number
! o-stem <sup>m</sup>
! a-stem <sup>f</sup>
! o-stem <sup>n</sup>
! i-stem <sup>unm</sup>
! r-stem <sup>unm</sup>
! d-stem <sup>unm</sup>
|-
! Singular
| dac (< dagu)
| gef (< geva)
| auvit (< hauviþo)
| craft (< crafte)
| brotar (< broþar)
| piet (< pied-)
|-
! Plural
| dagi
| geve
| auvita
| crafti
| brotari
| piedi
|}
 
In general, Upper Luthic has similar, and simpler, nominal declension paradigmata. For u-stems nouns, they are fully merged with o-stems.
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align: center
|-style="background: #c8c8c8; font-weight:bold"
|+Verbal conjugation
| colspan="2" | Tense || colspan="6" | Forms
|-
! colspan="2" | Infinitive
| colspan="6" | aver
|-
! colspan="2" | Auxiliary verb
| colspan="6" | aver
|-
! colspan="2" | Past participle
| colspan="6" style="text-align:center;" |
{| class="wikitable" style="margin-left: auto; margin-right: auto; border: none;"
|-
! Number
! masculine
! feminine
! neuter
|-
! Singular
| avut
| avuta
| avut
|-
! Plural
| avuti
| avute
| avuta
|}
|-
! colspan="2" | Present participle
| colspan="6" style="text-align:center;" | avent
|-
! colspan="2" | Gerund
| colspan="6" style="text-align:center;" | avent
|-
! colspan="2" style="background:linear-gradient(to top right,#EAECF0 49.5%,#aaa 49.5%,#aaa 50.5%,#EAECF0 50.5%);line-height:1;" | <div style="margin-left:2em;text-align:right;">Person&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;</div><div style="margin-right:2em;text-align:left;">&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;Tense</div>
! style="width:12.5%" | first singular<br/>''ic''
! style="width:12.5%" | second singular<br/>''tû''
! style="width:12.5%" | third singular<br/>''is'', ''ia'', ''at''
! style="width:12.5%" | first plural<br/>''vi''
! style="width:12.5%" | second plural<br/>''gi''
! style="width:12.5%" | third plural<br/>''eis'', ''ise'', ''ia''
|-
! rowspan="12" | Indicative
! Present active
| o
| ais
| at
| aimos
| aites
| an
|-
! Present passive
| avar
| avas
| avat
| avant
| avant
| avant
|-
! Present perfect active
| o avut
| ais avut
| at avut
| aimos avut
| aites avut
| an avut
|-
! Present perfect passive
| avar avut
| avas avut
| avat avut
| avant avut
| avant avut
| avant avut
|-
! Imperfect active
| avait
| avaitas
| avaitat
| avaitamos
| avaitates
| avaitan
|-
! Imperfect passive
| avaitar
| avaitas
| avaitat
| avaitant
| avaitant
| avaitant
|-
! Preterite active
| ep
| avest
| ebbet
| avemmos
| avestes
| ebber
|-
! Preterite passive
| ebbira
| aves
| ebbet
| avem
| avem
| avem
|-
! Future active
| avro
| avrais
| avrat
| avremos
| avretes
| avran
|-
! Future passive
| avrar
| avras
| avrat
| avrant
| avrant
| avrant
|-
! Future perfect active
| avro avut
| avrais avut
| avrat avut
| avremos avut
| avrêtes avut
| avran avut
|-
! Future perfect passive
| avrar avut
| avras avut
| avrat avut
| avrant avut
| avrant avut
| avrant avut
|-
! rowspan="6" | Subjunctive
! Present active
| abbi
| abbias
| abbiat
| abbiamos
| abbiates
| abbian
|-
! Present passive
| abbair
| abbais
| abbait
| abbaint
| abbaint
| abbaint
|-
! Imperfect active
| avessi
| avessis
| avessit
| avessimos
| avessites
| avesser
|-
! Imperfect passive
| avessir
| avessis
| avessit
| avessint
| avessint
| avessint
|-
! Preterite active
| abbi avut
| abbias avut
| abbiat avut
| abbiamos avut
| abbiates avut
| abbian avut
|-
! Preterite passive
| abbair avut
| abbais avut
| abbait avut
| abbaint avut
| abbaint avut
| abbaint avut
|-
! rowspan="4" | Conditional
! Present active
| averi
| averias
| averiat
| averiamos
| averiates
| averian
|-
! Present passive
| averiar
| averias
| averiat
| averiant
| averiant
| averiant
|-
! Preterite active
| averi avut
| averias avut
| averiat avut
| averiamos avut
| averiates avut
| averian avut
|-
! Preterite passive
| averiar avut
| averias avut
| averiat avut
| averiant avut
| averiant avut
| averiant avut
|-
! rowspan="2" | Imperative
! Positive
| &nbsp;
| ave
| colspan="2" | &nbsp;
| avet
| &nbsp;
|-
! Negative
| &nbsp;
| non aver
| colspan="2" | &nbsp;
| non averet
| &nbsp;
|}
 
Some verbal forms are speculation (by applying and following the common sound changes), as they are not attested.
 
===Standard Bolognese Luthic===
<div style="float:right; width:35%; padding:15px; background: #f5f8ff; border: 1px solid blue; margin-left:8px; margin-right:8px;margin-bottom:15px; text-align:center; font-size: small">
:''"… I say, then, that perhaps those are not wrong who claim that the Bolognese speak a more beautiful language than most, especially since they take many features of their own speech from that of the people who live around them, in Imola, Ferrara and Modena I believe that everybody does this with respect to his own neighbours.... So the above-mentioned citizens of Bologna take a soft, yielding quality from those of Imola, and from the people of Ferrara and Modena, on the other hand, a certain abruptness which is more typical of the Lombards.... If, then, the Bolognese take from all sides, as I have said, it seems reasonable to suggest that their language, tempered by the combination of opposites mentioned above, should achieve a praiseworthy degree of elegance; and this, in my opinion, is beyond doubt true."''<br/> ([[w:Dante Alighieri|Dante Alighieri]], [[w:De vulgari eloquentia|''De vulgari eloquentia'']] - ''Liber I'', xv, 2-5)
</div>
Although very similar to Standard Ravennese Luthic, there is noticeable influence from the regional [[w:Bolognese dialect|Bolognese dialects]], dialects of [[w:Emilian dialects|Emilian]], one of the [[w:Gallo-Italic|Gallo-Italic]] languages of the [[w:Romance languages|Romance]] family:
 
* [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/t͡ʃ d͡ʒ/]] are fully merged with [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|/t͡s d͡z/]].
 
Furthermore, Standard Bolognese Luthic is affected by [[w:Metaphony (Romance languages)|apophony]]:
{| class="wikitable" style="margin:1em; text-align:center;"
|+Raising-type metaphony
! Unaffected !! Mutated
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|/ˈmet.to/]] “I put” || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|/ˈmit.tis/]] “you put”
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|/ˈes.to/]] “this (neut.)” || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|/ˈis.tu/]] “this (masc.)”
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|/moˈdɛs.tɐ/]] “modest (fem.)” || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|/moˈdes.tu/]] “modest (masc.)”
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|/ˈspo.zɐ/]] “wife” || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|/ˈspu.zu/]] “husband”
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|/ˈmɔ.reθ/]] “he dies” || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|/ˈmo.ris/]] “you die”
|-
| [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|/ˈmɔ.ʃɐ/]] “depressed (fem.)” || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|/ˈmo.ʃu/]] “depressed (masc.)”
|}
 
====Standard Bolognese Luthic phonology====
Standard Bolognese Luthic is almost identical to Standard Ravennese Luthic, itself being very similar to the phonology of Emilian Bolognese dialects.
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ '''Vowel phonemes of Standard Bolognese Luthic'''
|-
!rowspan="2"|
!colspan="2"|[[w:Front vowel|Front]]
!colspan="2"|[[w:Central vowel|Central]]
!colspan="2"|[[w:Back vowel|Back]]
|-
!{{small|oral}}
!{{small|nasal}}
!{{small|oral}}
!{{small|nasal}}
!{{small|oral}}
!{{small|nasal}}
|-
![[w:Close vowel|Close]]
|[[w:Close front unrounded vowel|i]]
|[[w:Nasalization|ĩ]]
|
|
|[[w:Close back rounded vowel|u]]
|[[w:Nasalization|ũ]]
|-
![[w:Close-mid vowel|Close-mid]]
|[[w:Close-mid front unrounded vowel|e]]
|[[w:Nasalization|ẽ]]
|colspan="2"|
|[[w:Close-mid back rounded vowel|o]]
|[[w:Nasalization|õ]]
|-
![[w:Open-mid vowel|Open-mid]]
|[[w:Open-mid front unrounded vowel|ɛ]]
|
|[[w:Near-open central vowel|ɐ]]
|[[w:Nasalization|ɐ̃]]
|[[w:Open-mid back rounded vowel|ɔ]]
|
|-
![[w:Open vowel|Open]]
|colspan="2"|
|[[w:Open central unrounded vowel|a]]
|
|colspan="2"|
|}
 
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Consonant phonemes of Standard Bolognese Luthic
! colspan=2 rowspan=2 |
! rowspan=2| [[w:Labial consonant|Labial]]
! rowspan=2| [[w:Dental consonant|Dental]]/<br />[[Alveolar consonant|Alveolar]]
! rowspan=2| [[w:Postalveolar consonant|Postalveolar]]
! rowspan=2| [[w:Palatal consonant|Palatal]]
! colspan=2| [[w:Velar consonant|Velar]]
|-
! {{small|plain}}
! {{small|[[w:Labialization|labialized]]}}
|-
!colspan=2| [[w:Nasal consonant|Nasal]]
| [[w:Voiced bilabial nasal|m]]
| [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar nasals|n]]
|
| [[w:Voiced palatal nasal|ɲ]]
| [[w:Voiced velar nasal|ŋ]]
| [[w:Labialization|(ŋʷ)]]
|-
!rowspan=2| [[w:Stop consonant|Plosive]]
! {{small|[[w:voicelessness|voiceless]]}}
| [[w:Voiceless bilabial plosive|p]]
| [[w:Voiceless dental plosive|t]]
|
|
| [[w:Voiceless velar plosive|k]]
| [[w:Labialization|kʷ]]
|-
! {{small|[[w:voice (phonetics)|voiced]]}}
| [[w:Voiced bilabial plosive|b]]
| [[w:Voiced dental plosive|d]]
|
|
| [[w:Voiced velar plosive|ɡ]]
| [[w:Labialization|ɡʷ]]
|-
!rowspan=2| [[w:Fricative consonant|Fricative]]
! {{small|[[w:voicelessness|voiceless]]}}
| [[w:Voiceless labiodental fricative|f]]
| [[w:Voiceless alveolar fricative|s]] [[w:Voiceless dental fricative|θ]]
| [[w:Voiceless postalveolar fricative|ʃ]]
|
| [[w:Voiceless velar fricative|(x)]]
|
|-
! {{small|[[w:voice (phonetics)|voiced]]}}
| [[w:Voiced labiodental fricative|v]]
| [[w:Voiced alveolar fricative|z]]
|
|
|colspan=2|
|-
!rowspan=2| [[w:Affricate consonant|Affricate]]
! {{small|[[w:voicelessness|voiceless]]}}
| [[w:Voiceless labiodental affricate|(p͡f)]]
| [[w:Voiceless alveolar affricate|t͡s]] [[w:Voiceless dental non-sibilant affricate|(t͡θ)]]
|
|
|
|
|-
! {{small|[[w:voicelessness|voiceless]]}}
|
| [[w:Voiced alveolar affricate|d͡z]]
|
|
|
|-
!rowspan=3| [[w:Approximant consonant|Approximant]]
! {{small|[[w:semivowel|semivowel]]}}
|
|
|
| [[w:Voiced palatal approximant|j]]
|
| [[w:Voiced labial–velar approximant|w]]
|-
! {{small|[[w:Lateral consonant|lateral]]}}
|
| [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar lateral approximants|l]]
|
| [[w:Voiced palatal lateral approximant|ʎ]]
|colspan=2|
|-
! {{small|[[w:Tuscan gorgia|Gorgia Toscana]]}}
| [[w:Voiced labiodental approximant|(ʋ)]]
| [[w:Voiced dental approximant|(ð̞)]]
|
|
| [[w:Voiced velar approximant|(ɣ˕)]]
|
|-
! colspan="2" | [[w:Trill consonant|Trill]]
|
| [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar trills|r]]
|
|
|colspan=2|
|}
 
Voiceless continuants /f, s, θ, x/ are always constrictive [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|[f, s, θ, x]]], but voiced continuants /v, ð, j, ɣ/ are not very constrictive and are often closer to approximants [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|[ʋ, ð̠˕, j, ɣ˕]]] than fricatives [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|[v, ð̠, ʝ, ɣ]]]. Voiceless fricatives are often fortified to affricates after alveolar consonants, such as /n l ɾ/, or general nasals:
* ''Il monþo'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|[il ˈmõ.t͡θu]]].
* ''L’inferno'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|[l‿ĩˈp͡fɛr.nu]]].
* ''La salsa'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|[lɐ ˈsal.t͡sɐ]]].
* ''L’arsenale'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Bolognese_Luthic|[l‿ɐr.t͡seˈna.le]]].
 
===Paulistan Luthic===
{{Infobox language
|name              = Paulistan Luthic
|nativename        = Lútico (paulista)
|pronunciation    = ˈlu.t͡ʃi.ku (pawˈlis.tɐ)
|pronunciation_key = IPA for Luthic#Paulistan Luthic
|region            = [[w:São Paulo (state)|São Paulo]]
|speakers          = 5,000
|date              = 2022
|familycolor      = Indo-European
|fam2              = [[w:Italic languages|Italic]]
|fam3              = [[w:Latino-Faliscan languages|Latino-Faliscan]]
|fam4              = [[w:Italo-Western languages|Italo-Western]]
|fam5              = Gotho-Romance
|fam6              = Italo-Luthian Romance
|fam7              = Standard Ravennese Luthic
| creator          = User:Lëtzelúcia
|script1          = Latn
|script2          = Brai
|minority          = [[w:Brazil|Brazil]] (recognised in [[w:São Paulo (state)|São Paulo]])
|agency            = Council for the Luthic Language (partially)
|ethnicity        = Lutho-Brazilians
}}
Italian migration to [[w:Brazil|Brazil]] initiated in 1875, when Brazil began to promote to the country in order to increase its population, creating rural “colonies” for Italians and other Europeans to migrate to, as in between 1880 and 1920, more than one million Italians have immigrated to Brazil. Among all Italians who immigrated to Brazil, 70% went to the [[w:São Paulo (state)|State of São Paulo]]. In consequence, São Paulo has more people with Italian ancestry than any region of Italy itself. Despite the poverty and even semi-slavery conditions faced by many Italians in Brazil, most of the population achieved some personal success and changed their lower-class situation.
 
Brazil remained neutral at the start of [[w:World War II|World War II]] in September 1939, however, German [[w:U-boat|U-boats]] sank six Brazilian ships in the [[w:Atlantic Ocean|Atlantic]], resulting on Brazil declaring war on Germany and Italy on 22 August 1942. The Brazilians forces fought mainly within Tuscany and Emilia-Romagna regions.
 
The Brazilian contact with Emilia-Romagna and the [[w:Italian_Brazilians#Italian_immigration_to_Brazil|Italian immigration to Brazil]] resulted in a Brazilian dialect of Luthic spoken in São Paulo, known as '''Paulistan Luthic''' (endonym: ''Lútico paulista'' [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan Luthic|
[ˈlu.t͡ʃi.ku pawˈlis.tɐ]]]; Standard Ravennese Luthic: ''Lûthica Paülista'' [[IPA for Luthic|[ˈlu.ti.xɐ pɐwˈlis.tɐ]]]). Paulistan Luthic is heavily influenced by the [[w:Paulistano dialect|Paulistano dialect]] of Portuguese (<small>Portuguese pronunciation:</small> [[wikt:AP:pron:pt|[paw.lisˈtɐ̃.nu]]]), as the accent is dominant in Brazilian [[w:Mass media|mass media]] and is often associated with “standard” Brazilian Portuguese.
 
====Characteristics of Paulistan Luthic====
Main phonological differences:
 
* '''e-[[w:Prothesis (linguistics)|prosthesis]]:''' In word-initially /sC/ clusters, e-prosthesis is triggered: Standard Ravennese Luthic ''stare'' > Paulistan Luthic ''estare''.
* '''degemination:''' Paulistan Luthic lacks geminate consonants: Standard Ravennese Luthic ''soffiare'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[soɸˈɸja.re]]] > Paulistan Luthic [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan Luthic|[soˈfja.re]]]
* '''thorn stopping and voicing:''' A similar process that happened with southern [[w:German dialects|German dialects]], the [[w:High German consonant shift|High German consonant shift]]: Standard Ravennese Luthic ''þû'' > Paulistan Luthic ''du''
* '''edh stopping:''' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/ð/]] is fortified to [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan Luthic|/d/]] in every position: Standard Ravennese Luthic ''faðar'' > Paulistan Luthic ''fadre''
* '''r-[[w:Metathesis (linguistics)|metathesis]]:''' r-stem nouns ending in -ar are always reanalised as -re: Standard Ravennese Luthic ''broþar'' > Paulistan Luthic ''brodre''
* '''[[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan Luthic|/t, d/]] palatalisation before [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan Luthic|/i, ĩ, j/]]:''' In most of Portuguese varieties spoken in Brazil, the variable palatalisation of alveolar stops turns consonants /t, d/ into affricates [t͡ʃ, d͡ʒ], this highly affected Paulistan Luthic: Standard Ravennese Luthic ''Lûthica'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈlu.ti.xɐ]]], ''di'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[di]]] > Paulistan Luthic ''Lútica'' [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan_Luthic|[ˈlu.t͡ʃi.kɐ]]], ''di'' [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan_Luthic|[d͡ʒi]]]
* '''rhotic:''' The trill consonant [[w:Voiced_dental,_alveolar_and_postalveolar_trills#Voiced_alveolar_trill|/r/]] is fully displaced by a tap consonant [[w:Voiced dental and alveolar taps and flaps|/ɾ/]], of which may be also described as an approximant [[w:Voiced alveolar and postalveolar approximants|/ɹ/]] pre-consonantal: Standard Ravennese Luthic ''rasda'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈraz.dɐ]]], ''barca'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbar.kɐ]]] > Paulistan Luthic ''rasda'' [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan_Luthic|[ˈɾaz.dɐ]]], ''barca'' [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan_Luthic|[ˈbaɹ.kɐ]]]. Due to Paulistano influence, word-initial rhotics are often realised as [[w:Voiced uvular fricative|/ʁ/]] ~ [[w:Voiceless glottal fricative|/h/]], resulting in ''rasda'' [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan_Luthic|[ˈʁaz.dɐ]]] ~ [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan_Luthic|[ˈhaz.dɐ]]], a great example is Standard Ravennese Luthic ''rapportu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[rɐpˈpɔr.tu]]] and Paulistan Luthic ''rapporto'' [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan_Luthic|[ʁɐˈpɔɹ.tu]]] ~ [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan_Luthic|[hɐˈpɔɹ.tu]]]
* '''lack of Gorgia Tuscana:''' Paulistan Luthic doesn't spirantise atonic plosives: Standard Ravennese Luthic ''capu'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈka.fu]]] > Paulistan Luthic ''capo'' [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan_Luthic|[ˈka.pu]]]
* '''i-[[w:Epenthesis|epenthesis]]:''' Word-terminally plosives are affected by i-epenthesis: Standard Ravennese Luthic ''ac'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐx]]], ''ist'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ist]]] > Paulistan Luthic ''ac'' [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan_Luthic|[ɐ.kĭ]]], ''est'' [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan_Luthic|[es.t͡ʃĭ]]], this may also be considered a kind of [[w:Paragoge|paragoge]]. This may also happen in consonant clusters if if the second consonant is not /ɾ/ or /l/, resulting in ''opziune'' [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan_Luthic|/opˈsju.ne/]] > [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan_Luthic|[opiˈsju.ni]]]
* '''deaffrication:''' the palatalised forms of [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/t/]], [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/k/]] and [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/ɡ/]], are realised as [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan Luthic|/s/]], [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan Luthic|/s/]] and [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan Luthic|/ʒ/]] retrospectively: Standard Ravennese Luthic ''dicidere'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[di.t͡ʃiˈde.re]]], ''geva'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈd͡ʒe.βɐ]]] > Paulistan Luthic ''dicidere'' [[w:Help:IPA|[d͡ʒi.siˈde.ɾe]]], ''geva'' [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan_Luthic|[ˈʒe.vɐ]]] and Standard Ravennese Luthic Luthic ''ziu'' (from Latin [[wikt:thius#Latin|thīus]]) [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈt͡si.u]]] > Paulistan Luthic ''zio'' [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan_Luthic|[ˈsi.u ~ ˈzi.u]]]. In some cases, where [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/t͡s/]] is voiced to [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|/d͡z/]], it is realised as [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan Luthic|/z/]]
* '''nasalisation:''' like Paulitano, Paulistan Luthic nasalises every vowel before a nasal in NV.N-: Standard Ravennese Luthic ''banana'' [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[bɐˈna.nɐ]]] > Paulistan Luthic ''banana'' [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan_Luthic|[bɐˈnɐ̃.nɐ]]]
 
Main orthographical differences:
 
* Masculine nouns ending in ⟨u⟩ are always spelt as ⟨o⟩
* Greco-Roman digraphs such as ⟨th⟩, ⟨ph⟩, ⟨ch⟩ are fully displaced by ⟨t⟩, ⟨f⟩, ⟨c⟩
* For velar plosives before front vowels, they are spelt as ⟨qu⟩ and ⟨gu⟩
** The velar nasal is no longer spelt as ⟨g⟩ before another velar, but rather as ⟨n⟩
* The [[w:Circumflex|circumflex accent]] is displaced by the [[w:Acute accent|acute accent]]
* Lack of ⟨þ⟩ and ⟨ð⟩ in the alphabet
* Due to Portuguese influence ⟨j, k, w, x, y⟩ are way commoner instead of the nativisations ⟨gi, c(h), v, c ~ ss, i⟩ present in Standard Ravennese Luthic
* The spellings ⟨gni⟩ and ⟨gli⟩ are fully displaced by ⟨nh⟩ and ⟨lh⟩; ⟨gni⟩ is also found as ⟨ñ⟩ in many communities nearby Spanish speakers, mainly outside the capital, such as [[w:Bauru|Bauru]], [[w:Sorocaba|Sorocaba]] and [[w:Jundiaí|Jundiaí]]
 
Main grammatical differences:
 
* Loss of the neuter gender
* Loss of the passive voice
* u-stems are merged with o-stems
* The verbs ''vessare'' and ''havere'' are fully displaced by ''tenere'' as the common auxiliary verb, mainly due to Portuguese influence
* The nominative merges with the accusative, simplifying the general declension paradigmata
 
====Demography and distribution====
[[File:Paulistan Luthic speakers.jpg|thumb|left|Map showing the areas of São Paulo where Paulistan Luthic is spoken today]]
{| class="wikitable sortable" style="float:right; margin:0 0 0.5em 1em;"
|-
|+Luthic speakers over 3 years of age in the municipality with most speakers (2022 IBGE census data). Absolute and relative numbers. Percentages given are in comparison to the total population of the corresponding state.
|-
!Region
!Totals
!Percentages
|-
|[[w:São Paulo|São Paulo]]
|align="right"|1,200
|align="right"|24%
|-
|[[w:São Bernardo do Campo|São Bernardo do Campo]]
|align="right"|700
|align="right"|14%
|-
|[[w:Santo André, São Paulo|Santo André]]
|align="right"|500
|align="right"|10%
|-
|[[w:Diadema, São Paulo|Diadema]]
|align="right"|250
|align="right"|5%
|-
|[[w:São Caetano do Sul|São Caetano do Sul]]
|align="right"|230
|align="right"|4.6%
|-
|[[w:Jundiaí|Jundiaí]]
|align="right"|230
|align="right"|4.6%
|-
|[[w:Bauru|Bauru]]
|align="right"|210
|align="right"|4.2%
|-
|[[w:Sorocaba|Sorocaba]]
|align="right"|180
|align="right"|3.6%
|-
|[[w:Ferraz de Vasconcelos|Ferraz de Vasconcelos]], [[w:Embu Guaçu|Embu Guaçu]], <br> [[w:São Lourenço da Serra|São Lourenço da Serra]], [[w:Itapecerica da Serra|Itapecerica da Serra]], <br> [[w:Cotia|Cotia]], [[w:Embu das Artes|Embu das Artes]], [[w:Taboão da Serra|Taboão da Serra]], <br> [[w:Osasco|Osasco]], [[w:Carapicuíba|Carapicuíba]], [[w:Barueri|Barueri]], [[w:Jandira|Jandira]], <br> [[w:Itapevi|Itapevi]],  [[w:Vargem Grande Paulista|Vargem Grande Paulista]]
|align="right"|750
|align="right"|15%
|-
|[[w:Piratininga|Piratininga]], [[w:Cabrália Paulista|Cabrália Paulista]], [[w:Duartina|Duartina]], [[w:Avaí|Avaí]]
|align="right"|650
|align="right"|13%
|- class="sortbottom" style="background-color:#F2F2F2;"
|'''''Total:'''''
|align="right"|5,000
|align="right"|100%
|}
According to [[w:Brazilian Institute of Geography and Statistics|Brazilian Institute of Geography and Statistics]] ([[w:Portuguese language|Portuguese]]: ''Instituto Brasileiro de Geografia e Estatística''; '''IBGE''') Luthic is only spoken in São Paulo, and numbers may range anywhere from “perhaps a few dozen, up to almost two thousand people”.
 
According to the 2022 census by IBGE, Paulistan Luthic is spoken by 5,000 people, some 45 (0.9%) of whom are monolingual. The largest concentrations of Paulistan Luthic speakers are found in the municipalities of [[w:São Paulo|São Paulo]] and the [[w:ABC Region|ABCD Region]], consisting of [[w:Santo André, São Paulo|Santo '''A'''ndré]], [[w:São Bernardo do Campo|São '''B'''ernardo do Campo]], [[w:São Caetano do Sul|São '''C'''aetano do Sul]] and [[w:Diadema|'''D'''iadema]]. A coniderable amount of Paulistan Luthic speakers are also found nearby the capital, in [[w:Ferraz de Vasconcelos|Ferraz de Vasconcelos]], [[w:Embu Guaçu|Embu Guaçu]], [[w:São Lourenço da Serra|São Lourenço da Serra]], [[w:Itapecerica da Serra|Itapecerica da Serra]], [[w:Cotia|Cotia]], [[w:Embu das Artes|Embu das Artes]], [[w:Taboão da Serra|Taboão da Serra]], [[w:Osasco|Osasco]], [[w:Carapicuíba|Carapicuíba]], [[w:Barueri|Barueri]], [[w:Jandira|Jandira]], [[w:Itapevi|Itapevi]], [[w:Vargem Grande Paulista|Vargem Grande Paulista]], and nearby [[w:Bauru|Bauru]], in [[w:Piratininga|Piratininga]], [[w:Cabrália Paulista|Cabrália Paulista]], [[w:Duartina|Duartina]] and [[w:Avaí|Avaí]].
 
====Paulistan Luthic phonology====
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align: center"
|+ Consonant phonemes of Paulistan Luthic
! colspan=2 rowspan=2 |
! rowspan=2| [[w:Labial consonant|Labial]]
! rowspan=2| [[w:Dental consonant|Dental]]/<br />[[Alveolar consonant|Alveolar]]
! rowspan=2| [[w:Palatal consonant|Palatal]]
! colspan="2" | [[w:Velar consonant|Velar]]/[[w:Uvular consonant|Uvular]]
|-
! {{small|plain}}
! {{small|[[w:Labialization|labial]]}}
|-
! colspan=2| [[w:Nasal consonant|Nasal]]
| [[w:Voiced bilabial nasal|m]]
| [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar nasals|n]]
| [[w:Voiced palatal nasal|ɲ]]
| [[w:Voiced velar nasal|ŋ]]
|
|-
!rowspan=2| [[w:Stop consonant|Plosive]]
! {{small|[[w:voicelessness|voiceless]]}}
| [[w:Voiceless bilabial plosive|p]]
| [[w:Voiceless dental and alveolar plosives|t]]
|
| [[w:Voiceless velar plosive|k]]
| [[w:Labialization|(kʷ)]]
|-
! {{small|[[w:voice (phonetics)|voiced]]}}
| [[w:Voiced bilabial plosive|b]]
| [[w:Voiced dental and alveolar plosives|d]]
|
| [[w:Voiced velar plosive|ɡ]]
| [[w:Labialization|(ɡʷ)]]
|-
!rowspan=2| [[w:Affricate|Affricate]]
! {{small|[[w:voicelessness|voiceless]]}}
|
|
| [[w:Voiceless postalveolar affricate|(t͡ʃ)]]
|
|
|-
! {{small|[[w:voice (phonetics)|voiced]]}}
|
|
| [[w:Voiced postalveolar affricate|(d͡ʒ)]]
|
|
|-
!rowspan=2| [[w:Fricative consonant|Fricative]]
! {{small|[[w:voicelessness|voiceless]]}}
| [[w:Voiceless labiodental fricative|f]]
| [[w:Voiceless alveolar fricative|s]]
| [[w:Voiceless postalveolar fricative|ʃ]]
|
|
|-
! {{small|[[w:voice (phonetics)|voiced]]}}
| [[w:Voiced labiodental fricative|v]]
| [[w:Voiced alveolar fricative|z]]
| [[w:Voiced postalveolar fricative|ʒ]]
|
|
|-
!colspan=2| [[w:Approximant consonant|Approximant]]
|
|
| [[w:Voiced palatal approximant|j]]
|
| [[w:Voiced labial–velar approximant|w]]
|-
! rowspan="2" | [[w:Liquid consonant|Liquid]]
! {{small|[[w:Central consonant|central]]}}
|
| [[w:Voiced dental and alveolar taps and flaps|ɾ]]
|
| [[w:Voiced uvular fricative|(ʁ)]]
|
|-
! {{small|[[w:Lateral consonant|lateral]]}}
|
| [[w:Voiced dental, alveolar and postalveolar lateral approximants|l]]
| [[w:Voiced palatal lateral approximant|ʎ]]
|
|
|}
 
* /ʁ/ can be [[w:Velar consonant|velar]], [[w:Uvular consonant|uvular]], or [[w:Glottal consonant|glottal]] and may be voiceless unless between voiced sounds.
* /kʷ/ and /ɡʷ/ may be realised as [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan Luthic|[kw]]] and [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan Luthic|[ɡw]]] instead.
* /ɲ/ is often realised as [[w:Nasal palatal approximant|[j̃]]], which [[w:Nasalization|nasalises]] the preceding vowel.
* /ŋ/ is often realised as [[w:Nasal labial–velar approximant|[w̃]]], which nasalises the preceding vowel.
* /j, w/ are often realised as [[w:Near-close_near-front_unrounded_vowel|[ɪ̯]], [[w:Near-close near-back rounded vowel|ʊ̯]​]] in unstressed position.
* /s/ and /z/ are normally [[w:Laminal consonant|lamino-alveolar]], as in English.
* As phonemes, /tʃ/ and /dʒ/ occur only in loanwords, but due to palatalisation, they are also found as [[w:Allophone|allophones]] of /t/ and /d/ before /i/, /ĩ/ and /j/.


{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|-
|+ '''Vowel phonemes of Luthic'''
|+ '''Vowel phonemes of Standard Luthic'''
|-
|-
!rowspan="2"|
!rowspan="2"|
Line 191: Line 6,740:
|-
|-
![[w:Close vowel|Close]]
![[w:Close vowel|Close]]
|i
|[[w:Close front unrounded vowel|i]]
|[[w:Nasalization]]
|
|
|
|
|u
|[[w:Close back rounded vowel|u]]
|[[w:Nasalization]]
|-
|-
![[w:Close-mid vowel|Close-mid]]
![[w:Close-mid vowel|Close-mid]]
|e
|[[w:Close-mid front unrounded vowel|e]]
|ẽ
|[[w:Nasalization|ẽ]]
|colspan="2"|
|colspan="2"|
|o
|[[w:Close-mid back rounded vowel|o]]
|[[w:Nasalization]]
|-
|-
![[w:Open-mid vowel|Open-mid]]
![[w:Open-mid vowel|Open-mid]]
|[[w:Open-mid front unrounded vowel]]
|
|
|[[w:Near-open central vowel]]
|ɐ̃
|[[w:Nasalization|ɐ̃]]
|[[w:Open-mid back rounded vowel]]
|
|
|-
|-
![[w:Open vowel|Open]]
![[w:Open vowel|Open]]
|colspan="2"|
|colspan="2"|
|a
|[[w:Open central unrounded vowel|a]]
|
|
|colspan="2"|
|colspan="2"|
|}
|}
* /u/ is laxed to [[w:Near-close near-back rounded vowel|[ʊ]]] if unstressed.
* /i/ is laxed to [[w:Near-close near-front unrounded vowel|[ɪ]]] if unstressed.
* /e/ is often realised as [[w:Close front unrounded vowel|[i]]] if unstressed.
* Nasalised /e/ and /o/ are often “diphthongised”, resulting in /ẽ/ > [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan Luthic|[ẽȷ̃]]] and, /õ/ > [[IPA for Luthic#Paulistan Luthic|[õw̃]]].
====Paulistan Luthic morphology====
Paulistan Luthic has been greatly affected by Paulistano, however, it still has grammatical cases for noun, a feature it has not been lost, however, unlike Standard Ravennese Luthic, Paulistan Luthic does not drop its prepositions before a declined noun, another common feature in Luthic is to decline only the article preceding the noun.
* Standard Ravennese Luthic ''i frigiondi'' “the friends” > Paulistan Luthic ''los frigiondo'' “the friends”
* Standard Ravennese Luthic ''þo staþo'' “in this place” > Paulistan Luthic ''in do stado'' “in this place”
* Standard Ravennese Luthic ''miþ lom piedivo'' “with the feet” > Paulistan Luthic ''mid lom piede'' “with the feet”
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
! Number
! Case
! o-stem <sup>m</sup>
! a-stem <sup>f</sup>
! i-stem <sup>unm</sup>
! r-stem <sup>unm</sup>
! d-stem <sup>unm</sup>
|-
!rowspan=3| Singular
! {{small|nom. acc.}}
| dago
| geva
| crafte
| brodre
| piede
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| daga
| geva
| crafti
| brodri
| piedi
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| dagi
| geve
| crafti
| brodri
| piedi
|-
!rowspan=3| Plural
! {{small|nom. acc.}}
| dagos
| gevas
| craftes
| brodres
| piedes
|-
! {{small|dat.}}
| dagom
| gevam
| craftivo
| brodrivo
| piedivo
|-
! {{small|gen.}}
| dagoro
| gevaro
| craftem
| brodrem
| piedem
|}
Verbs in Paulistan Luthic are way simpler than any other Luthic dialect, as there is no number distinction and basically no person distinction as well. Thence, Verbs are basically only conjugated according to mood and tense, the first person singular, however, is differentiated.
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center;"
|-
|+ Active Indicative
|-
!
! '''''þagc<span style="color:green">are</span>'''''
! '''''cred<span style="color:darkorange">ere</span>'''''
! '''''hol<span style="color:red">ore</span>'''''
! '''''dorm<span style="color:purple">ire</span>'''''
! '''''vessare'''''
! '''''havere'''''
! '''''ganare'''''
! '''''stare'''''
! '''''taugiare'''''
|-
! ''ic''
| þagc<span style="color:green">o</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">o</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">o</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">o</span>
| ''im''
| ''hô''
| ''gô''
| ''stô''
| ''taugio''
|-
! ''þû''
| þagc<span style="color:green">a</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">e</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">o</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">i</span>
| ''is''
| ''hâ''
| ''gâ''
| ''stâ''
| ''taugi''
|-
! ''is''
| þagc<span style="color:green">a</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">e</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">o</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">i</span>
| ''is''
| ''hâ''
| ''gâ''
| ''stâ''
| ''taugi''
|-
! ''vi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">a</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">e</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">o</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">i</span>
| ''is''
| ''hâ''
| ''gâ''
| ''stâ''
| ''taugi''
|-
! ''gi''
| þagc<span style="color:green">a</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">e</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">o</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">i</span>
| ''is''
| ''hâ''
| ''gâ''
| ''stâ''
| ''taugi''
|-
! ''eis''
| þagc<span style="color:green">a</span>
| cred<span style="color:darkorange">e</span>
| hol<span style="color:red">o</span>
| dorm<span style="color:purple">i</span>
| ''is''
| ''hâ''
| ''gâ''
| ''stâ''
| ''taugi''
|}
==Vocabulary==
It is generally stated that Luthic has around 370,000 words, or 410,000 if [[w:Archaism|obsolete words]] are counted, however 98% of the Luthic used today consists of only 5,800 words.
[[File:Luthic lexis.png|thumb|Luthic’s core lexicon (3,172 words), Lucia Giamane (2016)]]
A 2016 statistic by Lucia Giamane is based on 3,172 words chosen on the criteria of frequency, semantic richness and productivity, which also contain words formed on the territory of the Luthic language. This statistic gives the percentages below:
* 1,200 words inherited from Gothic;
* 953 words inherited from Latin;
* 510 words, academic loanwords from Latin;
* 133 words borrowed from Italian;
* 125 words borrowed from West Germanic, such as Frankish, Langobardic and Standard High German;
* 101 words formed in Luthic;
* 98 words borrowed from French;
* 52 words borrowed from Greek.
Luthic has approximately 2,000 uncompounded words inherited from Proto-Indo-European. These were inherited via:
* 45% Germanic;
* 43% Italic, Romance;
* 8% Celtic;
* 2% Hellenic;
* 2% Uncertain.
A single etymological root appears in Luthic in a native form, inherited from Vulgar Latin, and a learned form, borrowed later from Classical Latin. The following pairs consist of a native noun and a learned adjective:
* finger: ''ditu'' / ''digitale'' from Latin [[wikt:digitus#Latin|''digitus'']] / [[wikt:digitalis#Latin|''digitālis'']];
* faith: ''fê'' (stem ''fed-'') / ''fidele'' from Latin [[wikt:fides#Latin|''fidēs'']] / [[wikt:fidelis#Latin|''fidēlis'']];
* foot: ''piê'' (stem ''pied-'') / ''pedale'' from [[wikt:pes#Latin|''pēs'']] / [[wikt:pedalis#Latin|''pedālis'']].
There are also noun-noun and adjective-adjective pairs with slightly different meanings:
* thing / cause: ''cosa'' / ''caüsa'' from Latin [[wikt:causa#Latin|''causa'']];
* bull / calf: ''toru'' / ''taüru'' from Latin [[wikt:taurus#Latin|''taurus'']];
* chilled / frozen: ''freddu'' / ''frigidu'' from Latin [[wikt:frigidus#Latin|''frīgidus'']].
===Insertional code-switching===
[[w:Code-switching|Code-switching]] or language alternation occurs when a speaker alternates between two or more languages, or [[w:Variety (linguistics)|language varieties]], in the context of a single conversation or situation. Code-switching is different from [[w:Plurilingualism|plurilingualism]] in that plurilingualism refers to the ability of an individual to use multiple languages, while code-switching is the act of using multiple languages together.
'''Insertional code-switching''' is often referred to as “borrowing” or “tag-switching”, when lexical items from a secondary language are introduced into the primary language. These loan words are partially or fully assimilated into the secondary language, conforming to its phonological and morphological structure. Insertional code-switching serves a “pragmatic purpose, acting as sentence enhancers or indicating the speaker's attitude towards the context of an utterance.”
* '''Standard Luthic:''' Il nattu stâþ scaunu. Le staerne sceinando e la luna stâþ folla.
* '''Standard Italian:''' La notte è bella. Le stelle brillano e la luna è piena.
* '''Insertional code-swicthing''': Il nattu '''ae bellu'''. '''Le stelle''' sceinan(d)o e la luna '''ae piena'''.
*: Note that both ''è'' and ''ae'' stand for /ɛ/.
The borrowed words can be integrated into the host language either partially or entirely, taking into account their phonological and morphological structure.
===Swadesh list===
The [[w:Swadesh list|'''Swadesh list''']] ([[w:IPA:Help|/ˈswɑːdɛʃ/]]) is a compilation of tentatively universal concepts for the purposes of [[w:lexicostatistics|lexicostatistics]]. Translations of the Swadesh list into a set of languages allow researchers to quantify the interrelatedness of those languages. The Swadesh list is named after linguist [[w:Morris Swadesh|Morris Swadesh]]. It is used in lexicostatistics (the quantitative assessment of the genealogical relatedness of languages) and [[w:glottochronology|glottochronology]] (the dating of language divergence). Because there are several different lists, some authors also refer to "Swadesh lists".
The most used list nowadays is the Swadesh 207-word list, adapted from Swadesh 1952.
{| class="wikitable collapsible collapsed"
!colspan="4"|Swadesh list
|-
! width="25%"|1-52
! width="25%"|53-104
! width="25%"|105-156
! width="25%"|157-207
|-
| '''1.''' ic [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ix]]] “I” || '''53.''' stecca [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈstɛk.kɐ]]] “stick” || '''105.''' fiaerare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[fjɛˈra.re]]] “to smell” || '''157.''' sabbia [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈsab.bjɐ]]] “sand”
|-
| '''2.''' þû [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈθu]]] “you” || '''54.''' acrano [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐˈkra.no]]] “fruit” || '''106.''' ogare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[oˈɡa.re]]] “to fear” || '''158.''' molda [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈmɔl.dɐ]]] “dust”
|-
| '''3.''' is [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[is]]] “he” <br>   ia [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[jɐ]]] “she” <br>   atha [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[a.tɐ]]] “it” || '''55.''' seme [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈse.me]]] “seed” || '''107.''' slefare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[sleˈɸa.re]]] “sleep” || '''159.''' aerþa [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɛr.θɐ]]] “earth”
|-
| '''4.''' vi [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[vi]]] “we” || '''56.''' laufu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈlɔ.ɸu]]] “leaf” || '''108.''' vivere [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[viˈβe.re]]] “to live” || '''160.''' molmanu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[mɔlˈma.nu]]] “cloud”
|-
| '''5.''' gi [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[d͡ʒi]]] “you” ||''' 57.''' vaurte [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈvɔr.te]]] “root” || '''109.''' sveltare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[zvɛlˈta.re]]] “to die” || '''161.''' nêbola [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈne.βo.lɐ]]] “fog”
|-
| '''6.''' eis [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈis]]] “they” <br>   ise [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[iˈse]]] “they” <br>   eis [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈis]]] “they” || '''58.''' renda [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈrɛn.dɐ]]] “bark” || '''110.''' dauþare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[dɔˈθa.re]]] “to kill” || '''162.''' hemeno [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[eˈme.nu]]] “sky”
|-
| '''7.''' su [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[su]]] “this” <br>   sa [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[sɐ]]] “this” <br>   þatha [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[θɐ.tɐ]]] “this” || '''59.''' biomna [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbjom.nɐ]]] “flower” || '''111.''' lottare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[lotˈta.re]]] “to fight” || '''163.''' vendu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈven.du]]] “wind”
|-
| '''8.''' este [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈes.te]]] “that” <br>   esta [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈes.tɐ]]] “that” <br>   esto [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈes.to]]] “that” || '''60.''' herba [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɛr.bɐ]]] “grass” || '''112.''' cacciare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[kɐtˈt͡ʃa.re]]] “to hunt”  || '''164.''' neve [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈnɛ.βe]]] “snow”
|-
| '''9.''' har [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐr]]] “here” || '''61.''' corda [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈk̠ɔr.dɐ]]] “rope” || '''113.''' biegguare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[bjeɡˈɡʷa.re]]] “to hit” || '''165.''' ghiaccio [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɡ̟jat.t͡ʃo]]] “ice”
|-
| '''10.''' þar [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[θɐr]]] “there” || '''62.''' pelle [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈpɛl.le]]] “skin” || '''114.''' tagliare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[tɐʎˈʎa.re]]] “to cut” || '''166.''' fumu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈfu.mu]]] “smoke”
|-
| '''11.''' qu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[kʷu]]] “who” <br>     qa [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[kʷɐ]]] “who” <br>      qo [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[kʷo]]]  “who” || '''63.''' carne [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈkar.ne]]] “meat” || '''115.''' scindere [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ʃinˈde.re]]] “to split” || '''167.''' fona [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈfo.nɐ]]] “fire”
|-
| '''12.''' ce [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[t͡ʃe]]] “what” || '''64.''' saggue [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈsaŋᶣ.ɡᶣe]]] “blood” || '''116.''' pognialare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[poɲ.ɲɐˈla.re]]] “to stab” || '''168.''' asga [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈaz.ɡɐ]]] “ash”
|-
| '''13.''' car [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[kɐr]]] “where” || '''65.''' beine [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbi.ne]]] “bone” || '''117.''' crazzore [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[krɐtˈt͡so.re]]] “to scratch” || '''169.''' bruciare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[bruˈt͡ʃa.re]]] “to burn”
|-
| '''14.''' can [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[kɐn]]] “when” || '''66.''' grassa [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɡras.sɐ]]] “fat” || '''118.''' gravare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɡrɐˈβa.re]]] “to dig” || '''170.''' strada [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈstra.ðɐ]]] “road”
|-
| '''15.''' ce [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[t͡ʃe]]] “how” || '''67.''' uovo [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈwo.βo]]] “egg” || '''119.''' svemmare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[zvẽˈma.re]]] “to swim” || '''171.''' baergana [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbɛr.ɡɐ.nɐ]]] “mountain”
|-
| '''16.''' non [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[non]]] “not” || '''68.''' haurno [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɔr.no]]] “horn” || '''120.''' fiugare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[fjuˈɡa.re]]] “to fly” || '''172.''' rossu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈrɔs.su]]] “red”
|-
| '''17.''' allu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈal.lu]]] “all” || '''69.''' coda [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈk̠o.ðɐ]]] “tail” || '''121.''' carvore [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[kɐrˈβo.re]]] “to walk” || '''173.''' verde [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈver.de]]] “green”
|-
| '''18.''' managu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[mɐˈna.ɣu]]] “many” || '''70.''' feþar [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈfe.θɐr]]] “feather” || '''122.''' qemare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[kᶣeˈma.re]]] “to come” || '''174.''' giallu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈd͡ʒal.lu]]] “yellow”
|-
| '''19.''' somu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈso.mu]]] “some” || '''71.''' taglio [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈtaʎ.ʎo]]] “hair” || '''123.''' legare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[leˈɡa.re]]] “to lie” || '''175.''' biagcu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbjaŋ˗.k̠u]]] “white”
|-
| '''20.''' favu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈfa.βu]]] “few” || '''72.''' capu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈka.ɸu]]] “head” <br>       hauviþo [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɔ.βi.θo]]] “head” || '''124.''' setare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[seˈta.re]]] “to sit” || '''176.''' neru [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈne.ru]]] “black”
|-
| '''21.''' anþeru [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐ̃ˈθe.ru]]] “other” || '''73.''' orecchia [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[oˈrek̟.k̟jɐ]]] “ear” || '''125.''' stare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈsta.re]]]. “stand” || '''177.''' nattu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈnat.tu]]] “night”
|-
| '''22.''' aenu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɛ.nu]]] “one” || '''74.''' augnio [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɔɲ.ɲo]]] “eye” || '''126.''' girare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[d͡ʒiˈra.re]]] “to turn” || '''178.''' dagu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈda.ɣu]]] “day”
|-
| '''23.''' tvi [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈtvi]]] “two” || '''75.''' nasu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈna.zu]]] “nose” || '''127.''' driusare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[drjuˈza.re]]] “to fall” || '''179.''' giar [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[d͡ʒɐr]]] “year”
|-
| '''24.''' þreis [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈθris]]] “three” || '''76.''' monþu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈmõ.θu]]] “mouth” || '''128.''' gevare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[d͡ʒeˈβa.re]]] “to give” || '''180.''' varmu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈvar.mu]]] “warm”
|-
| '''25.''' fidvor [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈfid.vor]]] “four” || '''77.''' dente [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈden.te]]] “tooth” || '''129.''' haldare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐlˈda.re]]] “to hold” || '''181.''' caldu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈkal.du]]] “cold”
|-
| '''26.''' fimfe [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈfĩ.ɸe]]] “five” || '''78.''' tugga [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈtuŋ.ɡɐ]]] “tongue” <br>         rasda [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈraz.dɐ]]] “tongue” <br>         liggua [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈliŋʷ.ɡʷɐ]]] “tongue” || '''130.''' spremere [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[spreˈme.re]]] “to squeeze” || '''182.''' follu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈfol.lu]]] “full”
|-
| '''27.''' mêchelu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈme.xe.lu]]] “big” || '''79.''' oggia [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈoŋ˖.ɡ̟jɐ]]] “fingernail” || '''131.''' fregare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[freˈɡa.re]]] “to rub” || '''183.''' nuovu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈnwɔ.βu]]] “new”
|-
| '''28.''' laggu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈlaŋ˗.ɡ˗u]]] “long” || '''80.''' piê [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈpje]]] “foot” || '''132.''' þvare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈðva.re]]] “to wash” || '''184.''' altu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈal.tu]]] “old”
|-
| '''29.''' largu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈlar.ɡ˗u]]] “wide” || '''81.''' gamba [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈgam.bɐ]]] “leg” || '''133.''' asciugare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐʃ.ʃuˈɡa.re]]] “to wipe” || '''185.''' buonu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbwo.nu]]] “good” <br>     gôðanu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɡo.ðɐ.nu]]] “good”
|-
| '''30.''' spessu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈspes.su]]] “thick” || '''82.''' gnivo [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɲi.βo]]] “knee” || '''134.''' tirare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[tiˈra.re]]] “to pull” || '''186.''' malu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈma.lu]]] “bad” <br>     ovilu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈo.βi.lu]]] “bad”
|-
| '''31.''' pesante [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[peˈzan.te]]] “heavy” || '''83.''' manu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈma.nu]]] “hand” <br>         handu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈan.du]]] || '''135.''' spiggere [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[spiŋ˖ˈɡ̟e.re]]] “to push” || '''187.''' maciu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈma.t͡ʃu]]] “rotten”
|-
| '''32.''' leizelu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈlid.d͡ze.lu]]] “little” || '''84.''' ala [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈa.lɐ]]] “wing” || '''136.''' vaerfare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[vɛrˈɸa.re]]] “to throw” || '''188.''' sporcu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈspor.k̠u]]] “dirty”
|-
| '''33.''' scaurtu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈsk̠ɔr.tu]]] “short” || '''85.''' qeþu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈkᶣe.θu]]] “belly” || '''137.''' bendare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[benˈda.re]]] “to tie” || '''189.''' drittu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈdrit.tu]]] “straight”
|-
| '''34.''' agguu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈaŋʷ.ɡʷu]]] “narrow” || '''86.''' viscere [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈviʃ.ʃe.re]]] “guts” || '''138.''' siugiare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[sjuˈd͡ʒa.re]]] “to sew” || '''190.''' ritondu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[riˈton.du]]] “round”
|-
| '''35.''' sottile [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[sotˈti.le]]] “thin” || '''87.''' collo [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈk̠ɔl.lo]]] “neck” || '''139.''' contare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[k̠onˈta.re]]] “to count” || '''191.''' scarfu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈskar.ɸu]]] “sharp”
|-
| '''36.''' qena [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈkᶣe.nɐ]]] “woman” || '''88.''' dorso [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈdɔr.so]]] “back” || '''140.''' rogiare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[roˈd͡ʒa.re]]] “to say” || '''192.''' smussatu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[zmusˈsa.θu]]] “dull”
|-
| '''37.''' mannu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈmɐ̃.nu]]] “man” || '''89.''' brostu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbros.tu]]] “breast” || '''141.''' segguare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[seŋʷˈɡʷa.re]]] “to sing” || '''193.''' slaettu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈzlɛt.tu]]] “smooth”
|-
| '''38.''' mannescu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[mɐ̃ˈnes.k̠u]]] “human being” || '''90.''' haertene [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɛr.te.ne]]] “heart” || '''142.''' giucare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[d͡ʒuˈka.re]]] “to play” || '''194.''' ûmidu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈu.mi.ðu]]] “wet”
|-
| '''39.''' bambinu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[bamˈbi.nu]]] “child” || '''91.''' figato [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[fiˈɡa.θo]]] “liver” || '''143.''' fiutore [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[fjuˈto.re]]] “to float” || '''195.''' þaursu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈθɔr.su]]] “dry”
|-
| '''40.''' sposa [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈspo.zɐ]]] “wife” || '''92.''' dregcare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[dreŋˈka.re]]] “to drink” || '''144.''' fiuire [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[fjuˈi.re]]] “to flow” || '''196.''' raettu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈrɛt.tu]]] “correct”
|-
| '''41.''' abnu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈab.nu]]] “husband” || '''93.''' mangiare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[mɐnˈd͡ʒa.re]]] “to eat” || '''145.''' giacciare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɡ̟jɐtˈt͡ʃa.re]]] “to freeze” || '''197.''' vicinu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[viˈt͡ʃi.nu]]] “near”
|-
| '''42.''' moðar [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈmo.ðɐr]]] “mother” || '''94.''' beidare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[biˈda.re]]] “to bite” || '''146.''' svellare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[zvɛlˈla.re]]] “to swell” || '''198.''' lontanu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[lonˈta.nu]]] “far”
|-
| '''43.''' faðar [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈfa.ðɐr]]] “father” || '''95.''' succhiare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[suk̟ˈk̟ja.re]]] “to suck” || '''147.''' sauilo [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈsɔj.lo]]] “sun” || '''199.''' destra [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈdes.trɐ]]] “right”
|-
| '''44.''' animale [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐ.niˈma.le]]] “animal” || '''96.''' speivare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[spiˈβa.re]]] “to spit” || '''148.''' luna [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈlu.nɐ]]] “moon” || '''200.''' sinistra [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[siˈnis.trɐ]]] “left”
|-
| '''45.''' fescu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈfes.k̠u]]] “fish” || '''97.''' vomitare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[vo.miˈta.re]]] “to vomit” || '''149.''' staerna [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈstɛr.nɐ]]] “star” || '''201.''' a [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐ]]] “at” <br>     ad [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐ.ð‿]]]  “at”
|-
| '''46.''' fogliu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈfoʎ.ʎu]]] “bird” || '''98.''' soffiare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[soɸˈɸja.re]]] “to blow” || '''150.''' vadne [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈvad.ne]]] “water” || '''202''' in [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[in]]] “in”
|-
| '''47.''' hondu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈon.du]]] “dog” || '''99.''' rispirare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ris.piˈra.re]]] “to breathe” || '''151.''' pioggia [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈpjod.d͡ʒa]]] “rain” || '''203.''' miþ [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[miθ]]] “with”
|-
| '''48.''' pidocchiu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[piˈdɔk̟.k̟ju]]] “louse” || '''100.''' chiaire [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈk̟jaj.re]]] “to laugh” || '''152.''' aca [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈa.xɐ]]] “river” || '''204.''' e [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[e]]] “and” <br>     ed [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[e.ð‿]]] “and”
|-
| '''49.''' serpe [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈsɛr.pe]]] “snake” || '''101.''' saecare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[sɛˈka.re]]] “to see” || '''153.''' lagu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈla.ɣu]]] “lake” || '''205.''' si [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[si]]] “if”
|-
| '''50.''' vaurmu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈvɔr.mu]]] “worm” || '''102.''' hausare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɔˈza.re]]] “to hear” || '''154.''' mareina [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[mɐˈri.na]]] “sea” || '''206.''' faurcê [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[fɔrˈt͡ʃe]]] “because”
|-
| '''51.''' trivo [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈtri.βo]]] “tree” || '''103.''' gnioscere [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɲoʃˈʃe.re]]] “to know” || '''155.''' sale [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈsa.le]]] “salt” || '''207.''' namno [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈnam.no]]] “name”
|-
| '''52.''' valþu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈval.θu]]] “forest” || '''104.''' þagcare [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[θɐŋˈka.re]]] “to think” || '''156.''' staenu [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈstɛ.nu]]] “stone” ||
|}
Creating word lists depends on the decay of morphemes or changes in vocabulary. For glottochronology to be applicable to a language, the rate of morpheme decay must remain constant. This has led to criticism of the glottochronologic formula, as some linguists contend that the rate of morpheme decay cannot be assumed to be consistent over time. American linguist [[w:Robert Lees (linguist)|Robert Lees]] acquired a value for the “glottochronological constant” ('''r''') of words by analysing the known changes in 13 pairs of languages using the 200-word list by Swadesh. He calculated a value of 0.805 ± 0.0176 with 90% confidence. Swadesh obtained a value of 0.86 for his 100-word list, with the higher value reflecting the exclusion of semantically unstable words. This constant is related to the retention rate of words by the following formula:
[[File:Glottochronologic_constant.png|frameless]]
''L'' is the rate of replacement, ''ln'' represents the [[w:Natural logarithm|natural logarithm]] and ''r'' is the glottochronological constant.
The basic formula of glottochronology in its shortest form is this:
[[File:Divergence time (short).png|frameless]]
''t'' is a given period of time from one stage of the language to another (measured in millennia), ''c'' is the proportion of wordlist items retained at the end of that period and ''L'' is the rate of replacement for that word list.
[[File:Divergence time (long).png|frameless]]
By testing historically verifiable cases in which ''t'' is known by nonlinguistic data (such as the approximate distance from Classical Latin to modern Romance languages), Swadesh arrived at the empirical value of approximately 0.14 for ''L'', which means that the rate of replacement constitutes around 14 words from the 100-wordlist per millennium. This is represented in the table below.
{| class="wikitable"
|+ Glottochronology Time Scale
|-
! Rough Median Dating !! Median Cognate Retention in 100-Word List
|-
| 500 BP || 86%
|-
| 1000 BP || 74%
|-
| 1500 BP || 64%
|-
| 2000 BP || 55%
|-
| 2500 BP || 47%
|-
| 3000 BP || 40%
|-
| 4000 BP || 30%
|-
| 5000 BP || 22%
|-
| 6000 BP || 16%
|-
| 7000 BP || 12%
|-
| 8000 BP || 9%
|-
| 9000 BP || 7%
|-
| 10000 BP || 5%
|}
===Comparison===
[[File:Ravenna linguistic map.jpg|thumb|Linguistic map of Ravenna and neighbouring regions. <br />'''Italian:''' ''“Lingue parlate accanto al Lutico”'' <br />'''English:''' “Languages spoken alongside Luthic”]]
Lexical and grammatical similarities among the Romance languages spoken in Ravenna and Emilia-Romagna, and between Latin and each of them, are apparent from the following examples in various Romance lects, all meaning ‘''She always closes the window before she dines/before dining''’. Additional translations are provided in Gothic, German, Icelandic, due to Luthic Germanic stems, and other related Romance languages.
:{| cellspacing="3px"
| [[w:Latin|Latin]] || ''(Ea) semper antequam cēnat fenestram claudit.''
|-
| [[w:Gothic language|Gothic]] || 𐍃𐌹 𐌰𐌹𐍅 𐍆𐌰𐌿𐍂(𐌰) 𐌼𐌰𐍄𐌾𐌹𐌸 𐌰𐌿𐌲𐌰𐌳𐌰𐌿𐍂𐍉 𐌲𐌰𐌻𐌿𐌺𐌹𐌸. <br />''Si aiw faur(a) matjiþ augadaurō galūkiþ.''
|-
| [[w:German language|German]] || ''Sie schließt immer das Fenster, bevor sie speist.'' <br />''Sie immer schließt das Fenster bevor speist.'' (altered, wrong in [[w:German grammar|Standard German]])
|-
| [[w:Icelandic language|Icelandic]] || ''Hún æ fyrir metur glugganum lókar.'' (obsolete or altered)  <br />''Hún lokar alltaf glugganum áður en hún borðar.'' (standard [[w:Icelandic language|Modern Icelandic]]) <br />''Hún lokar alltaf glugganum fyrir mat.'' (also correct)
|-
| [[Luthic]] || ''(Ia) galucet aeve la finestra faur di cenare / mazzire.''
|-
| '''Upper Luthic''' || ''(Lei) galucet aif la finestar faur id cenar / mazzir.''
|-
| [[w:Emilian dialects|Reggiano Emilian]] || ''(Lē) la sèra sèmpar sù la fnèstra prima ad snàr.''
|-
| [[w:Emilian dialects|Bolognese Emilian]] || ''(Lî) la sèra sänper la fnèstra prémma ed dṡnèr.''
|-
| [[w:Emilian dialects|Placentine Emilian]] || ''Ad sira lé la sèra seimpar la finéstra prima da seina.''
|-
| [[w:Italian language|Italian]] || ''(Ella/lei) chiude sempre la finestra prima di cenare.''
|-
| [[w:Eastern Lombard dialects|Eastern Lombard]] || ''(Lé) la sèra sèmper sö la finèstra prima de senà.''
|-
| [[w:Western Lombard dialects|Western Lombard]]|| ''(Lee) la sara sù semper la finestra primma de disnà / scenà.''
|-
| [[w:Romagnol|Romagnol]] || ''(Lia) la ciud sëmpra la fnèstra prëma ad magnè.''
|-
| [[w:Tuscan dialect|Tuscan]] || ''Lei chiude sempre la finestra prima di cenà.''
|-
| [[w:Central Italian|Umbrian]] || ''Lia chiude sempre la finestra prima de cenà.''
|-
| [[w:Venetian language|Venetian]] || ''Eła ła sara / sera senpre ła fenestra vanti de diznar.''
|-
|
|-
|
|-
| [[w:Corsican_language#Northern_Corsican|Northern Corsican]] || ''Ella chjode / chjude sempre lu / u purtellu avanti/nanzu di cenà.''
|-
| [[w:Corsican_language#Southern_Corsican|Southern Corsican]] || ''Edda / Idda sarra / serra sempri u purteddu nanzu/prima di cinà.''
|-
| [[w:Gallurese dialect|Gallurese]] || ''Idda chjude sempri lu balconi primma di cinà.''
|-
| [[w:Ligurian language|Ligurian]] || ''(Le) a saera sempre u barcun primma de cenà.''
|-
| [[w:Neapolitan language|Neapolitan]] || ''Essa 'nzerra sempe 'a fenesta primma d'a cena / 'e magnà.''
|-
| [[w:Piedmontese language|Piedmontese]] || ''Chila a sara sèmper la fnestra dnans ëd fé sin-a/dnans ëd siné.''
|-
| [[w:Romanian language|Romanian]] || ''(Ea) închide întotdeauna fereastra înainte de a cina.''
|-
| [[w:Campidanese Sardinian|Campidanese Sardinian]] || ''Issa serrat semp(i)ri sa bentana in antis de cenai.''
|-
| [[w:Logudorese Sardinian|Logudorese Sardinian]] || ''Issa serrat semper sa bentana in antis de chenàre.''
|-
| [[w:Sassarese language|Sassarese]] || ''Edda sarra sempri lu balchoni primma di zinà.''
|-
| [[w:Sicilian language|Sicilian]] || ''Iḍḍa ncasa sempri a finesṭṛa prima ’i manciari â sira.''
|}
{| class="wikitable" style="text-align:center"
! colspan="12" | Lexical similarity coefficients
|-
| align="left" |
| Luthic || Italian || Spanish || Portuguese || French || Romanian || Catalan || Romansh || Sardinian || English || German
|-
| align="left" | [[Luthic]]
| 1 || 0.49 || 0.40 || 0.38 || 0.47 || 0.35 || 0.45 || 0.36 || 0.43 || 0.41 || 0.42
|-
| align="left" | [[w:Italian language|Italian]]
| 0.49 || 1 || 0.82 || 0.80 || 0.89 || 0.77 || 0.87 || 0.78 || 0.85 || — || —
|-
| align="left" | [[w:Spanish language|Spanish]]
| 0.40 || 0.82 || 1 || 0.89 || 0.75 || 0.71 || 0.85 || 0.74 || 0.76 || — || —
|-
| align="left" | [[w:Portuguese language|Portuguese]]
| 0.38 || 0.80 || 0.89 || 1 || 0.75 || 0.72 || 0.85 || 0.74 || 0.76 || — || —
|-
| align="left" | [[w:French language|French]]
| 0.47 || 0.89 || 0.75 || 0.75 || 1 || 0.75 || — || 0.78 || 0.80 || 0.27 || 0.29
|-
| align="left" | [[w:Romanian language|Romanian]]
| 0.35 || 0.77 || 0.71 || 0.72 || 0.75 || 1 || 0.73 || 0.72 || 0.74 || — || —
|-
| align="left" | [[w:Catalan language|Catalan]]
| 0.45 || 0.87 || 0.85 || 0.85 || — || 0.73 || 1 || 0.76 || 0.75 || — || —
|-
| align="left" | [[w:Romansh language|Romansh]]
| 0.36 || 0.78 || 0.74 || 0.74 || 0.78 || 0.72 || 0.76 || 1 || 0.74 || — || —
|-
| align="left" | [[w:Sardinian language|Sardinian]]
| 0.43 || 0.85 || 0.76 || 0.76 || 0.80 || 0.74 || 0.75 || 0.74 || 1 || — || —
|-
| align="left" | [[w:English language|English]]
| 0.41 || — || — || — || 0.27 || — || — || — || — || 1 || 0.60
|-
| align="left" | [[w:German language|German]]
| 0.42 || — || — || — || 0.29 || — || — || — || — || 0.60 || 1
|}
====Comparison with modern Germanic and Romance languages====
=====Germanic=====
:{| cellspacing="3px"
| [[w:English language|English]] || The cold winter is near, a snowstorm will come. Come in my warm house, my friend. Welcome! Come here, sing and dance, eat and drink. That is my plan. We have water, beer, and milk fresh from the cow. Oh, and warm soup!
|-
| [[w:Dutch language|Dutch]] || De koude winter is nabij, een sneeuwstorm zal komen, Kom in mijn warme huis, mijn vriend. Welkom! Kom hier, zing en dans, eet en drink. Dat is mijn plan. We hebben water, bier, en melk vers van de koe. Oh, en warme soep!
|-
| [[w:German language|German]] || Der kalte Winter ist nahe, ein Schneesturm wird kommen. Komm in mein warmes Haus, mein Freund, Willkommen! Komm her, sing und tanz, iss und trink. Das ist mein Plan. Wir haben Wasser, Bier und Milch frisch von der Kuh. Oh, und warme Suppe!
|-
| [[w:Frisian languages|Frisian]] || De kâlde winter is nei, in sniestoarm sil komme. Kom yn myn waarme hûs, myn freon. Wolkom! Kom hjir, sjong en dänsje, yt en drink. Dat is myn plan. Wy ha wtter, bier, en molke farsk fan de ko. Och, en waarme sop!
|-
| [[w:Norwegian language|Norwegian]] || Den kalde vinteren er nær, en snøstorm vil komme. Kom inn i mitt varme hus, min venn. Velkommen! Kom her, syng og dans, et og drikk. Dette er min plan. Vi har vann, øl og melk fersk fra kua. Åh, og varm suppe!
|-
| [[w:Icelandic language|Icelandic]] || Kaldi veturinn nálgast, snjóstormur mun koma. Komdu inn í hlýja húsið mitt, vinur minn. Velkominn! Komdu hingað, syngdu og dansaðu, borðaðu og drekktu. Það er planið mitt. Við höfum vatn, bjór, og mjólk ferska úr kúnni. Ó, og volga súpu!
|-
| [[Luthic]] || Il caldu vintru ist vicinu, aena tormenta qerrât. Qemâ gia meina rasna varma, frigiondu meinu. Beneqemutu! Qemâ har, segguâ e danzâ, mangiâ e dregcâ. Su ist il meinu pianu. Vi abbiamos vadne, biure, e meluco fresco da vacca. Ah, e zuppa varma!
|-
| [[w:Portuguese language|Portuguese]] || O inverno gelado está a chegar, uma tempestade de neve virá. Vem para a minha casa quente, meu amigo. Bem-vindo! Vem cá, canta e dança, come e bebe. É esse o meu plano. Temos água, cerveja e leite fresco da vaca. Ah, e sopa quente!
|-
| [[w:Italian language|Italian]] || Il freddo inverno è vicino, arriverà una tormenta di neve. Vieni nella mia calda casa, amico mio. Benvenuto! Vieni qui, canta e danza, mangia e bevi. Questo è il mio piano. Abbiamo acqua, birra e latte fresco di mucca. Ah, e zuppa calda!
|-
| [[w:Spanish language|Spanish]] || El frío invierno está cerca, vendrá una tormenta de nieve. Ven a mi cálida casa, amigo mío. ¡Bienvenido! Ven aquí, canta y baila, come y bebe. Ese es mi plan. Tenemos agua, cerveza y leche fresca de la vaca. ¡Oh, y sopa caliente!
|-
| [[w:French language|French]] || Le froid de l'hiver est proche, une tempête de neige s'annonce. Viens dans ma maison chaude, mon ami. Bienvenue ! Viens ici, chante et danse, mange et bois. C'est mon plan. Nous avons de l'eau, de la bière et du lait frais de la vache. Oh, et de la soupe chaude !
|-
| [[w:Romanian language|Romanian]] || Iarna geroasă este aproape, viscolul o să vină. Vino în casa mea călduroasă, prietene. Bine ai venit! Vino încoace, cântă și dansează, bea și mănâncă. Ăsta e planul meu. Avem apa, bere și lapte proaspăt de la vacă. Aaa, și supă calda!
|}
=====Romance=====
:{| cellspacing="3px"
| [[w:Portuguese language|Portuguese]] || Este é um magnifico palácio real. Parti, peão ignorante! Somente os elites respeitáveis em política, ciência, cultura e arte são autorizados a entrar. Retornai imediatamente à vossa fazenda miserável, e pagai a taxa, ou os guardas exterminarão a vossa família.
|-
| [[w:Italian language|Italian]] || Questo è un magnifico palazzo reale. Partite, pedone ignorante! Solo le élite rispettabili in politica, scienza, cultura e arte sono autorizzate a entrare. Tornate immediatamente alla vostra misera fattoria e pagate la tassa, o le guardie stermineranno la vostra famiglia.
|-
| [[w:Spanish language|Spanish]] || Este es un magnífico palacio real. ¡Partí, peón ignorante! Sólo las élites respetables de la política, la ciencia, la cultura y el arte están autorizadas a entrar. Regresá inmediatamente a vuestra miserable hacienda y pagá la tasa, o los guardias exterminarán a vuestra familia.
|-
| [[w:French language|French]] || C'est un magnifique palais royal. Partez, paysan ignorant ! Seules les élites respectables en politique, science, culture et art sont autorisées à entrer. Retournez immédiatement à votre misérable ferme. Et payez la taxe, ou les gardes extermineront votre famille.
|-
| [[w:Romanian language|Romanian]] || Acesta este un palat regal magnific. Îndepărtaţi-vă, țăranule ignorant! Doar elitele respectabile din politică, știință, cultură și artă sunt autorizate să intre. Întoarceți-vă imediat la ferma voastră mizerabilă. Și plătiţi taxele, altfel gărzile vă vor extermina familia.
|-
| [[Luthic]] || Este ist aenu magnificu palazzu reale. Partite, pedone ignorante! Sole le elite rispettabili in politica, scienzia, coltura e crafte autorizzanða ad entrare. Tornate immediatamente all’isvara misera garda e pagate lo geldo, aud i guardi sterminerando l’isvara famiglia.
|-
| [[w:English language|English]] || This is a magnificent royal palace. Depart, ignorant peasant! Only respectable elites in politics, science, culture and art are authorised to enter. Return immediately to your miserable farm. And pay the tax, or the guards will exterminate your family.
|-
| [[w:Dutch language|Dutch]] || Dit is een prachtig koninklijk paleis. Gaat weg u, onwetende boer! Alleen respectabele elites in de politiek, wetenschap, cultuur en kunst hebben toegang. Keert u onmiddellijk terug naar uw ellendige boerderij. En betaalt u de belasting, of de bewakers zullen uw familie uitroeien.
|-
| [[w:German language|German]] || Dies ist ein prächtiger königlicher Palast. Weggehen Sie unwissender Bauer! Nur respektable Eliten aus Politik, Wissenschaft, Kultur und Kunst haben Zutritt. Kehren Sie sofort auf Ihren armseligen Bauernhof zurück. Und zahlen Sie die Steuern, sonst werden die Wachen Ihre Familie auslöschen.
|-
| [[w:Frisian languages|Frisian]] || Dit is in prachtich keninklik paleis. Gean werom, ûnwittende boer! Allinnich respektabele elites yn polityk, wittenskip, kultuer en keunst hawwe tagong. Gean werom fuort nei jo miserabele pleats. En betelje de belesting, of de bewakers sille jo famylje útroege.
|-
| [[w:Norwegian language|Norwegian]] || Dette er et praktfullt kongelig palass. Forsvinn, uvitende bonde! Bare respektable eliter innen politikk, vitenskap, kultur og kunst har adgang. Dra straks tilbake til din elendige gård. Og betal skatten, ellers vil vaktene utrydde familien din.
|-
| [[w:Icelandic language|Icelandic]] || Þetta er stórkostleg konungshöll. Farið þér, fáfróður bóndi! Aðeins virðuleg elíta í stjórnmálum, vísindum, menningu og listum hafa aðgang. Farið þér strax aftur á ömurlega bæinn ykkart. Og borgið þér skattinn, annars munu verðir útrýma fjölskyldu ykkarri.
|}
====Leipzig-Jakarta====
It is often said that the Swadesh list was put together by Morris Swadesh on the basis of his intuition, while the Leipzig-Jakarta list is based on systematic data from many different languages.
{| class="wikitable collapsible collapsed"  style="text-align: center;"
!colspan="6"|Etymological Leipzig-Jakarta
|-
! width="20%"  colspan="2"|Item
! width="20%"|Luthic
! width="20%"|Gothic
! width="20%"|Latin
! width="20%"|PIE
|-
| 1 || fire || fona “fire” (< *fōn, *funin-, related to *fōr, *fuïr-, which is found in North and West Germanic, ultimately from Proto-Germanic *fōr, *funiz ~ *fuiniz ~ *funiniz) || 𐍆𐍉𐌽 (fōn) “fire” (< *fōn, *funin-, related to *fōr, *fuïr-, which is found in North and West Germanic, ultimately from Proto-Germanic *fōr, *funiz ~ *fuiniz ~ *funiniz) || pūrgō < *'''pur'''agō “to purge”, from *pur + *agō, literally meaning “to do with fire; to clean with fire”. The first element is attested in Italic as Umbrian 𐌐𐌉𐌓 (pir) || *péh₂wr̥, *ph₂wéns “fire”. Two main terms for “fire” are reconstructible for PIE: *h₁n̥gʷnis and *péh₂wr̥, usually considered in semantic opposition; the first is usually masculine, refers to fire as animate and active (compare Agni, the most prominent Old Indic deity, and Latin ignis “fire”); the second is neuter and refers to fire as inanimate and passive, i.e. as a substance.
|-
| 2 || nose || nasu “nose” || *𐌽𐌰𐍃𐌰 (nasa) “nose” || nāsus “nose”, nāris “nostril” || *néh₂s, *nh₂sós “nose”
|-
| 3 || to go || ganare “to go” || *𐌲𐌰𐌽 (gān), merged with 𐌲𐌰𐌲𐌲𐌰𐌽 (gaggan) “to go” || '''hē'''rēs < *ǵʰeh₁ro- “derelict; heir” || *ǵʰeh₁- “to leave behind; to abandon; to come; to reach; to go; to walk”
|-
| 4 || water || vadne “water” || 𐍅𐌰𐍄𐍉 (watō) “water” || unda “wave” < *udnéh₂ < *udn- || *wódr̥, *udn- “water”
|-
| 5 || mouth || monþu “mouth” || 𐌼𐌿𐌽𐌸𐍃 (munþs) “mouth” || mentum “chin” || *mento- (“mouth; jaw”) < *men- “to stand out; to protrude; to project; to stick out”
|-
| 6 || tongue || tugga “tongue” || 𐍄𐌿𐌲𐌲𐍉 (tuggō) “tongue” || lingua < dinguā̆ “tongue”. Influenced by lingō “to lick” as a folk etymology; compare Old Armenian լեզու (lezu) and Lithuanian liežùvis || *dn̥ǵʰwéh₂s “tongue”
|-
| 7 || blood || saggue “blood” || 𐌴𐌹𐍃𐌰𐍂𐌽 (eisarn) “iron” (via Celtic?) || '''assar'''ātum “drink made with blood and wine”, assyr “blood”, sanguī̆s < *h₁sh₂n̥- “blood” || *h₁ésh₂r̥ “blood”
|-
| 8 || bone || beine “bone” || *𐌱𐌰𐌹𐌽 “bone” || *per'''fin'''āre < *finō “to break” || *bʰeyh₂- “to strike; to cut; to hew”
|-
| 9 || thou || þû “you” || 𐌸𐌿 (þū) “you” || tū “you” || *tíh₁, *tu- “you”
|-
| 10 || root || vaurte “root” || 𐍅𐌰𐌿𐍂𐍄𐍃 (waurts) “root” || rādīx “root” || *wréh₂diHs “root”
|-
| 11 || to come || qemare “to come” || 𐌵𐌹𐌼𐌰𐌽 (qiman) “to come” || '''ven'''īre < *gʷen < *gʷem- < *gʷm̥- “to come” || *gʷem- “to step”
|-
| 12 || breast || brostu “breast” || 𐌱𐍂𐌿𐍃𐍄𐍃 (brusts) “breast” || frū̆stum “piece; bit; crumb; morsel; scrap of food” || *bʰrews- “to break (up); to cut”
|-
| 13 || rain || pioggia “rain” || *𐍆𐌻𐌰𐌿𐌼𐍃 (flaums) “stream; flow; flood”, compare 𐍆𐌻𐍉𐌳𐌿𐍃 (flōdus) “river” for the same root < *pleh₃(w)-, often considered a lengthened *ō-grade of *plew- || pluvia “rain” ||  *plew- “to fly; to flow; to run”
|-
| 14 || I || ic “I” || 𐌹𐌺 (ik) “I” || egō̆ “I” || *eǵóH < *éǵ ~ *h₁eǵ(H) “I”
|-
| 15 || name || namno “name” || 𐌽𐌰𐌼𐍉 (namō) “name” || nōmen “name” || *h₃néh₃mn̥ ~ *h₃nh₃méns “name”
|-
| 16 || louse || pidocchiu “louse” || ∅ || pēdis “louse” || *pesdis < *pesd- “annoying insect?”. Ultimately IE, cognates include: Avestan 𐬞𐬀𐬰𐬛𐬎- (pazdu-) “beetle; maggot” and Sanskrit पेदु- (pedú-) “proper noun of a man, protected by the Asvins, by whom he was presented with white snake-killing honey”, पैद्व​ (paidvá-) “the snake-killing horse of Pedu; an insect harming horses”
|-
| 17 || wing || ala “wing” || *𐌰𐌷𐍃𐌻𐌰 (ahsla) “shoulder” || āla “wing” || *h₂eḱs(i)leh₂ < *h₂eḱs- “axle; axis”
|-
| 18 || meat || carne “meat” || *𐍃𐌺𐌰𐌹𐍂𐌰𐌽 (s'''kai'''ran) “to shear” || carō “meat” || *(s)ker- “to cut off; to server; to separate; to divide”
|-
| 19 || arm || bracchio “arm” || *𐌼𐌰𐌿𐍂𐌲𐌿𐍃 (maurgus) “short” || bracchium “arm” || *mréǵʰus < *mreǵʰ- “short; brief”
|-
| 20 || fly || þliugnio “fly” || *𐌸𐌻𐌹𐌿𐌲𐍉 (þliugō) “fly” || plūma “feather; plume” || *plewk- “to fly; to flow; to run”
|-
| 21 || night || nattu “night” || 𐌽𐌰𐌷𐍄𐍃 (nahts) “night” || nōx “night” || *nókʷts “night”
|-
| 22 || ear || orecchia “ear” || 𐌰𐌿𐍃𐍉 (ausō) “ear” || auris “ear” || *h₂ṓws, *h₂éwsos “ear”
|-
| 23 || neck || collo “neck” || 𐌷𐌰𐌻𐍃 (hals) “neck” || collum “neck” || *kʷolso- < *kʷel- “to turn (end-over-end)”
|-
| 24 || far || fairra “far” || 𐍆𐌰𐌹𐍂𐍂𐌰 (fairra) “far” || per “through(out); via” || *pernóy < *per- “before; in front; first”
|-
| 25 || to do/make || taugiare “to do/make” || 𐍄𐌰𐌿𐌾𐌰𐌽 (taujan) “to do/make” || ∅ || *dewh₂- “to fit”. Ultimately IE, cognates include: Tocharian B tsu- “to cohere; to adhere; to contain” and Ancient Greek δύναμαι (dúnamai) “to be able; to can”
|-
| 26 || house || huso “house” || *𐌷𐌿𐍃 (hūs) “house” < *(s)kuHsóm || scūtum “shield” < *(s)kuHtóm || *(s)kewH- “to cover; to protect”
|-
| 27 || stone || staenu “stone” || 𐍃𐍄𐌰𐌹𐌽𐍃 (stains) “stone” < *steyh₂- || stāre “to stand” < *steh₂- || *steh₂- “to stand”
|-
| 28 || bitter || baetru “bitter” || 𐌱𐌰𐌹𐍄𐍂𐍃 (baitrs) “bitter” < *bʰoydrós || fissus “split; cloven” < *bʰidtós || *bʰeyd- “to split”
|-
| 29 || to say || rogiare “to say” || 𐍂𐍉𐌳𐌾𐌰𐌽 (rōdjan) “to speak; to talk” < *h₂reh₁dʰ- < *h₂réh₁dʰh₁eti  || rērī “to reckon” < *h₂reh₁yéti || *h₂reh₁- “to think; to reason”
|-
| 30 || tooth || dente “tooth” || 𐍄𐌿𐌽𐌸𐌿𐍃 (tunþus) “tooth” || dēns “tooth” || *h₃dónts “tooth”
|-
| 31 || hair || taglio “hair” || 𐍄𐌰𐌲𐌻 (tagl) “hair” || dolāre “to hew; to chop” || *delh₁- “to split”. Uncertain and debatable.
|-
| 32 || big || mêchelu “big” || 𐌼𐌹𐌺𐌹𐌻𐍃 (mikils) “great; large; big” < *méǵh₂los || magnus “great; large; big” < *m̥ǵh₂nós || *méǵh₂s (*m̥ǵh₂-) “big; great”
|-
| 33 || one || aenu “one” || 𐌰𐌹𐌽𐍃 (ains) “one” || ūnus “one” || *h₁óynos “one”
|-
| 34 || who || qu “who” || 𐍈𐌰𐍃 (ƕas) “who; what” || quis “who” || *kʷís, *kʷós “who”
|-
| 35 || he, she, it|| is, ia, atha “he, she, it” || 𐌹𐍃, 𐍃𐌹, 𐌹𐍄𐌰 (is, si, ita) “he, she, it” || is, ea, id “he, she, it” || *h₁e, *ih₂, *id “he, she, it”
|-
| 36 || to hit || biegguare “to hit” || 𐌱𐌻𐌹𐌲𐌲𐍅𐌰𐌽 (bliggwan) “to beat; to scourge; to cut; to kill” || ∅ || *mléwe- < *mlew- “weak?”. Ultimately Indo-European, related to Ancient Greek ἀμβλύς (amblús) “blunt; dim; faint” and Avestan 𐬨𐬭𐬎𐬙𐬀 (mruta) “crushed; weak”, also related to Old Norse blauðr (soft; meek; coward(ly)).
|-
| 37 || foot || piê “foot” || 𐍆𐍉𐍄𐌿𐍃 (fōtus) “foot” || pēs “foot” || *pṓds, *ped- “foot”
|-
| 38 || horn || haurno “horn” || 𐌷𐌰𐌿𐍂𐌽 (haurn) “horn” || cornū “horn” || *ḱr̥h₂nós < *ḱer(h₂)- “horn”
|-
| 39 || this || su, sa, þatha “this” || 𐍃𐌰, 𐍃𐍉, 𐌸𐌰𐍄𐌰 (sa, sō, þata) “this” || sī “if” < *sey (an innovated thematic locative singular) <br >tum “then” < *tóm, accusative of *só <br >iste, ista, istud “that” < *h₁e(s)- + *só|| *só, *séh₂, *tód “this; that”
|-
| 40 || fish || fescu “fish” || 𐍆𐌹𐍃𐌺𐍃 (fisks) “fish” < *piskós || piscis “fish” < *piskís || *peysk- “fish”
|-
| 41 || yesterday || gestradagu “yesterday” || 𐌲𐌹𐍃𐍄𐍂𐌰𐌳𐌰𐌲𐌹𐍃 (gistradagis) “tomorrow” || hesternus “yesterday’s” < *dʰǵʰyésteros <br >febris < *dʰegʷʰris || *dʰǵʰyés “yesterday” <br >*dʰegʷʰ- “to burn; hot; warm”
|-
| 42 || to drink || dregcare “to drink” || 𐌳𐍂𐌹𐌲𐌺𐌰𐌽 (drigkan) “to drink” || ∅ || *dʰrénǵ- “to draw into one's mouth; sip; gulp” < *dʰreǵ- “to draw; glide”
|-
| 43 || black || neru “black” || 𐌽𐌰𐌵𐌰𐌸𐍃 (naqaþs) “naked” <sup><small>relation is uncertain</small></sup> || niger “black” <sup><small>of obscure origin</small></sup> || *negʷ- “bare; naked” <sup><small>uncertain</small></sup>
|-
| 44 || navel || navalano “navel” || *𐌽𐌰𐌱𐌰𐌻𐌰 (nabala) “navel” || '''umbil'''īcus “navel” (< *h₃m̥bʰél- < *h₃n̥bʰél-), suffixed with -īcus || *h₃nóbʰōl “navel”
|-
| 45 || to stand || stare “to stand” || 𐍃𐍄𐌰𐌽𐌳𐌰𐌽 (standan) “to stand” (< *sth₂nédʰh₁ti) || stare “to stand; stay” (< *sth₂éh₁yeti) || *steh₂- “to stand (up)”
|-
| 46 || to bite || beidare “to bite” || 𐌱𐌴𐌹𐍄𐌰𐌽 (beitan) “to bite” (< *bʰéyde-) || findere “to split” (*bʰind-) || *bʰeyd- “to split”
|-
| 47 || back || dorso “back” || akin to 𐍅𐌰𐌿𐍂𐌸𐌰𐌽𐍃 (waurþans, past participle) < 𐍅𐌰𐌹𐍂𐌸𐌰𐌽 (wairþan) “to become” || dorsum “back” (< dē- + vorsum, accusative form of vorsus, archaic form of versus) || *wértti < *wert- “to turn, rotate”
|-
| 48 || wind || vendu “wind” || 𐍅𐌹𐌽𐌳𐍃 (winds) “wind” || ventus “wind” || *h₂wéh₁n̥tos, thematic of *h₂wéh₁n̥ts “blowing; wind; air”, participle of *h₂wḗh₁ti “to blow”, from *h₂weh₁- “to blow”
|-
| 49 || smoke || fumu “smoke” || 𐌳𐌰𐌿𐌽𐍃 (dauns) “scent; smell” (< *dʰowh₂n-) || fūmus “smoke” (earlier *θūmos < *dʰuh₂mós “smoke”) || *dʰewh₂- “smoke; mist; haze”
|-
| 50 || what || ce “what” || 𐍈𐌰𐍃 (ƕas) “who; what” (< *kʷós) || quis “who; what; why” || *kʷís “who; what; which; that” < *kʷ-
|-
| 51 || child || bambinu “child (kin)” (onomatopoeic) <br>  <br> bauro “(any) child” (reanalised as a neuter o-stem) || ∅ <br>  <br> 𐌱𐌰𐌿𐍂 (baur) “child; son” (i-stem participle of 𐌱𐌰𐌹𐍂𐌰𐌽 (bairan) “to bear; carry; give birth”) || ∅ <br>  <br> akin to ferre “to bear; carry” || ∅ <br>  <br> *bʰéreti “to bear, carry” < *bʰer- “id.”
|-
| 52 || to give || gevare “to give” || 𐌲𐌹𐌱𐌰𐌽 (giban) “to give” || ∅ || *gʰébʰeti “to give; move” < *gʰebʰ- “id.”
|-
| 53 || new || nuovu “new” || 𐌽𐌹𐌿𐌾𐌹𐍃 (niujis) “new” (< *néwyos) || novus “new” (< *néwos) || *new- “new” < vṛddhi derivation from *nu “now”
|-
| 54 || to burn || bruciare “to burn”, br- is probably Germanic, maybe from *brōaną “to warm; singe; brew”, the second element is probably from ustulāre “to burn”, ultimately from ūrere “to burn” || ∅ || ustulāre “to burn” || *bʰróh₁e- < *bʰreh₁- “to singe” <br> *h₁ews- “to burn”
|-
| 55 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 56 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 57 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 58 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 59 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 60 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 61 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 62 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 63 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 64 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 65 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 66 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 67 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 68 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 69 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 70 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 71 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 72 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 73 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 74 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 75 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 76 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 77 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 78 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 79 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 80 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 81 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 82 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 83 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 84 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 85 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 86 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 87 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 88 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 89 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 90 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 91 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 92 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 93 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 94 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 95 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 96 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 97 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 98 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 99 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|-
| 100 || || “” || “” || “” || “”
|}
===Phrasebook===
Luthic phrases that are used in common situations, and may be useful to language learners or travellers.
{|
|- style="vertical-align: top;"
|
{| class="wikitable collapsible collapsed"  style="text-align: center;"
|+ '''Communication'''
! colspan="3"|Phrasebook 1
|-
! width="33%"|Luthic
! width="33%"|English
! width="33%"|IPA
|-
| Haelo <sup>m sg</sup> <br> Haela <sup>f sg</sup> <br> Haelos <sup>m pl</sup> <br> Haelas <sup>f pl</sup> || Hello || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɛ.lo]]] <sup>m sg</sup> <br> [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɛ.lɐ]]] <sup>f sg</sup> <br> [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɛ.los]]] <sup>m pl</sup> <br> [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɛ.lɐs]]] <sup>f pl</sup>
|-
| Buona maurgnia || Good morning || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbwɔ.nɐ ˈmɔr.ɲɐ]]]
|-
| Buono dago || Good afternoon || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbwɔ.no ˈda.ɣo]]]
|-
| Buona sera || Good evening || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbwɔ.nɐ ˈse.rɐ]]]
|-
| Ce ist atha þeino namno? || What is your name? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[t͡ʃe ist ɐ.tɐ.θ‿ˈθi.no ˈnam.no]]]
|-
| Atha meino namno ist [...] || My name is [...] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐ.tɐ.m‿ˈmi.no ˈnam.no ist ⸨...⸩]]]
|-
| Car is? || Where are you from? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[kɐr is]]]
|-
| Im di [...] || I am from [...] || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[im di ⸨...⸩]]]
|-
| Beneqemutu <sup>m</sup><br >Beneqemuta <sup>f</sup> || Welcome || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˌbe.ne.kᶣeˈmu.tu]]] <sup>m</sup><br >[[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˌbe.ne.kᶣeˈmu.tɐ]]] <sup>f</sup>
|-
| Piacere! || Pleased to meet you! || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[pjɐˈt͡ʃe.re]]]
|-
| Ce taugis? || How are you? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[t͡ʃe ˈtɔ.d͡ʒis]]]
|-
| Bene <br >Male || Fine <br >Bad || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbe.ne]]] <br >[[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈma.le]]]
|-
| Ic ezia || Me too || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ix ˈe.t͡sjɐ]]]
|-
| Begio || Please || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbe.d͡ʒo]]]
|-
| Scusâ || Excuse me || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[sk̠uˈza]]]
|-
| Grazie || Thank you || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈɡrat.t͡sje]]]
|-
| Di nulla || You are welcome || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[di ˈnul.la]]]
|-
| Anþerottante || Likewise || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐ̃ˌθe.rotˈtan.te]]]
|-
| Giumane her rogiat Lûthico? || Does anyone here speak Luthic? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[d͡ʒuˈma.ne er ˈro.d͡ʒɐθ ˈlu.ti.xo]]]
|-
| Rogias Lûthico? || Do you speak Luthic? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈro.d͡ʒɐs ˈlu.ti.xo]]]
|-
| Sei <br >Non <br >Forse|| Yes <br >No <br >Maybe || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈsi]]] <br >[[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[non]]] <br >[[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈfor.se]]]
|-
| Ce pronuncias þatha vaurdo? || How do you pronounce this word? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[t͡ʃe proˈnun.t͡ʃɐ.s‿sɐ.tɐ.v‿ˈvɔr.do]]]
|-
| Ce rogiare [...] in Lûthico? || How to say [...] in Luthic? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[t͡ʃe roˈd͡ʒa.re ⸨...⸩ i.l‿ˈlu.tʰi.xo]]]
|-
| Cantas rasdas rogias? || How many languages do you speak? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈkan.tɐs ˈraz.dɐs ˈro.d͡ʒɐs]]]
|-
| Begio, rogiâ maeze lentamente || Please, speak more slowly || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbe.d͡ʒo|roˈd͡ʒɐ.m‿ˈmɛd.d͡ze len.tɐˈmen.te]]]
|-
| Begio, ripetae þatha || Please, repeat that || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbe.d͡ʒo|ri.ɸeˈtɛ.θ‿θɐ.tɐ]]]
|-
| Begio, screvae þatha || Please, write that down || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbe.d͡ʒo|skreˈβɛ.θ‿θɐ.tɐ]]]
|-
| Scias? || Do you understand? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈʃi.as]]]
|-
| Scio <br >Non scio || I understand <br >I don’t understand || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈʃi.o]]] <br >[[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[non ˈʃi.o]]]
|-
| Inu pomadora || No clue || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[i.nu ˈpo.maˌdɔ.ra]]]
|}
|
{| class="wikitable collapsible collapsed"  style="text-align: center;"
|+ '''Emergencies'''
! colspan="3"|Phrasebook 2
|-
! width="33%"|Luthic
! width="33%"|English
! width="33%"|IPA
|-
| Helpâ || Help || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈel.pɐ]]]
|-
| Ist aena emergenza || It is an emergency || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ist ˈɛ.nɐ e.merˈd͡ʒɛn.t͡sɐ]]]ˈ
|-
| Chiamâ los pompieros || Call the fire department || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[k̟jɐˈma.l‿los pomˈpjɛ.ros]]]
|-
| Chiamâ la polizia || Call the police || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[k̟jɐˈma.l‿lɐ po.litˈt͡si.ɐ]]]
|-
| Chiamâ l’ambulanza || Call an ambulance || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[k̟jɐˈma.l‿lɐm.buˈlan.t͡sɐ]]]
|}
|
{| class="wikitable collapsible collapsed"  style="text-align: center;"
|+ '''Farewelling'''
! colspan="3"|Phrasebook 3
|-
! width="33%"|Luthic
! width="33%"|English
! width="33%"|IPA
|-
| Buono natto || Good night || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbwɔ.no ˈnat.to]]]
|-
| Dormei bene || Sleep well || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[dorˈmi.b‿ˈbe.ne]]]
|-
| Ciao || Bye || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈt͡ʃa.o]]]
|-
| Arrivederci || See you soon || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐr.ri.βeˈder.t͡ʃi]]]
|-
| Buono viaggo || Bon voyage || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbwɔ.no ˈvjad.d͡ʒo]]]
|}
|}
{|
|- style="vertical-align: top;"
|
{| class="wikitable collapsible collapsed"  style="text-align: center;"
|+ '''Food'''
! colspan="3"|Phrasebook 4
|-
! width="33%"|Luthic
! width="33%"|English
! width="33%"|IPA
|-
| Begio, puosserebbi saecare lo menu? || Please, could I see the menu? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbe.d͡ʒo|pwɔs.seˈrɛb.bi sɛˈka.re lo ˈme.nu]]]
|-
| Begio, hais aeno menu in Lûthica? || Please, do you have a menu in Luthic? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbe.d͡ʒo|ˈajs ˈɛ.no ˈme.nu in ˈlu.ti.xɐ]]]
|-
| Mangiasti? || Have you eaten? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[mɐnˈd͡ʒas.ti]]]
|-
| Buono appetito || Bon appetit || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbwɔ.no ɐp.peˈti.θo]]]
|-
| Begio, passâ lo sale || Please, pass the salt || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbe.d͡ʒo|pɐsˈsa.l‿lo ˈsa.le]]]
|-
| Im veganu <sup>m sg</sup> <br> Im vegana <sup>f sg</sup> <br> Ismos vegani <sup>m pl</sup> <br> Ismos vegane <sup>f pl</sup> || I am vegan <sup>m sg</sup> <br> I am vegan <sup>f sg</sup> <br> We are vegans <sup>m pl</sup> <br> We are vegans <sup>f pl</sup> || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[im veˈɡa.nu]]] <sup>m sg</sup> <br> [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[im veˈɡa.nɐ]]] <sup>f sg</sup> <br> [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈiz.mos veˈɡa.ni]]] <sup>m pl</sup> <br> [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈiz.mos veˈɡa.ne]]] <sup>f pl</sup>
|-
| Aggio allergia || I am allergic || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈad.d͡ʒo ɐl.lerˈd͡ʒi.ɐ]]]
|}
|
{| class="wikitable collapsible collapsed"  style="text-align: center;"
|+ '''Health'''
! colspan="3"|Phrasebook 5
|-
! width="33%"|Luthic
! width="33%"|English
! width="33%"|IPA
|-
| Stais betizu nu? <sup>m sg</sup> <br> Stais betiza nu? <sup>f sg</sup> <br> States betizi nu? <sup>m pl</sup> <br> States betize nu? <sup>f pl</sup> || Are you feeling better? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈstajs beˈtid.d͡zu nu]]] <sup>m sg</sup> <br> [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈstajs beˈtid.d͡zɐ nu]]] <sup>f sg</sup> <br> [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈsta.tes beˈtid.d͡zi nu]]] <sup>m pl</sup> <br> [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈsta.tes beˈtid.d͡ze nu]]] <sup>f pl</sup>
|-
| Betizâ preste || Get well soon || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[be.θidˈd͡za.p‿ˈprɛs.te]]]
|-
| Curâ <sup>sg</sup> <br> Curate <sup>pl</sup> || Take care of yourself <sup>sg</sup> <br> Take care of yourselves || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[k̠uˈra]]] <sup>sg</sup> <br> [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[k̠uˈra.θe]]] <sup>pl</sup>
|-
| Veglio ganare al toeletta || I want to go to the toilet || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[vɛʎ.ʎo ɡɐˈna.re ɐl to.ɛˈlɛt.tɐ]]]
|-
| Þaurvo aeno dottore || I need a doctor || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈθɔr.βo ˈɛ.no dotˈto.re]]]
|}
|
{| class="wikitable collapsible collapsed"  style="text-align: center;"
|+ '''Holidays'''
! colspan="3"|Phrasebook 6
|-
! width="33%"|Luthic
! width="33%"|English
! width="33%"|IPA
|-
| Buono natale || Merry Christmas || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbwɔ.no nɐˈta.le]]]
|-
| Felice giar nuovo || Happy New Year || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[feˈli.t͡ʃe d͡ʒɐr ˈnwɔ.βo]]]
|-
| Buona pascha || Happy Easter || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbwɔ.nɐ ˈpas.kɐ]]]
|-
| Felice gabaerdago || Happy birthday || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[feˈli.t͡ʃe ɡɐˌbɛrˈda.ɣo]]]
|-
| Coggratulazioni || Congratulations || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[koŋ.ɡrɐˌtu.lɐtˈt͡sjo.ni]]]
|}
|}
{|
|- style="vertical-align: top;"
|
{| class="wikitable collapsible collapsed"  style="text-align: center;"
|+ '''[[w:Judaism|Judaism]]'''
! colspan="3"|Phrasebook 7
|-
! width="33%"|Luthic
! width="33%"|Hebrew
! width="33%"|IPA
|-
| Scialôm alechêm || Shalóm 'alekhém || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ʃɐˈlom ɐ.leˈkem]]]
|-
| Alechêm scialom || 'alekhém shalóm || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ɐ.leˈkem ʃɐˈlom]]]
|-
| Sciabbate scialôm || Shabát shalóm || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ʃɐbˈba.θe ʃɐˈlom]]]
|-
| Sciavûa tove || Shavúa tov || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ʃɐˈβu.ɐ ˈto.βe]]]
|-
| Scianâ tovâ || Shaná tová || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ʃɐˈna toˈβa]]]
|}
|
{| class="wikitable collapsible collapsed"  style="text-align: center;"
|+ '''Love'''
! colspan="3"|Phrasebook 8
|-
! width="33%"|Luthic
! width="33%"|English
! width="33%"|IPA
|-
| Is ciaelibe? || Are you single? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[is ˈt͡ʃɛ.li.βe]]]
|-
| Is coniugatu? <sup>m</sup> <br> Is coniugata? <sup>f</sup> || Are you married? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[is ko.njuˈɡa.θu]]] <sup>m</sup> <br> [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[is ko.njuˈɡa.θɐ]]] <sup>f</sup>
|-
| Mis piacis || I like you || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[mis ˈpja.t͡ʃis]]]
|-
| Fregio þuc <br> Fregio·t || I love you || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈfrɛ.d͡ʒo θux]]] <br> [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈfrɛ.d͡ʒoθ]]]
|-
| Piaceresti salire mis? || Would you like to go out with me? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[pjɐ.t͡ʃeˈres.ti sɐˈli.re mis]]]
|-
| Im heterosessuale || I am straight || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[im ˌɛ.θe.ro.sesˈswa.le]]]
|-
| Im homosessuale || I am gay || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[im ˌɔ.mo.sesˈswa.le]]]
|-
| Is scaunu <br> Is scauna || You are handsome <br> You are beautiful || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[is ˈsk̠ɔ.nu]]] <br> [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[is ˈsk̠ɔ.nɐ]]]
|}
|
{| class="wikitable collapsible collapsed"  style="text-align: center;"
|+ '''Travel'''
! colspan="3"|Phrasebook 9
|-
! width="33%"|Luthic
! width="33%"|English
! width="33%"|IPA
|-
| Ce arrivo al loftoporto? || How do I get to the airport? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[t͡ʃe ɐrˈri.βo ɐl ˌlof.toˈpor.to]]]
|-
| Ce arrivo all’aütostazione? || How do I get to the bus station? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[t͡ʃe ɐrˈri.βo ɐlˈlɐw.θo.stɐtˈt͡sjo.ne]]]
|-
| Ce arrivo al ferroviaria || How do I get to the train station? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[t͡ʃe ɐrˈri.βo ɐl fer.ro.viˈa.rjɐ]]]
|-
| Canto þatha costat? || How much does it cost? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈkan.to θɐ.tɐ ˈk̠os.tɐθ]]]
|-
| Stô fralosnatu <sup>m</sup> <br> Stô fralosnata <sup>f</sup> || I am lost || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈsto frɐ.lozˈna.θu]]] <sup>m</sup> <br>  [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈsto frɐ.lozˈna.θɐ]]] <sup>f</sup>
|-
| Begio, al sinistra <br> Begio, al destra || Please, turn left <br> Please, turn right || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbe.d͡ʒo|ɐl siˈnis.trɐ]]] <br> [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[ˈbe.d͡ʒo|ɐl ˈdes.trɐ]]]
|-
| Stoppau lo vagnio || Stop the car || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[stopˈpɔ.l‿lo ˈvaɲ.ɲo]]]
|-
| Car puosso begetare aeno hotele? || Where can I find a hotel? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[kɐr ˈpwɔs.so be.d͡ʒeˈta.re ˈɛ.no oˈtɛ.le]]]
|-
| Car puosso begetare aena drogheria? || Where can I find a grocery store? || [[IPA for Luthic#Standard_Ravennese_Luthic|[kɐr ˈpwɔs.so be.d͡ʒeˈta.re ˈɛ.nɐ droˈɡe.rjɐ]]]
|}
|}
===Idiomatic phrases===
Mostly of the Luthic idiomatic phrases are similar to mostly European languages idioms, mainly Italian and French. Luthic idioms are often about food or mocking the French people, but mostly because of the French government and its movements against minority people within its territory. Another factor is the Roman inherited culture, as the Roman elite considered the Germanic people savage and stupid (e.g. the word [[wikt:vandal#English|Vandal]], that can also stand for a person who needlessly destroys, defaces, or damages things, especially other people’s property; and [[wikt:Gothic#English|Gothic]] that also meant barbarous, rude, unpolished, belonging to the “[[w:Dark Ages (historiography)|Dark Ages]]”, mediaeval as opposed to classical; ultimately of Germanic origin, the name of two East Germanic tribes, but drastically semantic changed to sound pejorative). There were many Germanic raids against the Roman Empire, and a common weapon used back then by the West Germanic people were the javelins, the [[w:West Germanic languages#The reconstruction of Proto-West-Germanic|Common West Germanic]] word for javelin is [[wikt:Reconstruction:Proto-West_Germanic/frankō|*frankō]], which is also the name of the Frankish tribe (cf. Latin [[wikt:Francus#Latin|Francus]] and [[wikt:Francia#Latin|Francia]]). Luthic inherited the word “fragcese” [[IPA for Luthic|[frɐŋˈke.ze]]] from [[wikt:Francia#Latin|Francia]] + [[wikt:-ensis#Latin|-ensis]], ultimately meaning “French (language)”, “Frenchman, Frenchwoman” and "French (people)”, but also meaning “stupid, savage, useless” from a semantic change similar to Vandal and Gothic.
# Monþo al volfo: calqued from Italian [[wikt:in bocca al lupo|in bocca al lupo]], equivalent to [[wikt:break a leg|break a leg]], [[wikt:good luck|good luck]]; literally, “in the wolf’s mouth”.
# Dauþit lo volfo: calqued from Italian [[wikt:crepi il lupo|crepi in lupo]], an answer similar to “thank you”; literally, “may the wolf die”.
# Tvi italiani miþ sole aena mana: equivalent to [[wikt:two birds with one stone|two birds with one stone]]; literally, “two Italians with only one hand”, a mock to Italians’ [[w:Che vuoi?|''che vuoi?'']].
# Vegliare anþero pomodoro: an expression for someones who is ''asking for special treatment''; literally, “to want another tomato”.
# La herba vicini ist aeve verdiza: equivalent to [[wikt:the grass is always greener on the other side|the grass is always greener on the other side]]; literally, “The neighbour’s grass is always greener”.
# La fame laþot pasta, agce si inu salsa: equivalent to [[wikt:desperate times call for desperate measures|desperate times call for desperate measures]]; literally, “Hunger calls for pasta, even if without sauce”.
# L’amore dominat inu regolam: somewhat equivalent to [[wikt:all's fair in love and war|all’s fair in love and war]]; literally, “Love rules without rules”.
# Biegguare lo chiudo capo: equivalent to [[wikt:hit the nail on the head|hit the nail on the head]], with the same literal translation.
# Martellare lo dito: the opposite to the previous idiomatic phrase, when someone is totally wrong; literally, “To hammer the finger”.
# Gniosco las meinas patatas: equivalent to ''I can handle this''; literally, “I know my potatoes”.
# Stoppau di rogiare fragcese: an expression asking for someone ''to be straightforward and speak one’s mind''; literally, “Stop speaking French”.
# Imparasti fragcese, nu rogiâ: equivalent to [[wikt:make one's bed and lie in it|make one’s bed and lie in it]]; literally, “You learnt French, now speak it”.
# Pasta miþ salsa e caffê aeve neru: equivalent to [[wikt:call a spade a spade|call a spade a spade]]; literally, “Pasta with sauce and coffee always black”.
# Il þeinu sale stâþ dolce: equivalent to [[wikt:out of one's mind|out of one’s mind]]; literally, “Your salt is sweet”.
# Havere managos casos faul·lo dativo: equivalent to [[wikt:wear too many hats|wear too many hats]]; literally, “Have too many usages for the dative”, a joke about the many usages of the dative case in Luthic.
# Sputâ la patata da seina monþa faur di rogiare: equivalent to [[wikt:speak up|speak up]]; literally, “Spit the potato out of your mouth before speaking”.
# Rogiando da diavola: equivalent to [[wikt:speak of the devil|speak of the devil]], with the same literal translation.
# Il pomudoru non taugit lo capocuocu: equivalent to [[wikt:clothes don't make the man|clothes don’t make the man]]; literally, “The tomato doesn’t make the chef”.
# Aenu pomodoru grossu: equivalent to [[wikt:big shot|big shot]]; literally, “A big tomato”.
# Havere aeno cervello di fragcesi: an expression for someone who ''acts stupidly, has low intelligence or has poor judgement''; literally, “To have a French brain”.
# Cosa ist marcia in Roma: equivalent to [[wikt:something is rotten in the state of Denmark|something is rotten in the state of Denmark]]; literally, “Something is rotten in Rome”.
# Scimmia non dauþat scimmia: equivalent to ''honour among thieves''; literally, “Monkey doesn’t kill monkey”.
# Costare aeno augono: equivalent to [[wikt:an arm and a leg|an arm and a leg]]; literally, “To cost an eye”.
# Þatha ist Italiana mis: equivalent to [[wikt:it's all Greek to me|it’s all Greek to me]]; literally, “This is Italian to me”.
# Drigcare svasve aenu russu: equivalent to [[wikt:drink like a fish|drink like a fish]]; literally, “To drink like a Russian”.
# Vivere grande ed al fragcesa: an expression for ''living in extravagance'', ''to live in luxury''; literally, “To live big and French”, mocking the French lifestyle.
# Puossere drigcare veleno ana þatha: equivalent to [[wikt:bet one's bottom dollar|bet one’s bottom dollar]]; literally, “To can drink poison on that”.
# Il volfu danzat har: an expression for a great party; literally, “The wolf dances here”.
# Non vendere los seinos pomosdoros faur di maturanda: equivalent to [[wikt:don't count your chickens before they're hatched|don’t count your chickens before they’re hatched]]; literally, “Don’t sell your tomatoes before they’re ripe”.
# Pizza buona non cambiat la ricetta: equivalent to [[wikt:if it ain't broke, don't fix it|if it ain’t broke, don’t fix it]]; literally, “A good pizza doesn’t change its recipe”.
# Taugiare lo haurno: equivalent to [[wikt:cuckoldize|to cuckoldise]]; literally, “To make the horn”.
===Further reading===
* [[:Category:Translated works in Luthic|Translated works in Luthic]]
* [[Luthic/Colours|Colours in Luthic]]
* [[Luthic/Kinship|Luthic kinship]]
* [[Luthic/Time|Time in Luthic]]
==Sample text==
<big>[[w:The North Wind and the Sun|The North Wind and the Sun]] in Luthic:</big>
* '''Orthographic version in Standard Luthic'''
: ''Il vendu trabaergnia ed atha sauilo giucavando carge erat il fortizu, can aenu pellegrinu qemavat avvoltu hacola varma ana. I tvi diciderondo ei, il fromu a rimuovere lo hacolo pellegrina sariat il fortizu anþera. Il vendu trabaergnia dustoggit a soffiare violenza, ac atha maeze is soffiavat, atha maeze il pellegrinu striggevat hacolo; tantu ei, allo angio il vendu desistaet da seina sforza. Atha sauilo allora sceinaut varmamente nallo hemeno, e þan il pellegrinu rimuovaet lo hacolo immediatamente. Þan il vendu trabaergnia obbligauða ad andaetare ei, latha sauilo erat atha fortizo tvoro.''
* '''Broad transcription'''
: /il ˈβen.du trɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa e.d‿ɐ.tɐ ˈsɔj.lo d͡ʒu.kɐˈβɐn.do kɐr.d͡ʒe ˈɛ.rɐθ il ˈɸɔr.ti.d͡zu | kɐn ɛ.nu pel.leˈɡri.nu kʷeˈma.βɐθ ɐβˈβol.tu ɐˈkɔ.la ˈβar.ma ɐ.nɐ ‖ i tβi di.t͡ʃi.deˈron.do ˈi | il ˈɸro.mu ɐ ri.mwoˈβe.re lo ɐˈkɔ.lo pel.leˈɡri.na ˈsa.rjɐθ il ˈɸɔr.ti.d͡zu ɐ̃ˈθe.ra ‖ il ˈβen.du trɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa duˈstɔd.d͡ʒiθ ɐ soɸˈɸja.re βjoˈlɛn.t͡sa | ɐ.k‿ɐ.tɐ ˈmɛ.d͡ze is soɸˈɸja.βɐθ | ɐ.tɐ ˈmɛ.d͡ze il pel.leˈɡri.nu striŋˈɡe.βɐθ ɐˈkɔ.lo | ˈtan.tu ˈi | ɐl.lo ˈan.d͡ʒo il ˈβen.du deˈzi.stɛθ da ˈsi.na ˈsɸɔr.t͡sa ‖ ɐ.tɐ ˈsɔj.lo ɐlˈlɔ.rɐ ʃiˈnɔθ βɐr.mɐˈmen.te nɐl.lo eˈme.no | e θɐn il pel.leˈɡri.nu riˈmwo.βɛθ lo ɐˈkɔ.lo ĩ.me.djɐ.tɐˈmen.te ‖ θɐn il ˈβen.du trɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa ob.bliˈɡɔ.ðɐ ɐ.d‿ɐn.dɛˈta.re ˈi | lɐ.tɐ ˈsɔj.lo ˈɛ.rɐθ ɐ.tɐ ˈɸɔr.ti.d͡zo ˈtβo.ro/
* '''Narrow transcription (differences emphasised)'''
: [il '''ˈven.du''' trɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa '''e.ð‿ɐ.tɐ.s‿ˈsɔj.lo d͡ʒu.xɐˈβɐn.do''' kɐr.d͡ʒe ˈɛ.rɐθ il '''ˈfɔr.tid.d͡zu''' | kɐn ɛ.nu pel.leˈɡri.nu '''kᶣeˈma.βɐθ''' ɐβˈβol.tu '''ɐˈk̠ɔ.la ˈvar.ma''' ɐ.nɐ ‖ i '''tvi di.t͡ʃi.ðeˈron.do''' ˈi | il '''ˈfro.mu ɐ.r‿ri.mwoˈβe.re''' lo '''ɐˈk̠ɔ.lo''' pel.leˈɡri.na ˈsa.rjɐθ il '''ˈfɔr.tid.d͡zu''' ɐ̃ˈθe.ra ‖ il '''ˈven.du''' trɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa dusˈtɔd.d͡ʒiθ '''ɐ.s‿soɸˈɸja.re vjoˈlɛn.t͡sa''' | '''ɐ.x‿ɐ.tɐ.m‿ˈmɛd.d͡ze''' is soɸˈɸja.βɐθ | '''ɐ.tɐ.m‿ˈmɛd.d͡ze''' il pel.leˈɡri.nu '''striŋ˖ˈɡ̟e.βɐθ ɐˈk̠ɔ.lo''' | ˈtan.tu ˈi | ɐl.lo ˈan.d͡ʒo il '''ˈven.du''' deˈzi.stɛθ '''da.s‿ˈsi.na ˈsfɔr.t͡sa''' ‖ '''ɐ.tɐ.s‿ˈsɔj.lo''' ɐlˈlɔ.rɐ ʃiˈnɔθ '''vɐr.mɐˈmen.te''' nɐl.lo eˈme.no | e θɐn il pel.leˈɡri.nu riˈmwo.βɛθ lo '''ɐˈk̠ɔ.lo ĩ.me.djɐ.θɐˈmen.te''' ‖ θɐn il '''ˈven.du''' trɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa '''ob.bliˈɡ˗ɔ.ðɐ ɐ.ð‿ɐn.dɛˈta.re''' ˈi | '''lɐ.tɐ.s‿ˈsɔj.lo''' ˈɛ.rɐθ '''ɐ.tɐ.f‿ˈfɔr.tid.d͡zo ˈtvo.ro''']
* '''Extranarrow transcription'''
This extranarrow transcription illustrates a Lugo Ravennese, educated, middle-generation speech, in his twenties, and a careful yet colloquial style.
: ⟦il̻ ˈven̻.d̻uu̥ˣ t̻rɐˈbɛ̝rɲ.ɲä e.ð‿ɐ.t̻ɐ.s̻‿ˈs̻ɔ̝ɒ̯̆j.l̻o d͡ʒʷu̽ə̯̆.xɐˈβɐn̻.d̻o kɐr.d͡ʒʷe ˈɛ̝.rɐθ il̻ ˈfɔ̟r.t̻i̽ə̯̆d̻.d̻͡z̪uu̥ˣ | kɐn̻ ɛæ̯̆.n̻uu̥ˣ pel̻.l̻eˈɡri̽ə̯̆.n̻uu̥ˣ kᶣeˈmä.βɐθ ɐβˈβol̻.t̻uu̥ˣ ɐˈk̠ɔ̟.l̻ä ˈvär.mä ɐ.n̻ɐ ‖ ii̥ᶜ̧ t̻vii̥ᶜ̧ d̻i̽ə̯̆.t͡ʃʷi̽ə̯̆.ðeˈron̻.d̻o ˈii̥ᶜ̧ | il̻ ˈfro.muu̥ˣ ɐ.r‿ri̽ə̯̆.mwoˈβe.re l̻o ɐˈk̠ɔ̟.l̻o pel̻.l̻eˈɡri̽ə̯̆.n̻ä ˈs̻ä.rjɐθ il̻ ˈfɔ̟r.t̻i̽ə̯̆d̻.d̻͡z̪uu̥ˣ ɐ̃ˈθe.rä ‖ il̻ ˈven̻.d̻u t̻rɐˈbɛ̝rɲ.ɲä d̻us̻ˈt̻ɔ̟d.d͡ʒʷiθ ɐ.s̻‿s̻oɸˈɸjä.re vjoˈl̻ɛ̝n̻.t̻͡s̪ä | ɐ.x‿ɐ.t̻ɐ.m‿ˈmɛæ̯̆d̻.d̻͡z̪e is̻ s̻oɸˈɸjä.βɐθ | ɐ.t̻ɐ.m‿ˈmɛæ̯̆d̻.d̻͡z̪e il̻ pel̻.l̻eˈɡri̽ə̯̆.n̻uu̥ˣ s̻t̻ri̽ə̯̆ŋ˖ˈɡ̟e.βɐθ ɐˈk̠ɔ̟.l̻o | ˈt̻än̻.t̻uu̥ˣ ˈii̥ᶜ̧ | ɐl̻.l̻o ˈän̻.d͡ʒʷo il̻ ˈven̻.d̻uu̥ˣ d̻eˈz̻i̽ə̯̆.s̻tɛ̝θ d̻ä.s̻‿ˈs̻i̽ə̯̆.n̻ä ˈs̻fɔ̟r.t̻͡s̪ä ‖ ɐ.t̻ɐ.s̻‿ˈs̻ɔ̝ɒ̯̆j.l̻o ɐl̻ˈl̻ɔ.rɐ ʃʷi̽ə̯̆ˈn̻ɔ̟θ vɐr.mɐˈmen̻.t̻e n̻ɐl̻.l̻o eˈme.n̻o | e θɐn̻ il̻ pel̻.l̻eˈɡri̽ə̯̆.n̻uu̥ˣ ri̽ə̯̆ˈmwo.βɛ̝θ l̻o ɐˈk̠ɔ̟.l̻o ĩ.me.d̻jɐ.θɐˈmen̻.t̻e ‖ θɐn̻ il̻ ˈven̻.d̻uu̥ˣ t̻rɐˈbɛ̝rɲ.ɲä ob.bl̻i̽ə̯̆ˈɡ˗ɔ̟.ðɐ ɐ.ð‿ɐn̻.d̻ɛæ̯̆ˈt̻ä.re ˈii̥ᶜ̧ | l̻ɐ.t̻ɐ.s̻‿ˈs̻ɔ̝ɒ̯̆j.l̻o ˈɛ̝.rɐθ ɐ.t̻ɐ.f‿ˈfɔ̟r.t̻id̻.d̻͡z̪o ˈt̻vo.ro⟧
* '''Narrow transcription (differences emphasised, Bolognese Standard Luthic)'''
: [il '''ˈvin.du''' tɾɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa '''e.ð̞‿ɐ.tɐ.s‿ˈsɔj.lo '''d͡zu.xɐˈvɐ̃.nu kɐr.d͡ze''' ˈɛ.rɐθ il '''ˈfɔɾ.tid.d͡zu''' | kɐn '''e.nu pel.liˈɡri.nu''' '''kᶣeˈma.vɐθ ɐvˈvul.tu''' ɐˈkɔ.la ˈvar.ma ɐ.nɐ ‖ i tvi '''di.t͡si.ð̞iˈrun.du''' ˈi | il '''ˈfru.mu ɐ.r‿ri.mwoˈve.ɾe''' lo ɐˈkɔ.lo '''pel.liˈɡri.na''' ˈsa.rjɐθ il '''ˈfɔr.tid.d͡zu ɐ̃ˈt͡θe.ra''' ‖ il '''ˈvin.du''' tɾɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa '''dusˈtɔd.d͡ziθ ɐ.s‿sofˈfja.re''' vjoˈlɛn.t͡sa | '''ɐ.x‿ɐ.tɐ.m‿ˈmɛd.d͡ze is sofˈfja.vɐθ''' | '''ɐ.tɐ.m‿ˈmɛd.d͡ze''' il '''pel.liˈɡri.nu stɾiŋˈɡ̟e.vɐθ''' ɐˈkɔ.lo | ˈtan.tu ˈi | ɐl.lo '''ˈan.d͡zo''' il '''ˈvin.du deˈzis.tɛθ da.s‿ˈsi.na''' ˈsfɔr.t͡sa ‖ '''ɐ.tɐ.s‿ˈsɔj.lo''' ɐlˈlɔ.rɐ ʃiˈnɔθ vɐr.mɐˈmen.te nɐl.lo eˈme.no | e θɐn il '''pel.liˈɡri.nu riˈmwo.vɛθ''' lo ɐˈkɔ.lo '''ĩ.me.djɐ.θɐˈmen.te''' ‖ θɐn il '''ˈvin.du''' tɾɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa '''ob.bliˈɡɔ.ð̞ɐ ɐ.ð̞‿'''ɐn.dɛˈta.re ˈi | '''lɐ.tɐ.s‿ˈsɔj.lo''' ˈɛ.ɾɐθ '''ɐ.tɐ.f‿ˈfɔr.tid.d͡zo ˈtvu.ru''']
* '''Orthographic version in Standard Luthic, with reductions and syntactic gemination'''
: ''Il vendu trabaergnia·d atha·ssauilo giucavando carge erat il fortizu, can aenu pellegrinu qemavat avvoltu hacola varma ana. I tvi diciderondo ei, il fromu a·rrimuovere l’hacolo pellegrina sariat il fortizu anþera. Il vendu trabaergnia dustoggit a·ssoffiare violenza, ac atha·mmaeze is soffiavat, atha·mmaeze il pellegrinu striggevat hacolo; tantu ei, all’angio il vendu desistaet da·sseina sforza. Atha·ssauilo allora sceinaut varmamente nall’hemeno, e þan il pellegrino rimuovaet l’hacolo immediatamente. Þan il vendu trabaergnia obbligauða·d andaetare ei, latha·ssauilo erat atha·ffortizo tvoro.''
* '''Orthographic version in English'''
: The North Wind and the Sun were disputing which was the stronger, when a traveller came along wrapped in a warm cloak. They agreed that the one who first succeeded in making the traveller take his cloak off should be considered stronger than the other. Then the North Wind blew as hard as he could, but the more he blew the more closely did the traveller fold his cloak around him; and at last the North Wind gave up the attempt. Then the Sun shined out warmly, and immediately the traveller took off his cloak. And so the North Wind was obliged to confess that the Sun was the stronger of the two.
<big>[[w:Lord's Prayer|The Lord’s Prayer]] in Luthic:</big>
{{Col-begin|80%}}
{{col-n|2}}
<poem style="font-style: italic">
* '''Orthographic version in Luthic'''
Faðar unsar, þû hemeno,
Veiða latha namno þeino;
La þiuðanagarda þeina qemit;
Lo vegliano þeino taugiat;
Svasve hemeno ed ana aerþa.
Il chiaefu qotidianu unsar gevâ unse oggi,
Ed afietâ las unsaras colpas,
Svasve afietiamos þos ei, colpando unsis;
E non letare unse in tentazione
Ac frieau unse da mala.
Faur þuc ist þiuðanagarda,
E la forza, la volþa,
Faur saechia saechioro. Amen.
</poem>
{{col-n|2}}
<poem>
* '''Broad transcription'''
/ˈɸa.ðɐr ˈũ.sɐr | ˈθu eˈme.no
ˈβi.ðɐ lɐ.tɐ ˈnam.no ˈθi.no
lɐ θjuˌða.nɐˈɡar.dɐ ˈθi.nɐ ˈkʷe.miθ
lo βeʎˈʎa.no ˈθi.no ˈtɔ.d͡ʒɐθ
zβɐ.zβe eˈme.no e.d‿ɐ.nɐ ˈɛr.θɐ
il ˈk̟jɛ.ɸu kʷo.tiˈdja.nu ˈũ.sɐr d͡ʒeˈβa ũ.se ˈɔd.d͡ʒi
e.d‿ɐ.ɸjeˈta lɐs ˈũ.sɐ.rɐs ˈkol.pɐs
zβɐ.zβe ɐ.ɸjeˈtja.mos θos ˈi | kolˈpɐn.do ũ.sis
e non leˈta.re ũ.se in ten.tɐtˈt͡sjo.ne
ɐk ɸrjeˈɔ ũ.se da ˈma.la
ɸɔr θuk ist θjuˌða.nɐˈɡar.da
e la ˈɸɔr.t͡sa | la ˈvol.θa
ɸɔr ˈsɛ.k̟jɐ ˈsɛ.k̟jo.ru ‖ ˈa.men/
</poem>
{{Col-end}}
{{Col-begin|80%}}
{{col-n|2}}
<poem>
* '''Narrow transcription'''
[ˈfa.ðɐr ˈũ.sɐr | ˈθu eˈme.no
ˈvi.ðɐ lɐ.tɐ.n‿ˈnam.no ˈθi.no
lɐ θjuˌða.nɐˈɡar.dɐ ˈθi.nɐ ˈkᶣe.miθ
lo veʎˈʎa.no ˈθi.no ˈtɔ.d͡ʒɐθ
zvɐ.zve eˈme.no e.ð‿ɐ.nɐ ˈɛr.θɐ
il ˈk̟jɛ.ɸu kʷo.θiˈdja.nu ˈũ.sɐr d͡ʒeˈβa ũ.se ˈɔd.d͡ʒi
e.ð‿ɐ.ɸjeˈta lɐs ˈũ.sɐ.rɐs ˈk̠ol.pɐs
zvɐ.zve ɐ.ɸjeˈtja.mo.θ‿θos ˈi | k̠olˈpɐn.do ũ.sis
e non leˈta.re ũ.se in ten.tɐtˈt͡sjo.ne
ɐ.f‿frjeˈɔ ũ.se da.m‿ˈma.la
fɔr θux ist θjuˌða.nɐˈɡar.da
e la ˈfɔr.t͡sa | la ˈvol.θa
fɔr ˈsɛ.k̟jɐ ˈsɛ.k̟jo.ru ‖ ˈa.men]
</poem>
{{col-n|2}}
<poem>
* '''Orthographic version in English'''
Our Father, who art in heaven,
Hallowed be thy name.
Thy kingdom come,
Thy will be done on earth,
as it is in heaven.
Give us this day our daily bread.
And forgive us our debts,
as we forgive our debtors.
And lead us not into temptation,
but deliver us from evil:
For thine is the kingdom,
and the power, and the glory,
forever. Amen.
</poem>
{{Col-end}}
==See also==
* [[w:Tuscan gorgia|Tuscan gorgia]]
* [[w:Geats|Geats]]
* [[w:Gutes|Gutes]]
* [[w:Gutones|Gutones]]
* [[w:List of Germanic languages|List of Germanic languages]]
* [[w:Romance languages|Romance languages]]
* [[w:Modern Gutnish|Modern Gutnish]]
* [[w:Name of the Goths|Name of the Goths]]
* [[w:Old Gutnish|Old Gutnish]]
* [[w:Grimm's law|Grimm’s law]]
* [[w:Verner's law|Verner’s law]]
* [[w:Thurneysen's law|Thurneysen’s law]]
* [[w:Runic inscriptions|Runic epigraphy]]
* [[w:Old Latin#Corpus|Latin epigraphy]]
* [[w:Gothic runic inscriptions|Gothic runic inscriptions]]
* [[w:Gothic Bible|Gothic Bible]]
==Bibliography==
* Tagliavini, Carlo (1948). ''Le origini delle lingue Neolatine: corso introduttivo di filologia romanza''. Bologna: Pàtron.
* Haller, Hermann W. (1999). ''The other Italy: the literary canon in dialect''. Toronto: University of Toronto Press.
* Renzi, Lorenzo (1994). ''Nuova introduzione alla filologia romanza''. Bologna: Il Mulino.
* Koryakov, Y. B. (2001). ''Atlas of Romance languages''. Moscow: Moscow State University.
* Mallory, J.P.; Douglas Q. Adams (1997). ''Encyclopedia of Indo-European Culture''. London: Fitzroy Dearborn Publishers.
* Klein, Jared; Joseph, Brian; Fritz, Matthias; Wenthe, Mark (2017). ''Handbook of Comparative and Historical Indo-European Linguistics (Vol. 1)''. Berlin: De Gruyer.
* Klein, Jared; Joseph, Brian; Fritz, Matthias; Wenthe, Mark (2017). ''Handbook of Comparative and Historical Indo-European Linguistics (Vol. 2)''. Berlin: De Gruyer.
* Klein, Jared; Joseph, Brian; Fritz, Matthias; Wenthe, Mark (2018). ''Handbook of Comparative and Historical Indo-European Linguistics (Vol. 3)''. Berlin: De Gruyer.
* Pokorny, Julius (1959). Indogermanisches etymologisches Wörterbuch [Indo-European Etymological Dictionary] (in German), volume 2, Bern, München: Francke Verlag.
* Ringe, Donald A. (2006). ''From Proto-Indo-European to Proto-Germanic''. Linguistic history of English, v. 1. Oxford: Oxford University Press.
* Kroonen, Guus (2013). ''Etymological Dictionary of Proto-Germanic''. Leiden–Boston: Brill.
* Orel, Vladimir (2003). ''A Handbook of Germanic Etymology''. Leiden–Boston: Brill.
* E. Prokosch (1939). ''A Comparative Germanic Grammar''. Connecticut: The Linguistic Society of America for Yale University.
* A. Noreen (1913). ''Geschichte der nordischen Sprachen''. Trübner: Straßburg.
* Crawford, Jackson (2012). ''Old Norse-Icelandic (þú) est and (þú) ert''. Los Angeles: University of California.
* Geir T. Zoëga (1910). ''A Concise Dictionary of Old Icelandic''. Oxford: Clarendon Press.
* Kloekhorst, Alwin (2008). ''Etymological Dictionary of the Hittite Inherited Lexicon''. Leiden–Boston: Brill.
* Puhvel, Jaan (1984). ''Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with A, Volume 1'', Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
* Puhvel, Jaan (1984). ''Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with E and I, Volume 2, Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
* Puhvel, Jaan (1984). ''Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with H, Volume 3'', Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
* Puhvel, Jaan (1984). ''Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with K, Volume 4'', Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
* Puhvel, Jaan (1984). ''Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with L, Volume 5'', Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
* Puhvel, Jaan (1984). ''Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with M, Volume 6'', Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
* Puhvel, Jaan (1984). ''Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with N, Volume 7'', Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
* Puhvel, Jaan (1984). ''Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with PA, Volume 8'', Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
* Puhvel, Jaan (1984). ''Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with PE, PI, PU, Volume 9'', Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
* Puhvel, Jaan (1984). ''Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with SA, Volume 10'', Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
* Puhvel, Jaan (1984). ''Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with SE, SI, SU, Volume 11'', Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
* Jasanoff, Jay (2003). ''Hittite and the Indo-European Verb''. Oxford: Oxford University Press.
* Grekyan, Y. H. (2023). ''By God's Grace: Ancient Anatolian Studies Presented to Aram Kosyan on the Occasion of his 65th Birthday''.
* Adams, Douglas Q. (2013). ''A Dictionary of Tocharian B.: Revised and Greatly Enlarged''. Amsterdam-New York: Rodopi.
* de Vaan, Michiel (2008). ''Etymological Dictionary of Latin and the other Italic Languages''. Leiden–Boston: Brill.
* Schrijver, Peter (1991). ''The Reflexes of the Proto-Indo-European Laryngeals in Latin'', in Leiden Studies in Indo-European, Volume: 2.
* Bennett, William Holmes (1980). ''An Introduction to the Gothic Language''. New York: Modern Language Association of America.
* Wright, Joseph (1910). ''Grammar of the Gothic Language''. Oxford: Clarendon Press.
* Snædal, Magnús (2011). ''"Gothic <ggw>". Studia Linguistica Universitatis Iagellonicae Cracoviensis''. 128: 145–154.
* G. H. Balg (1889): ''A comparative glossary of the Gothic language with especial reference to English and German''. New York: Westermann & Company.
* Lehmann, Winfred P. (1986) ''A GOTHIC ETYMOLOGICAL DICTIONARY, Based on the third edition of Vergleichendes Wörterbuch der Gotischen Sprache by Sigmund Feist'', with Bibliography Prepared Under the Direction of H.-J.J. Hewitt, BRILL.
* Ebbinghaus, E. A. (1976). ''THE FIRST ENTRY OF THE GOTHIC CALENDAR. The Journal of Theological Studies, 27(1), 140–145''. Oxford: Oxford University Press.
* Voyles, Joseph B. (1992). ''Early Germanic Grammar''. San Diego: Academic Press.
* Fulk, R. D. (2018). ''A Comparative Grammar of Early Germanic Languages''. Amsterdam/Philadelphia: John Benjamins Publishing Company.
* Stearns Jr, MacDonald (1978). ''Crimean Gothic: Analysis and Etymology of the Corpus''. Stanford: Anma Libri.
* Sihler, Andrew L. (1995). ''New Comparative Grammar of Greek and Latin''. Oxford: Oxford University Press.
* Allen, William Sidney (1978) [1965]. ''Vox Latina: A Guide to the Pronunciation of Classical Latin (2nd ed.)''. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
* Allen, William Sidney (1987). ''Vox Graeca: The Pronunciation of Classical Greek.'' Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
* Holt, D. Eric (2016). ''From Latin to Portuguese: Main Phonological Changes''. John Wiley & Sons, Ltd.
* Grandgent, C. H. (1927). ''From Latin to Italian: An Historical Outline of the Phonology and Morphology of the Italian Language''. Harvard: Harvard University Press.
* Grandgent, C. H. (1907). ''An introduction to Vulgar Latin''. Boston: D.C. Heath & Co.
* Alkire, Ti; Rosen, Carol (2010). ''Romance Languages: A Historical Introduction''. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
* Ferguson, Thaddeus (1976). ''A history of the Romance vowel systems through paradigmatic reconstruction''. Berlin: De Gruyter.
* Calabrese, Andrea (2005). ''On the Feature [ATR] and the Evolution of the Short High Vowels of Latin into Romance''. Connecticut: University of Connecticut
* Calabrese, Andrea (1998). ''Some remarks on the Latin case system and its development in Romance'', in J. Lema & E. Trevino, (eds.), ''Theoretical Advances on Romance Languages''. Amsterdam: John Benjamins.
* Calabrese, Andrea (1999). ''Metaphony Revisited''. In ''Rivista di Linguistica''.
* Calabrese, Andrea (2011). ''Metaphony in Romance''. In C. Ewen; M. & Oostendorp; B. Hume (eds.). ''The Blackwell Companion to Phonology''. Wiley-Blackwell.
* Batllori, Montserrat & Roca, Francesc (2011). ''Grammaticalization of ser and estar in romance''. Oxford: Oxford Scholarship Online.
* Bruckner, Wilhelm (1895). ''Die Sprache der Langobarden. Quellen und Forschungen zur Sprach- und Culturgeschichte der germanischen Völker''. Vol. LXXV. Strassburg: Trübner.
* Gamillscheg, Ernst (2017) [First published 1935]. ''Die Ostgoten. Die Langobarden. Die altgermanischen Bestandteile des Ostromanischen. Altgermanisches im Alpenromanischen''. Romania Germanica. Vol. 2. Berlin: De Gruyter.
* Guitel, Geneviève (1975). ''Histoire comparée des numérations écrites''. Paris: Flammarion.
* Gvozdanović, Jadranka (1991). ''Indo-European Numerals''. Berlin: De Gruyter.
* Hoff, Erika (2009). ''Language development''. Boston, MA: Wadsworth/Cengage Learning.
* Goebl, H., ed. (1984). ''Dialectology. Quantitative Linguistics, Vol. 21''. Bochum: Brockmeyer.
* Crystal, David (2008). ''A Dictionary of Linguistics and Phonetics''. Wales: Bangor.
* Hockett, Charles F. (1958). ''A Course in Modern Linguistics''. New York: Macmillan.
* Stewart, William A. (1968). ''A sociolinguistic typology for describing national multilingualism''. In Fishman, Joshua A. (ed.). ''Readings in the Sociology of Language''. Berlin: De Gruyter.
* Danilevitch, Olga (2019). ''Logical Semantics Approach for Data Modeling in XBRL Taxonomies''. Minsk: Belarusian State Economic University.
* Pellegrino, F.; Coupé, C.; Marsico, E. (2011). ''Across-language perspective on speech information rate''. Paris: French National Centre for Scientific Research.
* Gumperz, John J.; Cook-Gumperz, Jenny (2008). ''Studying language, culture, and society: Sociolinguistics or linguistic anthropology?''. Journal of Sociolinguistics.
* Stewart, William A (1968). ''A Sociolinguistic Typology for Describing National Multilingualism''. In Fishman, Joshua A (ed.), ''Readings in the Sociology of Language''. The Hague, Paris: Mouton.
* Treffers-Daller, J. (2009). Bullock, Barbara E; Toribio, Almeida Jacqueline (eds.). ''Code-switching and transfer: An exploration of similarities and differences''. The Cambridge Handbook of Linguistic Code-switching. Cambridge: Cambrigde University Press.
* Carlson, Neil; et al. (2010). ''Psychology the Science of Behavior''. Pearson Canada, United States of America.
* Nair, RD; Lincoln, NB (2007). Lincoln, Nadina (ed.). ''Cognitive rehabilitation for memory deficits following stroke''. The Cochrane Database of Systematic Reviews.
* Brotle, Charles D. (2011). ''The role of mnemonic acronyms in clinical emergency medicine: A grounded theory study'' (EdD thesis).
* O'Grady, William; Dobrovolsky, Michael; Katamba, Francis (1996). ''Contemporary Linguistics: An Introduction''. Harlow, Essex: Longman.
* Lass, Roger (1998). Phonology: ''An Introduction to Basic Concepts''. Cambridge, UK; New York; Melbourne, Australia: Cambridge University Press.
* Trask, Robert Lawrence (2007). ''Language and Linguistics: The Key Concepts''. Taylor & Francis.
* McGregor, William B. (2015). ''Linguistics: An Introduction (2nd ed.)''. London: Bloomsbury Academic.
* Arndt, Walter W. (1959). ''The performance of glottochronology in Germanic''. Language, 35, 180–192.
* Bergsland, Knut; & Vogt, Hans. (1962). ''On the validity of glottochronology''. Current Anthropology, 3, 115–153.
* Sheila Embleton (1992). ''Historical Linguistics: Mathematical concepts''. In W. Bright (Ed.), ''International Encyclopedia of Linguistics''.
* Swadesh, Morris (Oct 1950). ''Salish Internal Relations''. I''nternational Journal of American Linguistics''. 16: 157–167.
* Ottenheimer, Harriet Joseph (2006). ''The Anthropology of Language''. Belmont, CA: Wadsworth, Cengage Learning.
== External links ==
* [https://www.wulfila.be/gothic/browse Wulfila Bible (full text)]
* [https://www.gotica.de/ Gotica (Gothic) (small fragments)]
* [https://www.thelatinlibrary.com/ The latin library], ancient Latin books and writings (without translations) ordered by author
* [https://www.penelope.uchicago.edu/Thayer/E/Roman/Texts/ LacusCurtius], a small collection of Greek and Roman authors along with their books and writings (original texts are in Latin and Greek, translations in English and occasionally in a few other languages are available)
* [https://www.arild-hauge.com/arild-hauge/eu-rune-pietroassa.gif Eu Rune Pietroassa]
==Conlang status==
{{Classmeter
|Name = Luthic
|NativeName = Lûthica
|Type = Fusional
|Alignment = Nominative–accusative
|adjective = mixed
|adposition = mixed
|adverb= mixed
|article= initial
|relativeclause = mixed
|nounclause = mixed
|order = SVO
|Tonal = No
|Declined = Yes
|Conjugated = Yes
|Genders = 3
|NCase = yes
|NNumber = yes
|NDefiniteness = no
|NGender = yes
|VVoice = yes
|VMood = yes
|VPerson = yes
|VNumber = yes
|VTense = no
|VAspect = yes
|Phonology=100
|NounCases=100
|NounDef=100
|NounNumbers=100
|NounGender=100
|VerbPerson=100
|VerbNumber=100
|VerbAspect=100
|VerbTense=100
|VerbMood=100
|VerbVoice=100
|AdjCase=100
|AdjNumber=100
|AdjDef=100
|AdjGen=100
|AdjComparative=100
|AdjSuperlative=100
|AdjGen=100
|Supine=100
|Gerund=100
|Participle=100
|Infinitive=100
|Modality=100
|Words=0}}
* '''<big>Ongoing projects:</big>'''
** Etymological Leipzig-Jakarta;
** Paulistan Luthic.
[[Category: Indo-European_languages]]
[[Category: Italic languages]]
[[Category: Romance]]
[[Category: Germanic languages]]
[[Category: Stem-Germanic]]
[[Category: East Germanic languages]]
[[Category: Luthic language]]
[[Category: Languages]]
[[Category: Nominative-accusative languages]]
[[Category: Artlangs]]
[[Category: Conlangs]]
[[Category: A_posteriori]]
[[Category: Fusional languages]]

Latest revision as of 19:12, 7 November 2024


Luthic
Lûthica
Lutho-Ravennese Flag.png
Flag of the Luthic-speaking Ravenna
Pronunciation[ˈlu.ti.xɐ]
Created byLëtzelúcia
Date2023
SettingAlternative history Italy
Native toRavenna; Ferrara and Bologna
EthnicityLuths
Native speakers149,500 (2020)
Indo-European
Early forms
Proto-Luthic
  • Gothic Luthic
    • Mediaeval Luthic
      • Late Mediaeval Luthic
Standard form
Standard Ravennese Luthic (Lûthica)
Dialects
  • Upper Luthic (Altalûthica), Ferraresi Luthic (Lûthica Estense)
  • Standard Bolognese Luthic (Lûthica Bolognesa)
  • Paulistan Luthic (Lûthica Paülista)
Official status
Recognised minority
language in
Italy (recognised by the Luthic Community of Ravenna)
Brazil (recognised in São Paulo)
Regulated byCouncil for the Luthic Language
Spoken Luthic status.png
The areas where Luthic (red and orange) is spoken.
This article contains IPA phonetic symbols. Without proper rendering support, you may see question marks, boxes, or other symbols instead of Unicode characters. For an introductory guide on IPA symbols, see Help:IPA.

Luthic (/ˈluːθ.ɪk/ LOOTH-ik, less often /ˈlʌθ.ɪk/ LUTH-ik, also Luthish; endonym: Lûthica [ˈlu.ti.xɐ] or Rasda Lûthica [ˈraz.dɐ ˈlu.ti.xɐ]) is an Italic language that is spoken by the Luths, with strong East Germanic influence. Unlike other Romance languages, such as Portuguese, Spanish, Catalan, Occitan and French, Luthic has a large inherited vocabulary from East Germanic, instead of only proper names that survived in historical accounts, and loanwords. About 250,000 people speak Luthic worldwide.

Luthic is the result of a prolonged contact among members of both regions after the Gothic raids towards the Roman Empire began, together with the later West Germanic merchants’ travels to and from the Western Roman Empire. These connections, the interactions between the Papal States and the conquest by the Germanic dynasties of the Roman Empire slowly formed a creole as a lingua franca for mutual communication.

As a standard form of the Gotho-Romance language, Luthic has similarities with other Italo-Dalmatian languages, Western Romance languages and Sardinian. The status of Luthic as the regional language of Ravenna and the existence there of a regulatory body have removed Luthic, at least in part, from the domain of Standard Italian, its traditional Dachsprache. It is also related to the Florentine dialect spoken by the Italians in the Italian city of Florence and its immediate surroundings.

Luthic is an inflected fusional language, with four cases for nouns, pronouns, and adjectives (nominative, accusative, genitive, dative); three genders (masculine, feminine, neuter); and two numbers (singular, plural).

Classification

Chart of Romance languages based on structural and comparative criteria, not on socio-functional ones. FP: Franco-Provençal, IR: Istro-Romanian.

Luthic is an Indo-European language that belongs to the Gotho-Romance group of the Italic languages, however Luthic has great Germanic influence; where the Germanic languages are traditionally subdivided into three branches: North Germanic, East Germanic, and West Germanic. The first of these branches survives in modern Danish, Swedish, Norwegian, Elfdalian, Faroese, and Icelandic, all of which are descended from Old Norse. The East Germanic languages are now extinct, and Gothic is the only language in this branch which survives in written texts; Luthic is the only surviving Indo-European language with extensive East Germanic derived vocabulary. The West Germanic languages, however, have undergone extensive dialectal subdivision and are now represented in modern languages such as English, German, Dutch, Yiddish, Afrikaans, and others.

Anglic languages
  Scots
within the Anglo-Frisian languages, which also include within the North Sea Germanic languages, which also include
  Low German/Saxon;
within the West Germanic languages, which also include
  Dutch in Europe and Afrikaans in Africa
...... German (High):
  Upper
...... Yiddish;
within the East Germanic languages, which also include
  Luthic

Among the Romance languages, its classification has always been controversial, for example, it is one of the Italo-Dalmatian languages and most closely related to Istriot on the one hand and Tuscan-Italian on the other. Some authors include it among the Gallo-Italic languages, and according to others, it is not related to either one. Although both Ethnologue and Glottolog group Luthic into a new language group, the Gotho-Romance (opere citato) family.

Although the language region is surrounded by Gallo-Italic languages, Luthic does not share some traits with these immediate neighbours. For example, Luthic did not fully undergo vowel nasalisation, as vowels are only nasalised preceding a geminate nasal consonant, also lacking vowel fronting, as u /u/ tends to evolve as ü /y/, as in French and Occitan, and it preserved its final syllables. Some traits are further afield in Rhaeto-Romance languages. Modern Luthic is not a close relative of the extinct East Germanic languages, but some may still classify it as an East Germanic language, which is highly debated and enjoys the least academic favour.

Luthic has been influenced by Italian, Frankish, Gothic and Langobardic since its first attestation, the great influence of these languages on the vocabulary and grammar of Modern Luthic is widely acknowledged. Most specialists in language contact do consider Luthic to be a true mixed language. Luthic is classified as a Romance language because it shares innovations with other Romance languages such as Italian, French and Spanish.

East Germanic cognates
Biblical Gothic Crimean Gothic¹ Luthic English
𐌰𐌷𐍄𐌰𐌿 (ahtau) /ˈax.tɔː/ athe /ˈa.te/ attau [ˈat.tɔ] eight
𐌱𐌰𐌿𐍂 (baur) /bɔr/
𐌱𐌰𐍂𐌽 (barn) /barn/
baar /bar/
*ba(a)rn /barn/?
baure [ˈbɔ.re]
barno [ˈbar.no]
child
𐌱𐍂𐍉𐌸𐌰𐍂 (brōþar) /ˈbroː.θar/ bruder /'bru.der/ broþar [ˈbro.θɐr] brother
𐍅𐌰𐌹𐍂 (wair) /wɛr/ fers /fers/ vaere [ˈvɛ.re] were- (as in werewolf)
𐌷𐌰𐌽𐌳𐌿𐍃 (handus) /ˈhan.dus/ handa /ˈan.da/ handu [ˈan.du] (archaic, dialectal or obsolete) hand
𐌷𐌰𐌿𐌱𐌹𐌸 (haubiþ) /ˈhɔː.βiθ/ hoef (for *hoeft) /oft/ hauveþo [ˈɔ.βe.θo] (archaic, dialectal or obsolete) head
𐌵𐌹𐌼𐌰𐌽 (qiman) /ˈkʷi.man/ kommen /'ko.men/ qemare [kᶣeˈma.re] to come
𐌷𐌻𐌰𐌷𐌾𐌰𐌽 (hlahjan) /'hlax.jan/ lachen /'la.xen/ (/'la.ɣen/?) chiaire [ˈkjaj.re] to laugh
𐌰𐌿𐌲𐍉 (augō) /ˈɔː.ɣoː/ oeghene /ˈo.ɣe.ne/ augnio [ˈɔɲ.ɲo] eye
¹ Discussions cover the different versions of Busbecq’s report, including scribal emendation and errors in printing and subsequent corrections. It seems that Busbecq’s understanding and documentation of Crimean Gothic were influenced by his Flemish background and possibly by German. He obtained his information from a Crimean Greek source who was knowledgeable in Crimean Gothic. The individual from Crimea who supplied the language information was either originally Greek or fluent in Crimean Gothic but more proficient in Greek than their own native language. In both cases, it’s likely that the pronunciation of Crimean Gothic words was influenced to some extent by the phonetics of the Greek language spoken in that area and time.

History

The Luthic philologist Aþalphonsu Silva divided the history of Luthic into a period from 500 AD to 1740 to be “Mediaeval Luthic”, which he subdivided into “Gothic Luthic” (500–1100), “Mediaeval Luthic” (1100–1600) and “late Mediaeval Luthic” (1600–1740).

An additional period was later created by Lucia Giamane, from c. 325 AD to 500 AD to be called “Proto-Luthic”, which she believes to be an Vulgar Latin ethnolect, spoken by the early Goths during its period of co-existence with the Roman Empire, no written records from such an early period survive, and if any ever existed, it was fully lost during the Gothic War (376–382) and during the Sack of Rome (410). Proto-Luthic ultimately is the result of the Romano-Germanic culture.

Europe in 305 AD

The term Romano-Germanic describes the conflation of Roman culture with that of various Germanic peoples in areas successively ruled by the Roman Empire and Germanic “barbarian monarchies”. These include the kingdoms of the Visigoths (in Hispania and Gallia Narbonensis), the Ostrogoths (in Italia, Sicilia, Raetia, Noricum, Pannonia, Dalmatia and Dacia), the Anglo-Saxon kingdoms in Sub-Roman Britain, and finally the Franks who established the nucleus of the later “Holy Roman Empire” in Gallia Aquitania, Gallia Lugdunensis, Gallia Belgica, Germania Superior and Inferior, and parts of the previously unconquered Germania Magna. Additionally, minor Germanic tribes – the Vandals, the Suebi, the Burgundians, the Alemanni, and later the Lombards − also established their kingdoms in Roman territory in the West.

Romano-Germanic cultural contact begins as early as the first Roman accounts of the Germanic peoples. Roman influence is perceptible beyond the boundaries of the empire, in the Northern European Roman Iron Age of the first centuries AD. The nature of this cultural contact changes with the decline of the Roman Empire and the beginning Migration period in the wake of the crisis of the third century: the “barbarian” peoples of Germania Magna formerly known as mercenaries and traders now came as invaders and eventually as a new ruling elite, even in Italy itself, beginning with Odoacer’s rise to the rank of Dux Italiae in 476 AD.

The cultural syncretism was most pronounced in Francia. In West Francia, the nucleus of what was to become France, the Frankish language was eventually extinct, but not without leaving significant traces in the emerging Romance language. In East Francia on the other hand, the nucleus of what was to become the kingdom of Germany and ultimately German-speaking Europe, the syncretism was less pronounced since only its southernmost portion had ever been part of the Roman Empire, as Germania Superior: all territories on the right hand side of the Rhine remain Germanic-speaking. Those parts of the Germanic sphere extends along the left of the Rhine, including the Swiss plateau, the Alsace, the Rhineland and Flanders, are the parts where Romano-Germanic cultural contact remains most evident.

Early Germanic law reflects the coexistence of Roman and Germanic cultures during the Migration period in applying separate laws to Roman and Germanic individuals, notably the Lex Romana Visigothorum (506), the Lex Romana Curiensis and the Lex Romana Burgundionum. The separate cultures amalgamated after Christianisation, and by the Carolingian period the distinction of Roman vs. Germanic subjects had been replaced by the feudal system of the Three Estates of the Realm.

With a renewed close attention to the history and literature of ancient Rome in the 12th century, the mediaeval aristocracy saw itself mirrored in the accounts of ancient Roman nobility. Some made doubtful claims to direct descent from Roman aristocracy. In the 19th century, German, Luth and French mediaevalists worried about the origins of the great mediaeval families. Did the great families descend from the aristocracy of the Roman Empire or from the barbarian chieftains who invaded the Roman Empire between 400 and 600? Did the families originate in the Latin or Germanic world? Both, it seems. Mediaeval Western Europe was an amalgam of Roman and ‘Barbarian’ bloodlines. The cultural and genetic influence of the Visigoths, Franks, et al. is readily apparent in the socio-cultural and political framework of Mediaeval Europe. In spite of this, the legacy of Rome, both social-cultural and genetic pervaded every aspect of Mediaeval society – this was of course greatly assisted by the mediaeval Church.

The initial trouble for the later Roman Empire came from East Germanic speakers, with various tribal groups such as the Vandals and Burgundians traversing Europe. However, it was the Goths who notably contributed to the linguistic record of the East Germanic languages. Originating from the lower Vistula, they migrated to present-day Ukraine. Later, facing pressure from the Huns, they moved into the Balkans and eventually into Western Europe. Among them, the Visigoths settled in Spain, shaping its post-Roman state, while the Ostrogoths became custodians of the last Roman emperors in Italy. By the eighth century, linguistic assimilation into Romance-speaking populations had largely absorbed the Goths of Spain and Italy. Ulfilas, a prominent Christian missionary and later bishop of the Visigoths, translated the Bible into Gothic while they resided in the northeast Balkans, providing a significant linguistic record of Gothic and East Germanic. A small group of Ostrogoths left in Crimea resurfaced in the sixteenth century through a wordlist compiled by Ogier de Busbecq, the Holy Roman Emperor’s ambassador to the Sublime Porte. However, these Crimean Gothic speakers disappeared linguistically shortly after Busbecq documented their vocabulary.

Gothic Luthic

The earliest varieties of a Luthic language, collectively known as Gothic Luthic or “Gotho-Luthic”, evolved from the contact of Latin dialects and East Germanic languages. A considerable amount of East Germanic vocabulary was incorporated into Luthic over some five centuries. Approximately 1,200 uncompounded Luthic words are derived from Gothic and ultimately from Proto-Indo-European. Of these 1,200, 700 are nouns, 300 are verbs and 200 are adjectives. Luthic has also absorbed many loanwords, most of which were borrowed from West Germanic languages of the Early Middle Ages.

Only a few documents in Gothic Luthic have survived – not enough for a complete reconstruction of the language. Most Gothic Luthic-language sources are translations or glosses of other languages (namely, Greek and Latin), so foreign linguistic elements most certainly influenced the texts. Nevertheless, Gothic Luthic was probably very close to Gothic (it is known primarily from the Codex Argenteus, a 6th-century copy of a 4th-century Bible translation, and is the only East Germanic language with a sizeable text corpus). These are the primary sources:

  • Codex Luthicus (Ravenna), two parts: 87 leaves
It contains scattered passages from the New Testament (including parts of the gospels and the Epistles), from the Old Testament (Nehemiah), and some commentaries. The text likely had been somewhat modified by copyists. It was written using the Gothic alphabet, an alphabet used for writing the Gothic language. It was developed in the 4th century AD by Ulfilas (or *𐍅𐌿𐌻𐍆𐌹𐌻𐌰 (Wulfila)), a Gothic preacher of Cappadocian Greek descent, for the purpose of translating the Bible.
Detail of the Codex Luthicus, the word Luþiks is attested, referring to the Luths
  • Codex Ravennas (Ravenna), four parts: 140 leaves
A civil code enacted under Theodoric the Great. The code covered the Ostrogothic Kingdom of Italy, but mainly Ravenna, as Theodoric devoted most of his architectural attention to his capital, Ravenna. Codex Ravennas was also written using the Gothic alphabet. The text likely had been somewhat modified by copyists. Together with four leaves, fragments of Romans 11–15 (a Luthic–Latin diglot).

Mediaeval Luthic

The first sentence is:Luthica unsara rasda ist, e scolamos defendere unsarǫ raihtǫ di usare la rasda fremente, l’italiano nogca sarat l’unsara rasda fragca, car gli italiani non unse rispetanno.
English: “Luthic is our language, and we must defend our right to use it freely, Italian will never be our language, as the Italians don’t respect us”

In the mediaeval period, Luthic emerged as a separate language from Latin and Gothic. The main written language was Latin, and the few Luthic-language texts preserved from this period are written in the Latin alphabet. From the 7th to the 16th centuries, Mediaeval Luthic gradually transformed through language contact with Old Italian, Langobardic and Frankish. During the Carolingian Empire (773–774), Charles conquered the Lombards and thus included northern Italy in his sphere of influence. He renewed the Vatican donation and the promise to the papacy of continued Frankish protection. Frankish was very strong, until Louis’ eldest surviving son Lothair I became Emperor in name but de facto only the ruler of the Middle Frankish Kingdom.

After the fall of Middle Francia and the rise of Holy Roman Empire, Louis II conquered Bari in 871 led to poor relations with the Eastern Roman Empire, which led to a lesser degree of the Greek influence present in Luthic. At this time, Luthic eventually dropped the Gothic alphabet and adopted the Latin alphabet, that still lacked some letters present in the Gothic script, such as ⟨j⟩ and ⟨w⟩, and there was no ⟨v⟩ as distinct from ⟨u⟩. Through the 810s, Luthic eventually borrowed ⟨þ⟩ into its orthography, displacing ⟨θ⟩ and ⟨ψ⟩, that were used in free variation to represent the voiceless dental fricative /θ/, in fact, the modern Luthic orthography still lacks ⟨j⟩, ⟨k⟩ and ⟨w⟩ for those reasons, in some manuscripts, ⟨y⟩ is found representing the voiced labiodental fricative /v/ and the voiced bilabial fricative /β/, probably influenced by the Gothic letter ⟨𐍅⟩.

Late Mediaeval Luthic

Fraugiani e Narri hanno rasda fre.
“Lords and jesters have free speech.”

Giuseppe il Lûthicu, proverbs

Following the first Bible translation, the development of Luthic as a written language, as a language of religion, administration, and public discourse accelerated. In the second half of the 17th century, grammarians elaborated grammars of Luthic, first among them Þiudareicu Biagci’s 1657 Latin grammar De studio linguæ luthicæ. Late Mediaevel Luthic saw significant changes to its vocabulary, grammar, pronunciation and orthography. An eventual form of written Standard Luthic emerged c. 1730, and a large number of terms for abstract concepts were adopted directly from Mediaeval Latin (as adapted borrowings, rather than via the native form or Italian). What is known as Standard Ravennese Luthic began in the 1750s after the printing and wide distribution of prayer books and other kinds of liturgical books in Luthic, after the works of Þiudareicu and his essays about the Luthic language and its written form.

De Studio Linguæ Luthicæ

De Studio Linguæ Luthicæ, 1657, restored cover at the Luthic Community of Ravenna.

De Studio Linguæ Luthicæ (Luthic: Studia Rasde Lûthice [ˈstu.dja ˈraz.de ˈlu.ti.t͡ʃe]; English: On Study of the Luthic Language) often referred to as simply the Luthicæ (/lʌˈθiˌki, lʌθˈaɪˌki/ lu-THEE-KEE), is a book by Þiudareicu Biagci that expounds Luthic grammar. The Luthicæ is written in Latin (specifically Neo-Latin) and comprises two volumes, it was authorised, imprimatur, by Pope Alexander VII, then head of the Catholic Church on 1956, and was first published on 9 September 1657.

The Luthicæ is considered one of the most importants in the history of Luthic linguistics. In the first book, Þiudareicu discusses the relationship between Latin and the vernacular languages within Italy. His work made new innovations, as it included diglot lemmata, and it was also significant how Þiudareicu approached this theme (a not so common topic at that time), the Luthicæ and the general opinion of Þiudareicu was greatly influenced by Dante Alighieri, as he agreed with Dante, that languages were not something to be considered static, but something that evolves and need historical contextualisation.

Book 1, De grammatica

Book 1, subtitled De grammatica (On grammar) concerns fundamental grammar features present in Luthic and how it changed from Latin, Þiudareicu takes on historical evolution of language, although his opinion was greatly affected by the building of the Tower of Babel, his ideas were not so far off what we know nowadays, however, he classified Uralic languages as Indo-European languages. It opens a collection of examples and Luthic–Latin diglot lemmata.

Book 2, De orthographia

Book 2, subtitled De orthographia (On orthography), is an exposition of the many vernacular orthographies Luthic had, and eventual suggestions for a universal orthography, he took inspiration from rhetorical essays written in Occitan, such as manuals of grammar and writting for troubadour poetry in order to elaborate his orthography, he was also familar with encyclopaedic dictionaries that influenced his work. He also deals with literary genres, and defends that Luthic must be also used as a vernacular for song and verse, in order to displace other vernacular languages, such as Occitan, Sicilian and Italian.

Etymology

The name of the Luths is hugely linked to the name of the Goths, itself one of the most discussed topics in Germanic philology. The autonym is attested as 𐌲𐌿𐍄𐌸𐌹𐌿𐌳𐌰 (gutþiuda) (the status of this word as a Gothic autonym prior to the Ostrogothic period is disputed) on the Gothic calendar (in the Codex Ambrosianus A): þize ana gutþiudai managaize marwtre jah friþareikeikeis. However, on the basis of parallel formations in Germanic (svíþjóð; angelþēod) and non-Germanic (Old Irish cruithen-tuath) indicates that it means “land of the Goths, Gothia”, instead of a more literal translation “Gothpeople”. The first element however may be also the same element attested on the Ring of Pietrossa ᚷᚢᛏᚨᚾᛁ (gutanī). Roman authors of late antiquity did not classify the Goths as Germani. While the Gutones, the Pomeranian precursors of the Goths, and the Vandili, the Silesian ancestors of the Vandals, were still considered part of Tacitean Germania, the later Goths, Vandals, and other East Germanic tribes were differentiated from the Germans and were referred to as Scythians, Goths, or some other special names. The sole exception are the Burgundians, who were considered German because they came to Gaul via Germania. In keeping with this classification, post-Tacitean Scandinavians were also no longer counted among the Germans, even though they were regarded as close relatives. The word for Luthic is first attested as 𐌻𐌿𐌸𐌹𐌺𐍃 (luþiks) on the Codex Luthicus, named after so. The name was probably first recorded via Greco-Roman writers, as *Lūthae, a formation similar to Getae, itself derived from *leuhtą. Ultimately meaning the lighters. 𐌻𐌿𐌸𐌹𐌺𐍃 is probably a corruption *leuhtą, *leuthą, *Lūthae, influenced by gothus, then reborrowed via a Germanic language, where *-th- > -þ-.

Geographical distribution

Ravèna Emilian, Ravêna Romagnol
Ravenna Italian, Ravenna Luthic
Ravenna
Flag of Ravenna
Flag
Motto: “Semper vigil, nunquam dormiens” Latin
“Aeve allerta, nogca dormindo” Luthic
“Always aware, never sleeping”
Location of Ravenna
Location of Ravenna
Location44°24′58″N 12°12′06″E
Official languagesLuthic, Emilian, Romagnol, Italian
Ethnic groupsLuths, Italians
ReligionChristianity
DemonymRavennate, Ravennese
Population
• Estimate
158,784 (1 January 2014)
CurrencyEuro ()
Time zoneCET
Date formatdd.mm.yyyy
Calling code+39-544
Patron saintsSaint Apollinaris
Map of languages and dialect groups of Italy

Luthic is spoken mainly in Emilia-Romagna, Italy, where it is primarily spoken in Ravenna and its adjacent communes. Although Luthic is spoken almost exclusively in Emilia-Romagna, it has also been spoken outside of Italy. Luth and general Italian emigrant communities (the largest of which are to be found in the Americas) sometimes employ Luthic as their primary language. The largest concentrations of Luthic speakers are found in the provinces of Ravenna, Ferrara and Bologna (Metropolitan City of Bologna). The people of Ravenna live in tetraglossia, as Romagnol, Emilian and Italian are spoken in those provinces alongside Luthic.

According to a census by ISTAT (The Italian National Institute of Statistics), Luthic is spoken by an estimated 250,000 people, however only 149,500 are considered de facto natives, and approximately 50,000 are monolinguals.

It is also spoken in South America by the descendants of Italian immigrants, specifically in Brazil, in a census by IBGE in collaboration with ISTAT, Luthic is spoken in São Paulo by roughly 5,000 people and some 45 of whom are monolinguals, the largest concentrations are found in the municipalities of São Paulo and the ABCD Region.

Status and usage

Geographical distribution of Luthic language by official status

As in most European countries, the minority languages are defined by legislation or constitutional documents and afforded some form of official support. In 1992, the Council of Europe adopted the European Charter for Regional or Minority Languages to protect and promote historical regional and minority languages in Europe.

Luthic is regulated by the Council for the Luthic Language (Luthic: Gafaurdu faulla Rasda Lûthica [ɡɐˈɸɔr.du fɔl.lɐ ˈraz.dɐ ˈlu.ti.xɐ]) and the Luthic Community of Ravenna (Luthic: Gamaenescape Lûthica Ravenne [ɡɐˌmɛ.neˈska.ɸe ˈlu.ti.xɐ rɐˈβẽ.ne]). The existence of a regulatory body has removed Luthic, at least in part, from the domain of Standard Italian, its traditional Dachsprache, Luthic was considered an Italian dialect like many others until about World War II, but then it underwent ausbau.

Luthic geographical distribution in the commune of Ravenna

Diglossia and code-switching

Luthic is recognised as a minor language in Ravenna. Italy’s official language is Italian, as stated by the framework law no. 482/1999 and Trentino Alto-Adige’s special Statute, which is adopted with a constitutional law. Around the world there are an estimated 64 million native Italian speakers and another 21 million who use it as a second language. Italian is often natively spoken in a regional variety, not to be confused with Italy’s regional and minority languages; however, the establishment of a national education system led to a decrease in variation in the languages spoken across the country during the 20th century. Standardisation was further expanded in the 1950s and 1960s due to economic growth and the rise of mass media and television (the state broadcaster RAI helped set a standard Italian).

Code-switching between Luthic, Emilian dialects and Italian is frequent among Luthic speakers, in both informal and formal settings (such as on television).

Education

Education in Italy is free and mandatory from ages six to sixteen, and consists of five stages: kindergarten (scuola dell’infanzia), primary school (scuola primaria), lower secondary school (scuola secondaria di primo grado), upper secondary school (scuola secondaria di secondo grado), and university (università). Although mostly in Italian, education is Luthic has been implemented in 2018 by Ravenna University. In 2018, the Italian secondary education was evaluated as below the OECD average. Italy scored below the OECD average in reading and science, and near OECD average in mathematics. Mean performance in Italy declined in reading and science, and remained stable in mathematics. Trento and Bolzano scored at an above the national average in reading. Compared to school children in other OECD countries, children in Italy missed out on a greater amount of learning due to absences and indiscipline in classrooms. A wide gap exists between northern schools, which perform near average, and schools in the South, that had much poorer results. The 2018 Progress in International Reading Literacy Study ranks children in Italy 16th for reading. Compared to school children in other OECD countries, children in Italy missed out on a greater amount of learning due to absences and indiscipline in classrooms.

Most of the Luths also speak Italian, this is commoner for Luth elders, and most of the Luth elders may speak only Italian because of the influence from the Fascist period, as the Fascist government endorsed a stringent education policy in Italy aiming at eliminating illiteracy, which was a serious problem in Italy at the time, as well as improving the allegiance of Italians to the state. The Fascist government’s first minister of education from 1922 to 1924 Giovanni Gentile recommended that education policy should focus on indoctrination of students into Fascism and to educate youth to respect and be obedient to authority. In 1929, education policy took a major step towards being completely taken over by the agenda of indoctrination.> In that year, the Fascist government took control of the authorization of all textbooks, all secondary school teachers were required to take an oath of loyalty to Fascism and children began to be taught that they owed the same loyalty to Fascism as they did to God. In 1933, all university teachers were required to be members of the National Fascist Party. From the 1930s to 1940s, Italy’s education focused on the history of Italy displaying Italy as a force of civilization during the Roman era, displaying the rebirth of Italian nationalism and the struggle for Italian independence and unity during the Risorgimento. In the late 1930s, the Fascist government copied Nazi Germany’s education system on the issue of physical fitness and began an agenda that demanded that Italians become physically healthy. Intellectual talent in Italy was rewarded and promoted by the Fascist government through the Royal Academy of Italy which was created in 1926 to promote and coordinate Italy’s intellectual activity.

Films and music

Most films and songs are in vernacular Italian, Luthic is seldom spoken in television and radio. Some educational shows hosted by the Luthic Community of Ravenna and Ravenna University are often in Standard Luthic. Italian folk music is an important part of the country’ musical heritage, and spans a diverse array of regional styles, instruments and dances. Instrumental and vocal classical music is an iconic part of Italian identity, spanning experimental art music and international fusions to symphonic music and opera. Italian music has been held up in high esteem in history and many pieces of Italian music are considered high art. More than other elements of Italian culture, music is generally eclectic, but unique from other nations’ music. The country’s historical contributions to music are also an important part of national pride. The relatively recent history of Italy includes the development of an opera tradition that has spread throughout the world; prior to the development of Italian identity or a unified Italian state, the Italian peninsula contributed to important innovations in music including the development of musical notation and Gregorian chant.

Similar to the Canzone Napoletana, Le Canzoni Lûthice, sometimes referred to as Luthic songs, became a formal institution in the 1990s as Luthic became more researched by Ravenna University, a generic term for a traditional form of music sung in the Luthic language, ordinarily for male and female voice singing solo. An important factor in defining what makes a Luthic song is the matter of language. All these songs are written and performed in the Luthic language. Although the music is sung by a few non-Luthic singers, it is difficult to sing correctly without knowledge of the Luthic continua, which is crucial in obtaining the correct inflection.

Written media
A panel from the Luthic edition of Batman: Three Jokers

Luthic is mostly found as written media, However newspapers usually use Italian and reserve Luthic for sarcastic commentaries and caricatures. Headlines in Luthic are common. The letter to the editor section often includes entire paragraphs in Luthic. Many newspapers also regularly publish personal columns in Luthic. Most comedies are written in Luthic. Comic books are often written in Luthic instead of Italian. Luthic also has many translated editions of American comic books, specifically the ones published by DC Comics. In novels and short stories, most of the Luth authors, write the dialogues in their Luthic dialects.

Within Luthic poetry, the iambic verse is a very popular choice together with trochaic verses, a very famous Luthic poem, known as Manu ad Amare “ready to love”, by Lucia Giamane, is composed of two iambic quatrains, with a rhyme scheme of ABAB:

Manu ad Amare
Il caldu nattu non ist scaunu...
i meini occhi sondo biendi.
E sei, il ciaelu stâþ lontanu,
ac saeco bene, i astri fedi.

Il varmu dagu tan vicinu
m’aprosto faur þuc, þeini piedi.
La meina Teiva, casta e manu,
sarebbi ic manu faur amardi?

English translation
The cold night is not beautiful...
my eyes are blind.
And yes, the sky is far away,
but I see well, the stars of faith.

The warm day so near
I stand forth you, (and) your feet.
My Goddess, pure and ready
(but) would I be ready to love you?

Poetic translation
Not wonderful is the cold night
with mine eyes blinded.
The sky far away is not a delight,
but I see, the stars of faith, elevated.

So near is the warm light
For thee and thy feet I standed
My chaste Goddess, ready and bright
Would I be ready to love thee prided?


The metric scheme:

il CAL-du NAT-tu NON ist SCAU-nu
1 2-3 4-5 6 7 8-nu
i MEI-ni OC-chi SON-do BIEN-di
1 2-3 4-5 6-7 8-di

e SEI il CIAE-lu STÂÞ lon-TA-nu
1 2 3 4-5 6 7-8-nu
ac SAE-co BE-ne*i AS-tri FE-di
1 2-3 4-5 5 6-7 8-di

il VAR-mu DA-gu TAN vi-CI-nu
1 2-3 4-5 6 7-8-nu
m’a-PROS-to FAUR þuc ÞEI-ni PIE-di
1-2-3 4 5 6-7 8-di

la MEI-na TEI-va CAS-ta*e MA-nu
1 2-3 4-5 6-7 7 8-nu
sa-REB-bi*ic MA-nu FAUR a-MAR-di
1-2 3 4-5 6 7-8-di

* synaloepha

Poetry in Luthic is often governed by decasyllabic verses, but the usage of octosyllabic verses has become commoner in modern and contemporaneous Luthic poetry. Modern Luthic poets often rely on synaloephae for better metrics.

Luthic regarded as an Italian dialect

Luthic is classified as Vulnerable by the UNESCO Atlas of the World's Languages in Danger

Luthic lexicon is discrepant from those of other Romance languages, since most of the words present in Modern Luthic are ultimately of Germanic origin. The lexical differentiation was a big factor for the creation of an independent regulatory body. There were many attempts to assimilate Luthic into the Italian dialect continuum, as in recent centuries, the intermediate dialects between the major Romance languages have been moving toward extinction, as their speakers have switched to varieties closer to the more prestigious national standards. That has been most notable in France, owing to the French government’s refusal to recognise minority languages. For many decades since Italy’s unification, the attitude of the French government towards the ethnolinguistic minorities was copied by the Italian government. A movement called “Italianised Luthic Movement” (Luthic: Movimento Lûthice Italianegiate; Italian: Movimento per il Lutico Italianeggiato) tried to italianase Luthic’s vocabulary and reduce the inherited Germanic vocabulary, in order to assimilate Luthic as an Italian derived language; modern Luthic orthography was affected by this movement.

Almost all of the Romance languages spoken in Italy are native to the area in which they are spoken. Apart from Standard Italian, these languages are often referred to as dialetti “dialects”, both colloquially and in scholarly usage; however, the term may coexist with other labels like “minority languages” or “vernaculars” for some of them. Italian was first declared to be Italy's official language during the Fascist period, more specifically through the R.D.l., adopted on 15 October 1925, with the name of Sull'Obbligo della lingua italiana in tutti gli uffici giudiziari del Regno, salvo le eccezioni stabilite nei trattati internazionali per la città di Fiume. According to UNESCO's Atlas of the World's Languages in Danger, there are 31 endangered languages in Italy.

Standard Luthic

The basis of Standard Luthic was developed by the popular language spoken by the Ravennese people, whose was highly influenced by Gothic, together with other East Germanic substrate, such as Vandalic and Burgundian and other ancient West Germanic languages, mainly Frankish and Langobardic. Standard Luthic orthography was further influenced by Italian. Increasing mobility of the population and the dissemination of the language through mass media such as radio and television are leading to a gradual standardisation towards a “Standard Luthic” through the process of koineization.

Alphabet

Luthic has a shallow orthography, meaning very regular spelling with an almost one-to-one correspondence between letters and sounds. In linguistic terms, the writing system is close to being a phonemic orthography. The most important of the few exceptions are the following (see below for more details):

  • The letter ⟨c⟩ represents the sound /k/ at the end of words and before the letters ⟨a⟩, ⟨o⟩, and ⟨u⟩ but represents the sound /t͡ʃ/ before the letters ⟨e⟩ and ⟨i⟩.
  • The letter ⟨g⟩ represents the sound /ɡ/ at the end of words and before the letters ⟨a⟩, ⟨o⟩, and ⟨u⟩ but represents the sound /d͡ʒ/ before the letters ⟨e⟩ and ⟨i⟩. It also represents the sound /ŋ/ before ⟨c⟩, ⟨q⟩ or ⟨g⟩.
  • The cluster ⟨sc⟩ /sk/ before the letters ⟨e⟩ and ⟨i⟩ represents the sound /ʃ/, geminate if intervocalic.
  • The spellings ⟨ci⟩ and ⟨gi⟩ before another vowel represent only /t͡ʃ/ or /d͡ʒ/ with no /i/ ~ /j/ sound.
    • Unless ⟨c⟩ or ⟨g⟩ precede stressed /i/ (pharmacia /fɐr.mɐˈtʃi.ɐ/ ‘pharmacy’, biologia /bjo.loˈdʒi.ɐ/ ‘biology’), these may be optionally spelt as ⟨cï⟩ and ⟨gï⟩ (pharmacïa, biologïa).
  • The letter ⟨h⟩ is always silent. It is used to form a digraph with ⟨c⟩ or ⟨g⟩ to represent /k/ or /ɡ/ before ⟨e⟩ or ⟨i⟩. It is also used with ⟨p⟩ to represent /ɸ/ and is found in some Greco-Roman words with ⟨t⟩ for /t/ mostly for aesthetics only, however, when spelt as ⟨th⟩, it is never further spirantised to /θ/.
  • The spelling ⟨ch⟩ and ⟨gh⟩ always represent the sounds /k/ and /ɡ/.
  • The spelling ⟨gli⟩ and ⟨gni⟩ represent the palatals /ʎ/ and /ɲ/ retrospectively; always geminate if intervocalic.
    • Like ⟨ci⟩ and ⟨gi⟩, /i/ ~ /j/ are only pronounced if stressed and ⟨glï⟩ and ⟨gnï⟩ may be used instead.
    • If the clusters /ɡl/ and /ɡn/ are needed, they are spelt as ⟨gl⟩ and ⟨gn⟩ retrospectively, which may cause confusion with ⟨gli⟩ and ⟨gni⟩ apocopated forms ⟨gl⟩ and ⟨gn⟩.

The Luthic alphabet is considered to consist of 24 letters; ⟨j, k, w, x, y⟩ are excluded, and often avoided in loanwords, as tassi vs taxi, cenophobo vs xenofobo, geins vs jeans, Giorche vs York, Valsar vs Walsar.

  • The circumflex accent is used over vowels to indicate irregular stress.
    • The digraphs ⟨ae, au, ei⟩ are used to indicate /ɛ ɔ i/ retrospectively; ⟨ae, au, ei⟩ often stand for a stressed vowel.
    • It is important to note that /e/ and /o/ are often lowered to /ɛ/ and /ɔ/ in VCC, and the digraphs are not used in that case.
  • The diaeresis accent is used to distinguish from a digraph or a diphthong.
  • The letter ⟨s⟩ can symbolise voiced or voiceless consonants. ⟨s⟩ symbolises /s/ onset before a vowel, when clustered with a voiceless consonant (⟨p, f, c, q⟩), and when doubled (geminate); it symbolises /z/ when between vowels and when clustered with voiced consonants.
    • Similarly, the letter ⟨z⟩ can symbolise voiced or voiceless consonants. ⟨z⟩ symbolises /t͡s/ onset before a vowel, when clustered with a voiceless consonant (⟨p, f, c, q⟩), and when doubled (geminate); it symbolises /d͡z/ when between vowels (except in -zione suffixed nouns) and when clustered with voiced consonants. However, ⟨zz⟩ stands for both /tt͡s/ and /dd͡z/.
  • The letter ⟨þ⟩ can symbolise voiced or voiceless consonants. ⟨þ⟩ symbolises /θ/ in all cases, except when clustered with a voiced consonant, standing for /ð/.
  • The status of the letter ⟨ð⟩ is debatable, and is one of the main reasons for common misspellings in Luthic, however, it is only used for etymological reasons, or when /ð/ is needed in a position where Gorgia tuscana can not affect /d/ (vide § Lenition). Nevertheless, many writers and scholars just ignore the existence of it.
Letter Name Historical name IPA Diacritics
Standard Luthic Alphabet
A, a a [ˈa] asga [ˈaz.ɡɐ] /ɐ/ or /a/ â
B, b bi [ˈbi] baerca [ˈbɛr.kɐ] /b/ or /β/
C, c ci [ˈt͡ʃi] cauno [ˈk̠ɔ.no] /k/, /t͡ʃ/ or /x/
D, d di [ˈdi] dagu [ˈda.ɣu] /d/ or /ð/
Ð, ð eððe [ˈɛð.ðe] /ð/
E, e e [ˈɛ] aeqqu [ˈɛk.kʷu] /e/ or /ɛ/ ê
F, f effe [ˈɛɸ.ɸe] faeu [ˈfɛ.u] /ɸ/ or /f/
G, g gi [ˈd͡ʒi] geva [ˈd͡ʒe.βɐ] /ɡ/, /d͡ʒ/, /ɣ/ or /ŋ/
H, h acca [ˈak.kɐ] hagliu [ˈaʎ.ʎu]
I, i i [ˈi] eissu [ˈis.su] /i/ or /j/ ï
L, l elle [ˈɛl.le] lagu [ˈla.ɣu] /l/
M, m emme [ˈẽ.me] mannu [ˈmɐ̃.nu] /m/
N, n enne [ˈẽ.ne] nauþu [ˈnɔ.θu] /n/ or /ŋ/
O, o o [ˈɔ] oþalo [oˈθa.lo] /o/ or /ɔ/ ô
P, p pi [ˈpi] paerþa [ˈpɛr.θɐ] /p/ or /ɸ/
Q, q qoppa [ˈkʷɔp.pɐ] qaerþa [ˈkᶣɛr.θɐ] /kʷ/
R, r erre [ɛrˈre] raeða [ˈrɛ.ðɐ] /r/
S, s esse [ɛsˈse] sauila [ˈsɔj.lɐ] /s/ or /z/
T, t ti [ˈti] teivu [ˈti.βu] /t/ or /θ/
Þ, þ eþþe [ˈɛθ.θe] þaurnu [ˈθɔr.nu] /θ/ or /ð/
U, u u [ˈu] uru [ˈu.ru] /u/ or /w/ û, ü
V, v vi [ˈvi] vignia [ˈviɲ.ɲɐ] /β/ or /v/
Z, z zi [ˈt͡si] zetta [ˈt͡sɛt.tɐ] /t͡s/ or /d͡z/
A Luthic computer keyboard layout.

Luthic has geminate, or double, consonants, which are distinguished by length and intensity. Length is distinctive for all consonants except for /d͡z/, /ʎ/ and /ɲ/, which are always geminate when between vowels, and /z/, which is always single. Geminate plosive and affricates are realised as lengthened closures. Geminate fricatives, nasals, and /l/ are realised as lengthened continuants. When triggered by Gorgia Toscana, voiceless fricatives are always constrictive, but voiced fricatives are not very constrictive and often closer to approximants.

Phonology

There is a maximum of 8 oral vowels, 5 nasal vowels, 2 semivowels and 31 consonants; though some varieties of the language have fewer phonemes. Gothic, Frankish, northern Suebi, Langobardic, Lepontic and Cisalpine Gaulish (Roman Gaul) influences were highly absorbed into the local Vulgar Latin dialect. An early form of Luthic was already spoken in the Ostrogothic Kingdom during Theodoric’s reign and by the year 600 Luthic had already become the vernacular of Ravenna. Luthic developed in the region of the former Ostrogothic capital of Ravenna, from Late Latin dialects and Vulgar Latin. As Theodoric emerged as the new ruler of Italy, he upheld a Roman legal administration and scholarly culture while promoting a major building program across Italy, his cultural and architectural attention to Ravenna led to a most conserved dialect, resulting in modern Luthic.

Vowels

Vowel phonemes of Standard Luthic
Front Central Back
oral nasal oral nasal oral nasal
Close i ĩ u ũ
Close-mid e o õ
Open-mid ɛ ɐ ɐ̃ ɔ
Open a
Notes
Oral monophthongs of Standard Luthic
Nasal monophthongs of Standard Luthic

When the mid vowels /ε, ɔ/ precede a nasal, they become close [ẽ] rather than [ε̃] and [õ] rather than [ɔ̃].

  • /i/ is close front unrounded [i]. f1 =337 y f2 =2300; f1 =400 y f2 =2600 hz.
  • /ĩ/ is close front unrounded [ĩ]. f1 =337 y f2 =2300; f1 =400 y f2 =2600 hz.
  • /u/ is close back rounded [u]. f1 =350 y f1 =1185; f1 =400 y f2 =925 hz.
  • /ũ/ is close back rounded [ũ]. f1 =350 y f1 =1185; f1 =400 y f2 =925 hz.
  • /e/ is close-mid front unrounded [e]. f1 =475 hz y f2 =1700 hz.
  • /ẽ/ is close-mid front unrounded [ẽ]. f1 =475 hz y f2 =1700 hz.
  • /o/ is close-mid back rounded [o]. f1 =490 y f2 =1015; f1 =500 y f2=1075.
  • /õ/ is close-mid back rounded [õ]. f1 =490 y f2 =1015; f1 =500 y f2=1075.
  • /ɛ/ has been variously described as mid front unrounded [ɛ̝] and open-mid front unrounded [ɛ]. f1 =700 hz y f2 =1800 hz.
  • /ɔ/ is somewhat fronted open-mid back rounded [ɔ̟]. f1 =555 hz y f2 =1100; f1 =600 hz y f2 =1100 hz.
  • /ɐ/ is near-open central unrounded [ɐ]. f1 =700 y f2 =1300 hz; f1 =715 hz y f2 =1400 hz.
  • /ɐ̃/ is near-open central unrounded [ɐ̃]. f1 =700 y f2 =1300 hz; f1 =715 hz y f2 =1400 hz.
  • /a/ has been variously described as open front unrounded [a] and open central unrounded [ä]. f1 =700 y f2 =1350 hz; f1 =750 y f2 =1500 hz.

It has been registered that word-final /i, u/ are raised and end in a voiceless vowel: [ii̥, uu̥]. The voiceless vowels may sound almost like [ç] and [x] retrospectively, mainly around Lugo, it is also transcribed as [ii̥ᶜ̧, uu̥ˣ] or [iᶜ̧, uˣ]. In the same region, it is common to have interconsonantal laxed variants [i̽, u̽] and these laxed forms often have a schwa-like off-glide [i̽ə̯, u̽ə̯], that is further described as an extra short schwa-like off-glide [ə̯̆] ([i̽ə̯̆, u̽ə̯̆] or [i̽ᵊ, u̽ᵊ]). The status of [ɛ] and [ɔ] is up to debate, and it is often believed that the long vowel phonemes that were present in Gothic resulted in schwa-glides [ɛə̯̆, ɔə̯̆], or further fortified to a quasi-diphthong [ɛæ̯̆, ɔɒ̯̆] (henceforth only written ⟨[ɛ, ɔ]⟩ due to its questionable nature and for simplicity).

Diphthongs and triphthongs

Diphthongs
Endpoint
/j/ /w/
Start point /a/ aj aw
/ɐ/ ɐj ɐw
/ɛ/ ɛj ɛw
/e/ ej ew
/i/ iw
/ɔ/ ɔj
/o/ oj ow
/u/ uj
Triphthongs
Endpoint
/j/ /o/
Start point /j/ jɐj jɛj jɔj jwo
/w/ wɐj wɛj wɔj
Notes

It has also been registered that vowels may be rounded before /w/: [y, u, ø, o, œ, ɐ͗, ɔ, a͗], resulting in further lowered and retracted rounded vowels [ʏ, u̞, ø̞̈, o̞, æ̹̈, ɔ, ɒ, ɒ]. This mainly occurs where other Gallo-Italic languages are more predominant, such as Lombard and Piedmontese.

Consonants

Consonant phonemes of Standard Luthic
Labial Dental/
Alveolar
Postalveolar Palatal Velar
plain labialized
Nasal m n ɲ ŋ (ŋʷ)
Plosive voiceless p t k
voiced b d ɡ ɡʷ
Fricative voiceless ɸ (f) s θ ʃ (x)
voiced β (v) z ð (ɣ)
Affricate voiceless t͡s t͡ʃ
voiceless d͡z d͡ʒ
Approximant semivowel j w
lateral l ʎ
Trill r
Notes
  • Nasals:
    • /n/ is laminal alveolar [n̻].
    • /ɲ/ is alveolo-palatal, always geminate when intervocalic.
    • /ŋ/ has a labio-velar allophone [ŋʷ] before labio-velar plosives.
    • /ŋ/ is pre-velar [ŋ˖] before [k̟, ɡ̟].
    • /ŋ/ is post-velar [ŋ˗] before [k̠, ɡ˗], it may also be described as an uvular [ɴ].
  • Fricatives:
    • /ɸ/ and /β/ are bilabial.
    • [f] and [v] are labiodental and only happens as an allophone of /ɸ/ and /β/ word-initially and postconsonantal.
    • /θ/ and /ð/ are laminal dentialveolar.
    • /s/ and /z/ are laminal alveolar [s̻, z̻].
    • /ʃ/ is strongly labialised palato-alveolar [ʃʷ].
    • /x/ and /ɣ/ are velar, and only found when triggered by Gorgia Toscana.
  • Approximants, trill and laterals:
    • /j/ and /w/ are always geminate when intervocalic.
    • /r/ is alveolar [r].
    • /l/ is laminal alveolar [l̻].
    • /ʎ/ is alveolo-palatal, always geminate when intervocalic.

Historical phonology

The phonological system of the Luthic language underwent many changes during the period of its existence. These included the palatalisation of velar consonants in many positions and subsequent lenitions. A number of phonological processes affected Luthic in the period before the earliest documentation. The processes took place chronologically in roughly the order described below (with uncertainty in ordering as noted).

Vowel system

The most sonorous elements of the syllable are vowels, which occupy the nuclear position. They are prototypical mora-bearing elements, with simple vowels monomoraic, and long vowels bimoraic. Latin vowels occurred with one of five qualities and one of two weights, that is short and long /i e a o u/. At first, weight was realised by means of longer or shorter duration, and any articulatory differences were negligible, with the short:long opposition stable. Subtle articulatory differences eventually grow and lead to the abandonment of length, and reanalysis of vocal contrast is shifted solely to quality rather than both quality and quantity; specifically, the manifestation of weight as length came to include differences in tongue height and tenseness, and quite early on, /ī, ū/ began to differ from /ĭ, ŭ/ articulatorily, as did /ē, ō/ from /ĕ, ŏ/. The long vowels were stable, but the short vowels came to be realised lower and laxer, with the result that /ĭ, ŭ/ opened to , ʊ]​, and /ĕ, ŏ/ opened to , ɔ]​. The result is the merger of Latin /ĭ, ŭ/ and /ē, ō/, since their contrast is now realised sufficiently be their distinct vowel quality, which would be easier to articulate and perceive than vowel duration.

Gotho-Romance vowel changes from Latin.
Vowels phoneme in Classical Latin
Front Central Back
Close i ĩː u ũː
Mid e ẽː o õː
Open ä äː ä̃ː
Vowels phoneme in Early Spoken Latin
Front Central Back
Close ɪ ĩː ʊ ũː
Mid ɛ ẽː ɔ õː
Open ä äː ä̃ː

Unstressed a resulted in a slightly raised a [ɐ]. In hiatus, unstressed front vowels become /j/, while unstressed back vowels become /w/. Unlike other Romance languages, the Luthic vowel system was not so affected by metaphony, such as /e/ raising to /i/ or /ɛ/ raising to /e/:

In addition to monophthongs, Luthic has diphthongs, which, however, are both phonemically and phonetically simply combinations of the other vowels. None of the diphthongs are, however, considered to have distinct phonemic status since their constituents do not behave differently from how they occur in isolation, unlike the diphthongs in other languages like English and German. Grammatical tradition distinguishes “falling” from “rising” diphthongs, but since rising diphthongs are composed of one semiconsonantal sound [j] or [w] and one vowel sound, they are not actually diphthongs. The practice of referring to them as “diphthongs” has been criticised by phoneticians like Alareicu Villavolfu.

Irregularities

Luthic also diphthongises /ō̆/ to /wɔ/ in the following environments:

Monophthongization

The diphthongs ⟨au⟩, ⟨ae⟩ and ⟨oe⟩ [au̯, ae̯, oe̯] were monophthongized (smoothed) to [ɔ, ɛ, e] by Gothic influence, as the Germanic diphthongs /ai̯/ and /au̯/ appear as digraphs written ⟨ai⟩ and ⟨au⟩ in Gothic. Researchers have disagreed over whether they were still pronounced as diphthongs /ai̯/ and /au̯/ in Ulfilas' time (4th century) or had become long open-mid vowels: /ɛː/ and /ɔː/: 𐌰𐌹𐌽𐍃 (ains) [ains] / [ɛːns] “one” (German eins, Icelandic einn), 𐌰𐌿𐌲𐍉 (augō) [auɣoː] / [ɔːɣoː] “eye” (German Auge, Icelandic auga). It is most likely that the latter view is correct, as it is indisputable that the digraphs ⟨ai⟩ and ⟨au⟩ represent the sounds /ɛː/ and /ɔː/ in some circumstances (see below), and ⟨aj⟩ and ⟨aw⟩ were available to unambiguously represent the sounds /ai̯/ and /au̯/. The digraph ⟨aw⟩ is in fact used to represent /au/ in foreign words (such as 𐍀𐌰𐍅𐌻𐌿𐍃 (Pawlus) “Paul”), and alternations between ⟨ai⟩/⟨aj⟩ and ⟨au⟩/⟨aw⟩ are scrupulously maintained in paradigms where both variants occur (e.g. 𐍄𐌰𐌿𐌾𐌰𐌽 (taujan) “to do” vs. past tense 𐍄𐌰𐍅𐌹𐌳𐌰 (tawida) “did”). Evidence from transcriptions of Gothic names into Latin suggests that the sound change had occurred very recently when Gothic spelling was standardised: Gothic names with Germanic au are rendered with au in Latin until the 4th century and o later on (Austrogoti > Ostrogoti).

Consonant system

As Classical Latin developed into Proto-Romance and then Gotho-Romance it experienced various sound changes. An approximate summary of changes on the phonemic level is provided below. Their precise order is uncertain.

Cluster smoothing

Clusters such as -p.t- -k.t- -x.t- are always smoothed to -t.t-.

This is also valid for other CC clusters with similar manner or place.

Absorption of nasals before fricatives

This is the source of such alterations as modern Standard Luthic fimfe [ˈfĩ.ɸe] “five”, monþu [ˈmõ.θu] “mouth” versus Gothic 𐍆𐌹𐌼𐍆 (fimf) [ˈɸimɸ]id.”, 𐌼𐌿𐌽𐌸𐍃 (munþs) [ˈmunθs]id.” and German fünf [fʏnf]id.”, Mund [mʊnt]id.”.

Palatalisation

Early evidence of palatalised pronunciations of /tj kj/ appears as early as the 2nd–3rd centuries AD in the form of spelling mistakes interchanging ⟨ti⟩ and ⟨ci⟩ before a following vowel, as in ⟨tribunitiae⟩ for tribūnīciae. This is assumed to reflect the fronting of Latin /k/ in this environment to [c ~ t͡sʲ]. Palatalisation of the velar consonants /k/ and /ɡ/ occurred in certain environments, mostly involving front vowels; additional palatalisation is also found in dental consonants /t/, /d/, /l/ and /n/, however, these are often not palatalised in word initial environment.

Labio-velars remain unpalatalised, except in monosyllabic environment:

In some cases, palatalisation occurs word initially, mainly if /kn/ is the initial cluster:

It may not happen if intervocalic:

Velar and labial plosive clusters with l are also palatalised, fl is also palatalised:

This usually doesn't happen in Cli- clusters:

Lenition

The Gotho-Romance family suffered very few lenitions, but in most cases the unstressed stops /p t k/ are lenited to /b d ɡ/ if not in onset position, before or after a sonorant or in intervocalic position as a geminate, but in general, stops are rather spirantised than sonorised due to Gorgia Toscana. A similar process happens with unstressed /b/ that is lenited to /v ~ β/ in the same conditions. The unstressed labio-velar /kʷ/ delabialises before hard vowels, as in:

Luthic is further affected by the Gorgia Toscana effect, where every plosive is spirantised (or further approximated if voiced). Plosives, however, are not affected if:

  • Geminate.
  • Labialised.
  • Nearby another fricative.
  • Nearby a rhotic, a lateral or nasal.
  • Stressed and anlaut.
Fortition

In every case, /j/ and /w/ are fortified to /d͡ʒ/ and /v ~ β/, except when triggered by hiatus collapse. The Germanic /xʷ ~ hʷ ~ ʍ/ is also fortified to /kʷ/ in every position; which can be further lenited to /k ~ t͡ʃ/ in the environments given above. The Germanic /h ~ x/ is fortified to /k/ before a rhotic or a lateral, as in:

Furthermore, Luthic is affected by syntactic gemination, a common feature in Italian and Neapolitan as well, also known as raddoppiamento sintattico in Italian, and riddoppiamento sintattico in Luthic. Syntactic means that gemination spans word boundaries, as opposed to word-internal geminate consonants. Syntatic gemination is optionally appointed orthographically (for the sake of simplicity, not on this article), and it only happens before a trigger word, however, neither does doubling occur when the initial consonant is followed by another consonant or if is there a pause in between, both phonetically and orthographically, for example “giâ·mmeino haertene ist sfracellato” (now my heart is broken), but “giâ, meino haertene ist sfracellato” (now, my heart is broken). Trigger words include:

  • All feminine plural nouns, preceded by the feminine plural definite article, le.
  • All neuter singular nouns, preceded by the neuter singular definite article, atha.
  • Stressed monosyllabic words that end in a vowel, examples include giâ, þû, fiê, piê, etc.
  • The prepositions a, a, da, and the conjunctions au, e, .
  • The first person singular conjugated forms stô, and other monosyllabic irregular verbs such as chiô.
  • The proximal demonstrative pronouns in the following forms: su, sa, þatha, þo, þa, þammo, þe.
  • all polysyllables stressed on the final vowel (oxytones).

Examples include:

  • Vino au·vvadne? (wine or water?).
  • Vino au·mmeluco? (wine or milk?).
  • Stô·bbene (I am well).
  • Le·ccanzoni (the songs).
  • Atha·mmeino (my).
  • Þû·ttaugis (you do/make).

Similarly, coda consonants with similar articulations often sandhi in the following conditions:

  • Voiced and unvoiced pairs of the same consonant, for example /θ/ and /ð/.
  • Two consonants of the same manner, fricatives or nasals for example.
    • However, the two must be either voiced or voiceless.

Examples include:

Deletion

In some rare cases, the consonants are fully deleted (elision), as in the verb havere, akin to Italian avere, which followed a very similar paradigm and evolution:

Vowels other than /ä/ are often syncopated in unstressed word-internal syllables, especially when in contact with liquid consonants:

A similar process happens when vowels (except /ä/) are interconsonantal between /m/ and /n/:

In some Gothic an-stem and other general environments, the interconsonantal vowel is deleted between /ɣ/ and /n/, triggering palatalisation:

In vulgar dialects where cases are fully ignored and prepositions are more used instead, it is very common to apocope the last vowel (except /ɐ/) after a sonorant (/m n l r/) in singular forms, this feature is also very used by poets and it is often considered a poetic characteristic of Luthic:

This is very common to happen with third-person plural verbal forms and infinitive verbal forms as well. Words ending in -N.CV- may result in apocope of the consonant as well:

Phonotactics

Luthic allows up to three consonants in syllable-initial position, though there are limitations. The syllable structure of Luthic is (C)(C)(C)(G)V(G)(C)(C). As with English, there exist many words that begin with three consonants. Luthic lacks bimoraic (diphthongs and long vowels), as the so-called diphthongs are composed of one semiconsonantal (glide) sound [j] or [w].

C₁ C₂ C₃
Onset
f ~ ɸ v ~ β p b t d k ɡ r j w
s p k r l
s f ~ ɸ t r
z b l
z d ɡ r
z m n v ~ β d͡ʒ r l
p b f ~ ɸ v ~ β k ɡ r l
ɡ n l
p t k d r
θ ð v ~ β r
t v ~ β
kʷ ɡʷ t͡s t͡ʃ d͡ʒ ʃ r ɲ l ʎ

CC

As an onset, the cluster /s/ + voiceless consonant is inherently unstable. Phonetically, word-internal s+C normally syllabifies as [s.C]. A competing analysis accepts that while the syllabification /s.C/ is accurate historically, modern retreat of i-prosthesis before word initial /s/+C (e.g. miþ isforzȧ “with effort” has generally given way to miþ sforza) suggests that the structure is now underdetermined, with occurrence of /s.C/ or /.sC/ variable “according to the context and the idiosyncratic behaviour of the speakers.”

CCC

V₁ V₂ V₃
Nucleus
a ɐ e ɛ i [j] u [w]
o ɔ i [j]
i [j] e o
i [j] ɐ ɛ ɔ i [j]
i [j] u [w] o
u [w] ɐ ɛ ɔ i [j]
u [w] e o
u [w] i

The nucleus is the only mandatory part of a syllable and must be a vowel or a diphthong. In a falling diphthong the most common second elements are /i̯/ or /u̯/. Combinations of /j w/ with vowels are often labelled diphthongs, allowing for combinations of /j w/ with falling diphthongs to be called triphthongs. One view holds that it is more accurate to label /j w/ as consonants and /jV wV/ as consonant-vowel sequences rather than rising diphthongs. In that interpretation, Luthic has only falling diphthongs (phonemically at least, cf. synaeresis) and no triphthongs.

C₁ C₂
Coda
m n l r Cₓ
Cₓ

Luthic permits a small number of coda consonants. Outside of loanwords, the permitted consonants are:

  • The first element of any geminate.
  • A nasal consonant that is either /n/ (word-finally) or one that is homorganic to a following consonant.
  • /r/ and /l/.
  • /s/ (though not before fricatives).
Prosody

Luthic is quasi-paroxytonic, meaning that most words receive stress on their penultimate (second-to-last) syllable. Monosyllabic words tend to lack stress in their only syllable, unless emphasised or accentuated. Enclitic and other unstressed personal pronouns do not affect stress patterns. Some monosyllabic words may have natural stress (even if not emphasised), but it is weaker than those in polysyllabic words.

Compound words have secondary stress on their penultimate syllable. Some suffixes also maintain the suffixed word secondary stress.

Secondary stress is however often omitted by Italian influence. Tetrasyllabic (and beyond) words may have a very weak secondary stress in the fourth-to-last syllable (i.e. two syllables before the main or primary stress).

Research

Ravenna University’s arms

Luthic is a well-studied language, and multiple universities in Italy have departments devoted to Luthic or linguistics with active research projects on the language, mainly in Ravenna, such as the Linguistic Circle of Ravenna (Luthic: Creizzo Rasdavitascapetico Ravenne; Italian: Circolo Linguistico di Ravenna) at Ravenna University, and there are many dictionaries and technological resources on the language. The language council Gafaurdu faul·la Rasda Lûthica also publishes research on the language both nationally and internationally. Academic descriptions of the language are published both in Luthic, Italian and English. The most complete grammar is the Grammatica gli Lûthice Rasde (Grammar of the Luthic Language) by Alessandru Fiscar & Luca Vagnar, and it is written in Luthic and contains over 800 pages. Multiple corpora of Luthic language data are available. The Luthic Online Dictionary project provides a curated corpus of 35,000 words.

History

The Ravenna School of Linguistics evolved around Giuvanni Laggobardi and his developing theory of language in linguistic structuralism. Together with Soġnafreþo Rossi he founded the Circle of Linguistics of Ravenna in 1964, a group of linguists based on the model of the Prague Linguistic Circle. From 1970, Ravenna University offered courses in languages and philosophy but the students were unable to finish their studies without going to Accademia della Crusca for their final examinations.

  • Ravenna University Circle of Phonological Development (Luthic: Creizzo Sviluppi Phonologici gi’Accademia Ravenna) was developed in 1990, however very little research has been done on the earliest stages of phonological development in Luthic.
  • Ravenna University Circle of Theology (Luthic: Creizzo Theologie gi’Accademia Ravenna) was developed in 2000 in association with the Ravenna Cathedral or Metropolitan Cathedral of the Resurrection of Our Lord Jesus Christ (Luthic: Cathedrale metropolitana deï Osstassi Unsari Signiori Giesaus Christi; Italian: Cattedrale metropolitana della Risurrezione di Nostro Signore Gesù Cristo; Duomo di Ravenna).

Phonological development

Phonological development refers to how children learn to organize sounds into meaning or language (phonology) during their stages of growth.

Phoneme inventory and phonotactics

Word-final consonants are rarely produced during the early stages of word production. Consonants are usually found in word-initial position, or in intervocalic position. At 6 months, infants are also able to make use of prosodic features of the ambient language to break the speech stream they are exposed to into meaningful units, e.g., they are better able to distinguish sounds that occur in stressed vs. unstressed syllables. This means that at 6 months infants have some knowledge of the stress patterns in the speech they are exposed and they have learned that these patterns are meaningful.

10 months

Most consonants are word-initial only: They are voiced stops /d/, /b/ and the nasal /m/. A presence of voiceless stops is also found as /t/, /p/ and rarely /k/; who can be allphones of each other. A preference for a front place of articulation is present. Clicks are also present, although mostly for imitative suckling sounds, blowing a raspberry has also a common register between toddlers.

Babbling becomes distinct from previous, less structured vocal play. Initially, syllable structure is limited to CVCV, called reduplicated babbling. Consonant clusters are still absent. Children’s first ten words appear around month 12, and take CVCV format, such as mama “mother”, papa “father” and dada “give me!”.

21 months

More phones now appear: the nasal /n/, the voiceless fricative /t͡ʃ/, who can be an allphone of /t ~ d/; as voice is still not a distinctive feature, and the liquid /l/. The preference for front articulation is still present, triggering palatalisation.

24 months

Fricatives may appear: /f ~ v/ and /s/ (who can be further palatalised to /ʃ/), primarily at intervocalic position. Voice may become a distinctive feature at this stage. Onomatopoeiae are also produced, such as /aw aw/ for dog’s barking; /ow/, or preferably /aj/ for denoting pain. Production of trisyllabic words begins, such as C₁VC₂VC₃V. Consonant clusters are now present and are often subject to consonant harmony, such as -mb-, -nd- and -dr-; however voiced-voiceless clusters are still rare, such as -mp- and -tr-.

30 months

Approximately equal numbers of phones are now produced in word-initial and intervocalic position. Additions to the phonetic inventory are the voiced stop /ɡ/ and a few consonant clusters. Co-articulations are perceived, such as labio-velar plosives. Alveolars and bilabials are the two most common places of articulation. Labiodental and postalveolar production increases throughout development, while velar production decreases. Luthic lenitions also become evident, as more fricatives and approximants are produced. Children develop syllabic segmentation awareness earlier than phonemic segmentation awareness.

Word processes

These phonological processes may happen within a range of 3 to 6 years.

6 years

Children produce mostly adult-like segments. Their ability to produce complex sound sequences and multisyllabic words continues to improve throughout middle childhood.

Typology

Luthic’s link to other Indo-European languages

Luthic has right symmetry, as other VO languages (verb before object) like English.

Correlation VO language Examples
Adposition type prepositions of..., than..., on...
Order of noun and genitive noun before genitive father + of John
Order of adjective and standard of comparison adjective before standard taller + than Bob
Order of verb and adpositional phrase verb before adpositional phrase slept + on the floor
Order of verb and manner adverb verb before manner adverb ran + slowly
Order of copula and predicative copula before predicate is + a teacher
Order of auxiliary verb and content verb auxiliary before content verb want + to see Mary
Place of adverbial subordinator in clause clause-initial subordinators because + Bob has left
Order of noun and relative clause noun before relative clause movies + that we saw

WALS

The Atlas of Language Structures (WALS) is a large database of structural (phonological, grammatical, lexical) properties of languages gathered from descriptive materials (such as reference grammars) by a team of 55 authors.

Morphophonological WALS Features
WALS Luthic Italian¹ Romanian¹ English German Icelandic¹
Headed Mixed Mixed Mixed Mixed Mixed Mixed
Typology Analytic (partially) Analytic (partially) Analytic (partially) Analytic (partially) Analytic (partially) Analytic (partially)
Isochrony Syllable Syllable Stress Stress Stress Syllable
Pro-drop Yes Yes Yes No Mostly (colloquial) No
Consonant Inventories 1A Large Average Average Average Average Average
Vowel Quality Inventories 2A Large (7-14) Average (5-6) Large (7-14) Large (7-14) Large (7-14) Large (7-14)
Consonant-Vowel Ratio 3A Moderately high Average Average Low Low Low
Voicing in Plosives and Fricatives 4A In both plosives and fricatives In both plosives and fricatives In both plosives and fricatives In both plosives and fricatives In both plosives and fricatives In both plosives and fricatives
Voicing and Gaps in Plosive Systems 5A None missing in /p t k b d g/ None missing in /p t k b d g/ None missing in /p t k b d g/ None missing in /p t k b d g/ None missing in /p t k b d g/ None missing in /p t k b d g/
Uvular Consonants 6A Uvular continuants only None None None Uvular continuants only None
Glottalised Consonants 7A No glottalised consonants No glottalised consonants No glottalised consonants No glottalised consonants No glottalised consonants No glottalised consonants
Lateral Consonants 8A /l/, no obstruent laterals /l/, no obstruent laterals /l/, no obstruent laterals /l/, no obstruent laterals /l/, no obstruent laterals /l/, no obstruent laterals
The Velar Nasal 9A No initial velar nasal No velar nasal No velar nasal No initial velar nasal No initial velar nasal No initial velar nasal
Vowel Nasalisation 10A Contrast present Contrast absent Contrast absent Contrast absent Contrast absent Contrast absent
Front Rounded Vowels 11A None None None None High and mid High and mid
Syllable Structure 12A Complex Moderately complex Moderately complex Complex Complex Complex
Fixed Stress Locations 14A No fixed stress No fixed stress No fixed stress No fixed stress No fixed stress Initial
Weight-Sensitive Stress 15A Right-oriented: One of the last three Right-edge: Ultimate or penultimate Right-edge: Ultimate or penultimate Right-oriented: One of the last three Right-oriented: One of the last three Fixed stress (no weight-sensitivity)
Weight Factors in Weight-Sensitive Stress Systems 16A Lexical stress Lexical stress Lexical stress Long vowel or coda consonant Coda consonant No weight
Rhythm Types 17A Undetermined Undetermined Undetermined Trochaic Trochaic Trochaic
Absence of Common Consonants 18A All present All present All present All present All present All present
Presence of Uncommon Consonants 19A ‘Th’ sounds None None ‘Th’ sounds None ‘Th’ sounds
Fusion of Selected Inflectional Formatives 20A Exclusively concatenative Exclusively concatenative Exclusively concatenative Exclusively concatenative Exclusively concatenative Exclusively concatenative
Exponence of Tense-Aspect-Mood Inflection 21B TAM+agreement TAM+agreement TAM+agreement Monoexponential TAM Monoexponential TAM Monoexponential TAM
Inflectional Synthesis of the Verb 22A 4-5 categories per word 4-5 categories per word 4-5 categories per word 2-3 categories per word 2-3 categories per word 2-3 categories per word
Locus of Marking in the Clause 23A Double marking Double marking Double marking Dependent marking Dependent marking Dependent marking
Locus of Marking in Possessive Noun Phrases 24A Dependent marking Dependent marking Dependent marking Dependent marking Dependent marking Dependent marking
Locus of Marking: Whole-language Typology 25A Inconsistent or other Inconsistent or other Inconsistent or other Dependent-marking Dependent-marking Dependent-marking
Zero Marking of A and P Arguments 25B Non-zero marking Non-zero marking Non-zero marking Non-zero marking Non-zero marking Non-zero marking
Prefixing vs. Suffixing in Inflectional Morphology 26A Strongly suffixing Strongly suffixing Strongly suffixing Strongly suffixing Strongly suffixing Strongly suffixing
Reduplication 27A No productive reduplication No productive reduplication No productive reduplication No productive reduplication No productive reduplication No productive reduplication
Case Syncretism 28A Core and non-core Core and non-core Core and non-core Core cases only Core and non-core Core and non-core
Syncretism in Verbal Person/Number Marking 29A Syncretic Syncretic Syncretic Syncretic Syncretic Syncretic
¹ Some features and values are stipulated due to lack of resources.

Information rate

The concept of “information density” relates to how languages convey semantic information within the speech signal. Essentially, a language is considered dense if it uses fewer speech elements to convey a given amount of semantic meaning compared to a sparser language. Units such as features or articulatory gestures involve complex multidimensional patterns (such as gestural scores or feature matrices) that are unsuitable for computing average information density during speech communication. In contrast, each speech sample can be described in terms of discrete sequences of segments or syllables, which are potential candidates, although their exact significance and role in communication remain uncertain. Therefore, this study opts to utilise syllables for both methodological and theoretical reasons.

Assuming that for each text Tk, composed of σk(L) syllables in language L, the over-all semantic content Sk is equivalent from one language to another, the average quantity of information per syllable for Tk and for language L is calculated as in 1.

Equation 1.png

Since Sk is language-independent, it was eliminated by computing a normalised information density (ID) using Vietnamese (VI) as the benchmark. For each text Tk and language L, IDkL resulted from a pairwise comparison of the text lengths (in terms of syllables) in L and VI respectively.

Luthic Equation 2.png

Next, the average information density IDL (in terms of linguistic information per syllable) with reference to VI is defined as the mean of IDkL evaluated for the K texts.

Equation 3.png

Language IDL Syllabic rate Information rate
English 0.91 6.19 1.08
French 0.74 7.18 0.99
Italian 0.72 6.99 0.96
Spanish 0.63 7.82 0.98
German 0.79 5.67 0.90
Luthic 0.81 6.45 0.97
Vietnamese 1 (reference) 5.22 1 (reference)

Another factor is the syllabic complexity index, being measured in two ways: type and token.

  1. Type complexity: considers each unique syllable only once when calculating the average complexity.
  2. Token complexity: takes into account the frequency of occurrence of each unique syllable in the corpus by weighting the complexity accordingly.
Language Syllable inventory size Type complexity Token complexity
English 7,931 3.70 2.48
French 5,646 3.50 2.21
Italian 2,719 3.50 2.30
Spanish 1,593 3.30 2.40
German 4,207 3.70 2.68
Luthic 4,129 3.60 2.40

The Handbook of Luthic Linguistics, Culture and Religion

Aena lettura essenziale summa importanza, inu andarogiugga.
“An essential lecture, of the highest importance, without equivalents.”

Lucia Giamane
The EDLIL

In 2012, a collaboration of the Circle of Linguistics, the Circle of Phonological Development and the Circle of Theology resulted in The Handbook of Luthic Linguistics, Culture and Religion (Luthic: Il Handobuocu Rasdavitascapetice, Colture e Religioni Lûthice, abbreviated HLLCR / Luthic: HRCRL) initiated in 2005 by Lucia Giamane, designed to illuminate an area of knowledge that encompasses both general linguistics and specialised, philologically oriented linguistics as well as those fields of science that have developed in recent decades from the increasingly extensive research into the diverse phenomena of communicative action.

Etymological Dictionary of the Luthic Inherited Lexicon

Within the HLLCR, an entire etymological dictionary is provided. The Etymological Dictionary of the Luthic Inherited Lexicon (Luthic: Vaurdobuocu Etimologicu Lûthici Lessici Hereditati, abbreviated EDLIL / Luthic: VELLH). For every Luthic entry an etymology is given, together with many Indo-European cognates, in some cases, the history of etymological research is also provided; for every entry, translations in English, French, Spanish, Italian and German are provided, together with an IPA key for the Luthic pronunciation. An online version of the EDLIL is provided by Ravenna University, however only the dictionary has free access, thence separated from the HLLCR.

Mnemonics

A mnemonic device (/nɪˈmɒnɪk/ nih-MON-ik) or memory device is any learning technique that aids information retention or retrieval in the human memory, often by associating the information with something that is easier to remember.

A Luthic mnemonic verse or mnemonic rhyme is a mnemonic device for teaching and remembering Luthic grammar. Such mnemonics have been considered by teachers to be an effective technique for schoolchildren to learn the complex rules of Luthic accidence and syntax. Mnemonics may be helpful in learning foreign languages, for example by transposing difficult foreign words with words in a language the learner knows already, also called “cognates” which are very common in Romance languages and other Germanic languages. A useful such technique is to find linkwords, words that have the same pronunciation in a known language as the target word, and associate them visually or auditorially with the target word; such tecniques have been applied into Luthic learning for children, Italian and other dialleti speakers.


A Luthic rhyme for remembering the masculine nominative singular, masculine accusative singular and neuter nominato-accusative singular is given by many teachers during school first years:

buonu: veglio vessare
buono: veglio stare
ac e buono? veglo mangiare!

Translated it into English as follows:

good: I want to be
in a good place: I want to be in
but what about a good food? I want to eat!

The Ravenna University Circle of Phonological Development also found out that mnemonics can be used in aiding children with autism spectrum disorder (ASD) and other neurodevelopmental disorders, patients with memory deficits that could be caused by head injuries, strokes, epilepsy, multiple sclerosis and other neurological conditions, however, in the case of stroke patients, the results did not reach statistical significance.

Grammar

Luthic Grammar is the body of rules describing the properties of the Luthic language. Luthic words can be divided into the following lexical categories: articles, nouns, adjectives, pronouns, verbs, adverbs, prepositions, conjunctions, and interjections.

Nouns

Luthic grammar is almost typical of the grammar of Romance languages in general. Cases exist for personal pronouns (nominative, accusative, dative, genitive), and unlike other Romance languages (except Romanian), they also exist for nouns, but are often ignored in common speech, mainly because of the Italian influence, a language who lacks noun cases. There are three basic classes of nouns in Luthic, referred to as genders, masculine, feminine and neuter. Masculine nouns typically end in -u, with plural marked by -i, feminine nouns typically end in -a, with plural marked by -e, and neuter nouns typically end in -o, with plural marked by -a. Some feminine nouns, together with masculine nouns, the so called u-stems may also typically end in -u, with the plural marked by -us, while neuter u-stems have the plural marked by -ua. A fifth category of nouns is unmarked for gender, ending in -e in the singular and -i in the plural; a variant of the unmarked declension is found ending in -r in the singular and -i in the plural, it lacks neuter nouns:

Examples:

Definition Gender Singular nominative Plural nominative
Son Masculine Figliu Figli
Flower Feminine Biomna Biomne
Fruit Neuter Acrano Acrana
Port Masculine Portu Portus
Hand Feminine Manu Manus
Wealth Neuter Faeu Faeua
Love Masculine Amore Amori
Art Feminine Crafte Crafti
Water Neuter Vadne Vadni
King Masculine Rege Regi
Heart Neuter Haertene Haerteni
Father Masculine Faðar Faðari
Mother Feminine Moðar Moðari

Declension paradigm in formal Standard Luthic:

Number Case o-stem m a-stem f o-stem n i-stem unm r-stem unm
Singular nom. dagu geva hauviþo crafte broþar
acc. dago geva hauviþo crafte broþare
dat. daga geva hauviþa crafti broþari
gen. dagi geve hauviþi crafti broþari
Plural nom. dagi geve hauviþa crafti broþari
acc. dagos gevas hauviþa craftes broþares
dat. dagom gevam hauviþom craftivo broþarivo
gen. dagoro gevaro hauviþoro craftem broþarem

The declension paradigm of u-stems nouns is simplier than other nouns, since the nominative is identical to the accusative.

Number Case u-stem m u-stem f u-stem n
Singular nom. portu manu faeu
acc. portu manu faeu
dat. portau manau faeau
gen. portaus manaus faeaus
Plural nom. portus manus faeua
acc. portus manus faeua
dat. portivo manivo faeivo
gen. portum manum faeum

A small class of quasi-irregular nouns is found, itself being a variant of the unmarked class. The nominative forms always are oxytones and hide their consonant stem -d-. These are often called d-stem:

Number Case d-stem unm d-stem unm d-stem unm
Singular nom. piê -tâ
acc. piede fede -tade
dat. piedi fedi -tadi
gen. piedi fedi -tadi
Plural nom. piedi fedi -tadi
acc. piedes fedes -tades
dat. piedivo fedivo -tadivo
gen. piedem fedem -tadem

Pronouns

Luthic, like Latin and Gothic, inherited the full set of Indo-European pronouns: personal pronouns (including reflexive pronouns for each of the three grammatical persons), possessive pronouns, both simple and compound demonstratives, relative pronouns, interrogatives and indefinite pronouns. Each follows a particular pattern of inflection (partially mirroring the noun declension), much like other Indo-European languages. Although Luthic inherited a paradigm extremely close to Gothic (and Common Germanic), the Italic influence is visible in the genitive and plural formations.

PIE Latin Gothic German Luthic
*u̯ei̯ nom, *n̥s acc nōs nom/acc 𐍅𐌴𐌹𐍃 nom, 𐌿𐌽𐍃 acc wir nom, uns acc vi nom, unse acc
Personal pronouns of Standard Luthic
Number Case 1st person 2st person 3rd person reflexive
masculine feminine neuter
Singular nom. ic þû is ia atha
acc. mic þuc ino ina atha sic
dat. mis þus ia ia ia sis
gen. meina þeina eis ise eis seina
Singular nom. vi gi eis ise ia
acc. unse isve eis isas ia sic
dat. unsis isvis eis eis eis sis
gen. unsara isvara eisôro eisâro eisôro seina

Pronouns often become a clitic nearby verbs, mainly with imperative or after non-finite forms of verbs (often apocopating the terminal -e of infinitives), being applied as enclitics. A good example is faur þuc “for you” but (ic) dauþo·t “I kill you”. Paradigmata is given below:

Enclitic pronouns
Number Case 1st person 2st person 3rd person reflexive
masculine feminine neuter
Singular acc. mi
·m
ti
·t
lo
·l
la
·l
lo
·l
si
·s
dat. mi
·m
ti
·t
gli
·gl
gle
·gl
gli
·gl
si
·s
gen. ne
·n
ne
·n
ne
·n
ne
·n
Plural acc. ci vi los
·l
las
·l
la
·l
si
·s
dat. ci vi li
·l
li
·l
li
·l
si
·s
gen. ne
·n
ne
·n
ne
·n
ne
·n

Apocopated forms happen before or after (vide below) a vowel, e.g.:

  • (Ic) gevo·t lo chiaefo “I give you the bread”
  • (Vi) gevamos·ti lo chiaefo “we give you the bread
  • (Þû) gevas·mi lo chiaefo “you give me the bread”
  • (Eis) gevando·m lo chiaefo “they give me the bread”

Luthic has mesoclitic pronouns, which happen in compounded verbs with havere (vide § Verbs), i.e. the present conditionals active and passive and the future indicatives active and passive:

  • (Ic) gever·t’ô lo chiaefo “I will give you the bread”
  • (Ic) gever·vi·ô lo chiaefo “I will give you the bread”
  • (Vi) gever·l’êmos lo chiaefo “We will give him the bread”

Optionally, ti or ·t can be voiced to di or ·d after a voiced sonorant:

  • (Ic) gever·d’ô lo chiaefo “I will give you the bread”

Verbs that start with a vowel or ⟨h⟩ call for a proclitic, except for first and second person plural:

Proclitic pronouns
Number Case 1st person 2st person 3rd person reflexive
masculine feminine neuter
Singular acc. m’ t’ l’ l’ l’ s’
dat. m’ t’ gl’ gl’ gl’ s’
gen. n’ n’ n’ n’
Plural acc. l’ l’ l’ s’
dat. l’ l’ l’ s’
gen. n’ n’ n’ n’
  • (Ic) t’amo “I love you”
  • (Ic) t’hazo “I hate you”
  • (Eis) t’helpando “they help you”

Furthermore, Luthic has a set of poetic pronouns, often used to translate Italian poetry or to better fit metre, these are also very common in sociolects influenecd by Italian or other nearby Romance languages.

Poetic variants
Number Case 1st person 2st person 3rd person reflexive
masculine feminine neuter
Singular nom. io þû is ia atha
acc. mi þi ino ina atha si
dat. mi þi ia ia ia si
dat. meina þeina eis ise eis seina
Singular nom. nôi vôi eis ise ia
acc. nôi vôi eis isas ia si
dat. ci vi eis eis eis si
gen. nosâra vosâra eisôro eisâro eisôro seina
  • These forms are also common in everday speech due to Italian influence. Nevertheless, both declension paradigmata are considered to be correct. Main differences are emphasised.

Some Luthic speakers may have T–V distinction (the contextual use of different pronouns that exists in some languages and serves to convey formality or familiarity).

Unequal authority Equal authority
Employer Costumer Parent Elder sibling
T↓V ↑V T↓V ↑V T↓↑V T↓↑V
Employee Waiter Child Younger sibling

The superior has choice on T–V while the subordinate has not; except if talking to one another, then both subordinates can choice. In Luthic, þû is only used as an informal pronoun. It is only addressed to persons that one knows well, like family members and friends. It is also most commonly used among peers as a sign of equality, especially among young people. In formal situations with strangers and acquaintances, vôi is used instead. The pronoun gi was used in formal situations; this was once the abundant usage, but it has completely fallen out of use. In the plural form, gi is a T pronoun.

Possessive pronouns

Possessive pronouns of Standard Luthic
Number Case 1st person singular 2st person singular 3rd person singular
masculine feminine neuter masculine feminine neuter masculine feminine neuter
Singular nom. meinu meina meino þeinu þeina þeino seinu seina seina
acc. meino meina meino þeino þeina þeino seino seina seino
dat. meina meina meina þeina þeina þeina seina seina seina
gen. meini meine meini þeini þeine þeini seini seine seini
Plural nom. meini meine meina þeini þeine þeina seini seine seina
acc. meinos meinas meina þeinos þeinas þeina seinos seinas seina
dat. meinom meinam meinom þeinom þeinam þeinom seinom seinam seinom
gen. meinoro meinaro meinoro þeinoro þeinaro þeinoro seinoro seinaro seinoro
Possessive pronouns of Standard Luthic
Number Case 1st person plural 2st person plural 3rd person plural
masculine feminine neuter masculine feminine neuter masculine feminine neuter
Singular nom. unsar unsara unsaro isvar isvara isvaro seinu seina seino
acc. unsare unsara unsaro isvare isvara isvaro seino seina seino
dat. unsari unsara unsara isvari isvara isvara seina seina seina
gen. unsari unsare unsari isvari isvare isvari seini seine seini
Plural nom. unsari unsare unsara isvari isvare isvara seini seine seina
acc. unsares unsaras unsara isvares isvaras isvara seinos seinas seina
dat. unsarivo unsaram unsarom isvarivo isvaram isvarom seinom seinam seinom
gen. unsarem unsararo unsaroro isvarem isvararo isvaroro seinoro seinaro seinoro

The pronouns unsar, isvar have an irregular declension, being declined like an unmarked adjective in the masculine gender and marked in the other genders. Every possessive pronoun is declined like an o-stem adjective for masculine and neuter gender, while its feminine counterpart is declined as an a-stem adjective

Poetic variants
Number Case 1st person singular 2st person singular 3rd person singular
masculine feminine neuter masculine feminine neuter masculine feminine neuter
Singular nom. miu mia mio þiu þia þio siu sia sio
acc. mio mia mio þio þia þio sio sia sio
dat. mia mia mia þia þia þia sia sia sia
gen. miei mie miei þiei þie þiei sui sue sui
Plural nom. miei mie mia þiei þie þia sui sue sua
acc. mios mias mia þios þias þia suos suas sua
dat. miom miam miom þiom þiam þiom suom suam suom
gen. mioro miaro mioro þioro þiaro þioro suoro suaro suoro
Poetic variants
Number Case 1st person plural 2st person plural 3rd person plural
masculine feminine neuter masculine feminine neuter masculine feminine neuter
Singular nom. nostru nostra nostro vostru vostra vostro suu sua suo
acc. nostro nostra nostro vostro vostra vostro suo sua suo
dat. nostra nostra nostra vostra vostra vostra sua sua sua
gen. nostri nostre nostri vostri vostre vostri sui sue sui
Plural nom. nostri nostre nostra vostri vostre vostra sui sue sua
acc. nostros nostras nostra vostros vostras vostra suos suas sua
dat. nostrom nostram nostrom vostrom vostram vostrom suom suam suom
gen. nostroro nostraro nostroro vostroro vostraro vostroro suoro suaro suoro

Interrogative and indefinite pronouns

Interrogative pronouns of Standard Luthic
Number Case what, who which
masculine feminine neuter masculine feminine neuter
Singular nom. ce ce ce carge carge carge
acc. ci ci ci cargi cargi cargi
dat. ciammo cise ciammo cargiammo cargise cargiammo
gen. cis cise cis cargis cargise cargis
Plural nom. ci ce cia cargi carge cargia
acc. ces cias cia cargios cargias cargia
dat. civo civo civo cargiom cargiam cargiom
gen. coro caro coro cargioro cargiaro cargioro
  • In the masculine singular, not agreeing with any other word: “who”.
    • As a predicate agreeing in gender and number with subject: “who”.
  • In the neuter singular, not agreing with any other word: “what”.
  • Accusative forms: “whom”.
  • Genitive forms: “whose”.
Indefinite pronouns of Standard Luthic
Number Case each, everyone, everything every whatever, whoever
masculine feminine neuter masculine feminine neuter masculine feminine neuter
Singular nom. casu casa caso cargisu cargisa cargiso cece cece cece
acc. caso casa caso cargiso cargisa cargiso ceci ceci ceci
dat. cammo chise cammo cargiamme cargise cargiamme ceciammo cecise ceciammo
gen. chis chise chis cargesu cargesu cargesu cecis cecise cecis
Plural nom. ceci cece cecia
acc. ceces cecias cecia
dat. cecivo cecivo cecivo
gen. cecoro cecaro cecoro

The relative pronoun ei is fully indeclinable, it is sometimes called “common relative particle”.

Demonstrative pronouns

Luthic has a Proximal-Medial-Distal demonstrative system:

Demonstrative pronouns of Standard Luthic
Number Case Proximal Medial Distal
masculine feminine neuter masculine feminine neuter masculine feminine neuter
Singular nom. su sa þatha este esta esto giaenu giaena giaeno
acc. þo þa þatha este esta esto giaeno giaena giaeno
dat. þammo þise þammo esti esta esta giaena giaena giaena
gen. þis þise þis esti este esti giaeni giaene giaeni
Plural nom. þi þe þa esti este esta giaeni giaene giaena
acc. þos þas þa estes estas esta giaenos giaenas giaena
dat. þom þam þom estivo estam estom giaenom giaenam giaenom
gen. þisoro þisaro þisoro estem estaro estoro giaenoro giaenaro giaenoro

Articles

Luthic articles are used similarly to the English articles, a and the. However, they are declined differently according to the number, gender and case of their nouns.

Number Case Indefinite Definite
masculine feminine neuter masculine feminine neuter
Singular nom. aenu aena aeno il la latha, atha
acc. aeno aena aeno lo la latha, atha
dat. aena aena aena la la la
gen. aeni aene aeni gli, i gli, i gli, i
Plural nom. aeni aene aena gli, i le la
acc. aenos aenas aena los las la
dat. aenom aenam aenom lom lam lom
gen. aenoro aenaro aenoro loro loro loro

Adjectives

In Luthic, an adjective can be placed before or after the noun. The unmarked placement for most adjectives is after the noun. Placing the adjective after the noun can alter its meaning or indicate restrictiveness of reference.

  • Aenu buocu rossu “a red book” (unmarked)
  • Aenu rossu buocu “a book that is red” (marked)

Adjectives are inflected for case, gender and number, the paradigmata are identical to the nominal paradigmata.

Number Case o-stem m a-stem f o-stem n i-stem unm r-stem unm
Singular nom. rossu rossa rosso felice polchar
acc. rosso rossa rosso felice polchare
dat. rossa rossa rossa felici polchari
gen. rossi rosse rossi felici polchari
Plural nom. rossi rosse rossa felici polchari
acc. rossos rossas rossa felices polchares
dat. rossom rossam rossom felicivo polcharivo
gen. rossoro rossaro rossoro felicem polcharem

Luthic has two grammatical constructions for expressing comparison: comparative and superlative. The suffixes -izu (the “comparative”) and -issimu (the “superlative”) are of Indo-European origin and are cognate with the Latin suffixes -ior and -issimus and Ancient Greek -ῑ́ων (-īōn) and -ῐστος (-istos). This system also contains a number of irregular forms, mainly because of suppletion.

Regular examples are:

  • rossu “red” > rossizu “redder”
  • rossu “red” > rossissimu “reddest”
  • polchar “beautiful” > polcharizu “more beautiful”
  • polchar “beautiful” > polcharissimu “most beautiful”

Irregular examples are:

  • buonu “good” > betezu “better”
  • buonu “good” > betessimu “best”
  • malu “bad” > vaersizu “worse”
  • malu “bad” > vaersissimu “worst”
Comparative
Number Case o-stem m a-stem f o-stem n
Singular nom. -izu -iza -izo
acc. -izo -iza -izo
dat. -iza -iza -iza
gen. -izi -ize -izi
Plural nom. -izi -ize -iza
acc. -izos -izas -iza
dat. -izom -izam -izom
gen. -izoro -izaro -izoro
Superlative
Number Case o-stem m a-stem f o-stem n
Singular nom. -issimu -issima -issimo
acc. -issimo -issima -issimo
dat. -issima -issima -issima
gen. -issimi -issime -issimi
Plural nom. -issimi -issime -issima
acc. -issimos -issimas -issima
dat. -issimom -issimam -issimom
gen. -issimoro -issimaro -issimoro

Numerals

Standard Luthic numbers
# Cardinal Ordinal
Word Declension Word Declension
0 zephero o-stem adjective, singulare tantum zepherêsimu o-stem adjective
1 aenu o-stem adjective fromu o-stem adjetive
2 tvi o-stem adjective, plurale tantum anþar r-stem adjetive
3 þreis indeclinable þrigiane i-stem adjetive
4 fidvor indeclinable fidvorêsimu o-stem adjective
5 fimfe indeclinable fimfêsimu o-stem adjective
6 indeclinable sestu o-stem adjective
7 siu indeclinable siudu o-stem adjective
8 attau indeclinable attudu o-stem adjective
9 niu indeclinable niudu o-stem adjective
10 ziu indeclinable ziudu o-stem adjective
11 aellefe indeclinable aelleftu o-stem adjective
12 tvelefe indeclinable tveleftu o-stem adjective
13 þreiziu indeclinable þreiziudu o-stem adjective
14 fidvorziu indeclinable fidvorziudu o-stem adjective
15 fimfeziu indeclinable fimfeziudu o-stem adjective
16 seziu indeclinable seziudu o-stem adjective
17 setteziu indeclinable setteziudu o-stem adjective
18 tvedivinta indeclinable tvedivintêsimu o-stem adjective
19 aendivinta indeclinable aendivintêsimu o-stem adjective
20 vinta indeclinable vintêsimu o-stem adjective
28 tvediþreinta indeclinable tvediþreintêsimu o-stem adjective
29 aendiþreinta indeclinable aendiþreintêsimu o-stem adjective
30 þreinta indeclinable þreintêsimu o-stem adjective
38 tvedifidvorinta indeclinable tvedifidvorintêsimu o-stem adjective
39 aendifidvorinta indeclinable aendifidvorintêsimu o-stem adjective
40 fidvorinta indeclinable fidvorintêsimu o-stem adjective
50 fimfinta indeclinable fimfintêsimu o-stem adjective
60 sessanta indeclinable sessantêsimu o-stem adjective
70 siunta indeclinable siuntêsimu o-stem adjective
80 attanta indeclinable attantêsimu o-stem adjective
90 niunta indeclinable niuntêsimu o-stem adjective
98 tvedihondu o-stem adjective tvedihondêsimu o-stem adjective
99 aendihondu o-stem adjective aendihondêsimu o-stem adjective
100 hondu o-stem adjective hondêsimu o-stem adjective
Standard Luthic large numbers
# Cardinal Ordinal
Word Declension Word Declension
200 tvihondi α o-stem adjective, plurale tantum tvihondêsimu β o-stem adjective
500 fimfehondi γ o-stem adjective, plurale tantum fimfehondêsimu o-stem adjective
1 000 mille i-stem millêsimu o-stem adjective
2 000 tvimilli α i-stem adjective, plurale tantum tvimillêsimu β o-stem adjective
5 000 fimfemilli γ i-stem adjective, plurale tantum fimfemillêsimu o-stem adjective
10 000 ziumilli γ i-stem adjective, plurale tantum ziumillêsimu o-stem adjective
20 000 vintamilli γ i-stem adjective, plurale tantum vintamillêsimu o-stem adjective
50 000 fimfintamilli γ i-stem adjective, plurale tantum fimfintamillêsimu o-stem adjective
100 000 hondimilli α i-stem adjective, plurale tantum hondimillêsimu β o-stem adjective
200 000 tvihondimilli δ i-stem adjective, plurale tantum tvihondimillêsimu β o-stem adjective
500 000 fimfehondimilli ε i-stem adjective, plurale tantum fimfehondimillêsimu β o-stem adjective
106 millione i-stem adjective millionêsimu o-stem adjective
2 x 106 tvimillioni α i-stem adjective, plurale tantum tvimillionêsimu β o-stem adjective
109 milliarde i-stem adjective milliardêsimu o-stem adjective
1012 billione i-stem adjective billionêsimu o-stem adjective
1015 billiarde i-stem adjective billiardêsimu o-stem adjective
1019 trillione i-stem adjective trillionêsimu o-stem adjective
α Both elements are declinable, e.g. tvehonde, tvahonda;
β Only the last element is declinable, e.g. tvihondêsima, tvihondêsimoro;
γ The first element is indeclinable;
δ All the three elements are declinable, e.g. tvarohondaromillem, tvoshondosmilles;
ε Only the two last elements are declinable, e.g. fimfehondommillivo.

Luthic uses the long scale, unlike English that uses the short scale instead. The long and short scales are two of several naming systems for integer powers of ten which use some of the same terms for different magnitudes. Luthic has a verbal system similar to Italian, German, Dutch and French:

Short and long scale usage throughout the world
  Long scale
  Short scale
  Short scale with milliard instead of billion
  Both scales
  Other naming system
  No data
Luthic Italian German Dutch French English
106 millione milione Million miljoen million million
109 milliarde miliardo Milliarde miljard milliard billion
1012 billione bilione Billion biljoen billion trillion

Combinations of a decade and a unit are constructed in a regular way: the decade comes first followed by the unit. No spaces are written between them. Vowel collision triggers an interpunct. For example:

  • 28 vinta·attau (lit “twenty eight”)
  • 73 siuntaþreis (lit “seventy three”)
  • 82 attantatvi (lit “eighty two”)
  • 95 niuntafimfe (lit “ninety five”)

Combinations of a hundred and a lower number are expressed by just placing them together, with the hundred coming first.

  • 111 honduaellefe
  • 164 hondusessantafidvor
  • 225 tvihondivintafimfe
  • 788 siuhondi·attanta·attau

Combinations of a thousand and a lower number are expressed by placing them together, with the thousand coming first. A space is written between them.

  • 1 066 mille sessantasê
  • 9 011 niumilli aellefe
  • 61 500 sessanta·aenomilli fimfehondi
  • 123 456 hondivintaþreismilli fidvorhondifimfintasê

For millions and above, combinations with lower numbers are much the same as with the thousands.

  • 123 456 789 hondivintaþreis millioni fidvorhondifimfintasêhondi siuhondiniunta·attau
  • 10 987 654 321 ziu milliardi niuhondi·attantasiumillioni sehondifimfintafidvorhondi þreishondivinta·aenu

When alone, numbers are always in the masculine gender, however numbers always agree in gender and in case (if declinable) with the head noun. For example:

  • aenu vaere (“one man”)
  • aena qena (“one woman”)
  • aenu harge hondom vaerivo (“an army [composed] of hundred men”)
  • il meinu hareme hâþ tvashondas qenas (“my harem has two hundred women”)

Compound numbers have both elements declined (if possible):

tvihondi, tvehonde, tvahonda
Number Case o-stem m a-stem f o-stem n
Plural nom. tvihondi tvehonde tvahonda
acc. tvoshondos tvashondas tvahonda
dat. tvomhondom tvamhondam tvomhondom
gen. tvorohondoro tvarohondaro tvorohondoro

Verbs

Luthic verbs have a high degree of inflection, the majority of which follows one of four common patterns of conjugation. Luthic conjugation is affected by voice, mood, person, tense, number, aspect and occasionally gender.

The four classes of verbs (conjugation’s patterns) are distinguished by the infinitive’s endings form of the verb:

  • 1st conjugation: -are (þagcare “to think”);
  • 2nd conjugation: -ere (credere “to believe”);
  • 3rd conjugation: -ore (holore “to accuse”);
  • 4th conjugation: -ire (dormire “to sleep”).

Additionally, Luthic has a number of verbs that do not follow predictable patterns in all conjugation classes, most markedly the present and the past. Often classified together as irregular verbs, their irregularities occur to different degrees, with forms of vessare “to be”, and somewhat less extremely, havere “to have”, the least predictable. Others, such as ganare “to go”, stare “to stay, to stand”, taugiare “to do, to make”, and numerous others, follow various degrees of regularity within paradigms, largely due to suppletion, historical sound change or analogical developments.

Present

The present is used for:

  • Events happening in the present;
  • Habitual actions;
  • Current states of being and conditions;
  • Actions planned to occur in the future.
Active Indicative
þagcare credere holore dormire vessare havere ganare stare taugiare
ic þagco credo holo dormo im aggio stô taugio
þû þagcis credis holis dormis is hais gâs stais taugis
is þagcat credet holot dormit ist hâþ gâþ stâþ taugit
vi þagciamos crediamos holiamos dormiamos ismos abbiamos ghiamos stiamos taugiamos
gi þagcates credetes holotes dormites istes havetes gates states taugiates
eis þagcando credondo holondo dormondo sondo hondo gando stando taugiondo
Passive Indicative
þagcare credere holore dormire vessare havere ganare stare taugiare
ic þagcara credera holora dormira aggiara andara taugiara
þû þagcasa credesa holosa dormisa haisa andasa taugiasa
is þagcaða credeða holoða dormiða haiða andaða staða taugiaða
vi þagcanða credenða holonða dorminða hanða andanða taugianða
gi þagcanða credenða holonða dorminða hanða andanða taugianða
eis þagcanða credenða holonða dorminða hanða andanða stanða taugianða
Present subjunctive

Used for subordinate clauses of the present to express opinion, possibility, desire, or doubt. The Subjunctive is almost always preceded by the common relative particle.

Active Subjunctive
þagcare credere holore dormire vessare havere ganare stare taugiare
ic þagci creda holuo dorma sia abbia vada stia taugia
þû þagcis credas holas dormas sias abbias vadas stias taugias
is þagcit credat holuat dormat siaþ abbiat vadat stiaþ taugiat
vi þagciamos crediamos holuamos dormamos siamos abbiamos andiamos stiamos taugiaumos
gi þagciates crediates holuates dormates siates abbiates andiates stiates taugiautes
eis þagcindo credando holando dormando siando abbiando vadando stiando taugiando
Passive Subjunctive
þagcare credere holore dormire vessare havere ganare stare taugiare
ic þagcira credara holuara dormara abbiara vadara taugiaura
þû þagcisa credasa holuasa dormasa abbiasa vadasa taugiausa
is þagciða credaða holuaða dormaða abbiaða vadaða stiaða taugiauða
vi þagcinða credianða holuonða dormanða abbianða andianða taugiaunða
gi þagcinða credianða holuonða dormanða abbianða andianða taugiaunða
eis þagcinða credianða holuonða dormanða abbianða andianða stianða taugiaunða
Present conditional

Used for events that are dependent upon another event occurring. The conditional is also used for politely asking for something (as in English: “could I please have a glass of water?”)

Active Conditinal
þagcare credere holore dormire vessare havere ganare stare taugiare
ic þagcerebbi crederebbi holorebbi dormirebbi sarebbi haverebbi garebbi starebbi tavarebbi
þû þagceresti crederesti holoresti dormiresti saresti haveresti garesti staresti tavaresti
is þagcerebbet crederebbet holorebbet dormirebbet sarebbet haverebbet garebbet starebbet taverebbet
vi þagceremmos crederemmos holoremmos dormiremmos saremmos haveremmos garemmos staremmos tavaremmos
gi þagcerestes crederestes holorestes dormirestes sarestes haverestes garestes starestes tavarestes
eis þagcerebbero crederebbero holorebbero dormirebbero sarebbero haverebbero garebbero starebbero tavarebbero
Passive Conditinal
þagcare credere holore dormire vessare havere ganare stare taugiare
ic þagcerebbira crederebbira holorebbira dormirebbira haverebbira garebbira tavarebbira
þû þagceressa crederessa holoressa dormiressa haveressa garessa tavaressa
is þagcerebbeða crederebbeða holorebbeða dormirebbeða haverebbeða garebbeða starebbeða taverebbeða
vi þagceremma crederemma holoremma dormiremma haveremma garemma tavaremma
gi þagceremma crederemma holoremma dormiremma haveremma garemma tavaremma
eis þagceremma crederemma holoremma dormiremma haveremma garemma staremma tavaremma
  • vessare lacks a passive voice form;
  • stare passive voice form is only impersonal.

Present perfect

The present perfect is used for single actions or events (sa maurgnia im ganatu a scuola “I went to school this morning”), or change in state (sic ist þvaersotu can atha ia aggio rogiatu “he got angry when I told him that”), contrasting with the imperfect which is used for habits (eggiavo bicichietta a scuola alla maurgnia “I used to go to school by bike every morning”), or repeated actions, not happening at a specific time (sic þvaersovat alla vece ei, giuveðar can atha ia rogiavat “he got angry every time someone told him that”).

Past participle

The past participle is used to form the compound pasts (e.g. aggio tavitu “I have done”). Regular verbs follow a predictable pattern, but there are many verbs with an irregular past participle.

  • 1st conjugation: -atu (þagcatu “thought”);
  • 2nd conjugation: -utu (credutu “believed”);
  • 3rd conjugation: -otu (holotu “accused”);
  • 4th conjugation: -itu (dormitu “slept”);
  • vessare and stare have both statu;
  • qemare (“to come”) has qemutu;
  • havere has havutu;
  • taugiare has tavitu.
-ato, -uto, -oto, -ito declension
Number Case o-stem m a-stem f o-stem n
Singular nom. -atu, -utu, -otu, -itu -ata, -uta, -ota, -ita -ato, -uto, -oto, -ito
acc. -ato, -uto, -oto, -ito -ata, -uta, -ota, -ita -ato, -uto, -oto, -ito
dat. -ata, -uta, -ota, -ita -ata, -uta, -ota, -ita -ata, -uta, -ota, -ita
gen. -ati, -uti, -oti, -iti -ate, -ute, -ote, -ite -ati, -uti, -oti, -iti
Plural nom. -ati, -uti, -oti, -iti -ate, -ute, -ote, -ite -ata, -uta, -ota, -ita
acc. -atos, -utos, -otos, -itos -atas, -utas, -otas, -itas -ata, -uta, -ota, -ita
dat. -atom, -utom, -otom, -itom -atam, -utam, -otam, -itam -atom, -utom, -otom, -itom
gen. -atoro, -utoro, -otoro, -itoro -ataro, -utaro, -otaro, -itaro -atoro, -utoro, -otoro, -itoro

Except with an immediately preceding third person pronominal direct object, the participle always ends in -u.

All transitive verbs and most intransitive verbs form the present perfect by combining the auxiliary verb havere “to have” in the present tense with the past participle of the transitive verb. A small number of intransitive verbs, namely vessare itself and verbs indicating motion (qemare “to come”, ganare “to go”, affargiare “to arrive”, etc.) use the auxiliary verb vessare instead of havere. The past participle in this agrees with gender and number of the subject. Passive forms always use havere.

Imperfect

The Imperfect fuses past tense with imperfective aspect and is used for:

  • Repeated or habitual actions in the past;
  • Ongoing actions in the past and ongoing actions in the past that are eventually interrupted;
  • States of being and conditions in the past, including weather, time, age.

The difference between imperfective and perfective aspects can be illustrated clearly with the verb vitare “to know”. The Italian imperfect expresses being in possession of knowledge in the past, while the perfective expresses the moment of acquiring the knowledge.

Imperfective: Vitavo la vera. “I knew the truth.” Perfective: Aggio vitatu la vera. “I found out the truth.”

The Imperfect is, in most cases, formed by taking the stem along with the thematic vowel and adding -v- + the ending of the -are verbs in the present tense (with -amos instead of -iamos). There are no irregular conjugations in the Imperfect except for a few forms inherited from Gothic weak verbs, suppletion, and vessare, which uses the stem er- and -v- appears only in 1st and 2nd person plurals.

Active Indicative
þagcare credere holore dormire vessare havere ganare stare taugiare
ic þagcavo credevo holovo dormivo ero havaeðo eggiavo stavo taviðo
þû þagcavas credevas holovas dormivas eras havaeðas eggiavas stavas taviðas
is þagcavat credevat holovat dormivat erat havaeðat eggiavat stavat taviðat
vi þagcavamos credevamos holovamos dormivamos eravamos havaeðamos eggiavamos stavamos taviðamos
gi þagcavates credevates holovates dormivates eravates havaeðates eggiavates stavates taviðates
eis þagcavando credevando holovando dormivando erando havaeðando eggiavando stavando taviðando
Passive Indicative
þagcare credere holore dormire vessare havere ganare stare taugiare
ic þagcavara credevara holovara dormivara havaeðara eggiavara taviðara
þû þagcavasa credevasa holovasa dormivasa havaeðasa eggiavasa taviðasa
is þagcavaða credevaða holovaða dormivaða havaeðaða eggiavaða stavaða taviðaða
vi þagcavanða credevanða holovanða dormivanða havaeðanða eggiavanða taviðanða
gi þagcavanða credevanða holovanða dormivanða havaeðanða eggiavanða taviðanða
eis þagcavanða credevanða holovanða dormivanða havaeðanða eggiavanða stavanða taviðanða
Subjunctive imperfect

Used for the subordinate clauses of the imperfect indicative or the conditional. For regular verbs, the subjunctive is formed by taking the infinitive and replacing -re with -ssi, -ssis, -ssit, -ssimos, -ssites, -ssero:

Active Subjunctive
þagcare credere holore dormire vessare havere ganare stare taugiare
ic þagcassi credessi holossi dormissi fossi havessi eggissi stessi tavissi
þû þagcassis credessis holossis dormissis fossis havessis eggissis stessis tavissis
is þagcassit credessit holossit dormissit fossit havessit eggissit stessit tavissit
vi þagcassimos credessimos holossimos dormissimos fossimos havessimos eggissimos stessimos tavissimos
gi þagcassites credessites holossites dormissites fossites havessites eggissites stessites tavissites
eis þagcassero credessero holossero dormissero fossero havessero eggissero stessero tavissero
Passive Subjunctive
þagcare credere holore dormire vessare havere ganare stare taugiare
ic þagcassira credessira holossira dormissira havessira eggissira tavissira
þû þagcassisa credessisa holossisa dormissisa havessisa eggissisa tavissisa
is þagcassiða credessiða holossiða dormissiða havessiða eggissiða stessiða tavissiða
vi þagcassinða credessinða holossinða dormissinða havessinða eggissinða tavissinða
gi þagcassinða credessinða holossinða dormissinða havessinða eggissinða tavissinða
eis þagcassinða credessinða holossinða dormissinða havessinða eggissinða stessinða tavissinða

Preterite

The preterite (or perfect) has a function distinct from the present perfect. It is used for events which are distant from the present and no longer directly affect it (e.g. telling a story), whereas the present perfect is used for more recent events which may have a direct impact on the present.

Active Indicative
þagcare credere holore dormire vessare havere ganare stare taugiare
ic þagcai cred holoi dormei fui ebbi gai stetti tavi
þû þagcasti credesti holosti dormisti fosti havesti gasti stesti tavisti
is þagcaut credaet holaut dormeit fuiþ ebbet gauþ stettet tavit
vi þagcammos credemmos holommos dormimmos fomos havemmos gammos stemmos tavimmos
gi þagcastes credestes holostes dormistes fostes havestes gastes stestes tavistes
eis þagcarondo crederondo holorondo dormirondo furondo ebbero garondo stettero tavirondo
Passive Indicative
þagcare credere holore dormire vessare havere ganare stare taugiare
ic þagcaera credeira holoira dormeira ebbira gaira tavira
þû þagcasa credessa holossa dormissa havessa gassa tavessa
is þagcauða credaeða holauða dormeiða ebbeða gauða stetteða taveða
vi þagcamma credemma holomma dormimma havemma gamma tavemma
gi þagcamma credemma holomma dormimma havemma gamma tavemma
eis þagcamma credemma holomma dormimma havemma gamma stettemma tavemma
Subjunctive preterite

Used for subordinate clauses of the imperfect indicative or the conditional. The subjunctive preterite is formed the same as the present perfect, but with the auxiliary verb in the subjunctive present.

  • Active
  • abbia þagcatu;
  • sia qemutu;
  • sias affargiatu.
  • Passive
  • abbiara þagcatu;
  • abbiara qemutu;
  • abbiasa affargiatu.
Conditional preterite

Used for events that would, could or should have occurred or as a prospective past tense. The conditional preterite is formed the same as the present perfect, but with the auxiliary verb in the conditional.

  • Active
  • haverebbi dormitu;
  • sarebbi venutu.
  • Passive
  • haverebbira dormitu;
  • haverebbira venutu.

Future

The future tense is used for events that will happen in the future. It is formed by adding the forms of havere to the infinitive (with abbiamos and havetes contracted to -êmos and -êtes respectively). Sometimes the infinitive undergoes some changes:

  • It always loses its final -e;
  • Verbs in -are end in -er, not in -ar (stare however retains star-);
  • Most irregular verbs lose the vowel before the last r altogether (e.g. havr- for havere and andr- for ganare, suppletion from *andare). Clusters -mr-, -nr- and -lr- are simplified to -rr- (e.g. qerr- for qemare);
  • vessare has sar-.
Active Indicative
þagcare credere holore dormire vessare havere ganare stare taugiare
ic þagceraggio crederaggio holoraggio dormiraggio saraggio havraggio andraggio staraggio taugieraggio
þû þagcerais crederais holorais dormirais sarais havrais andrais starais taugierais
is þagcerât crederât holorât dormirât sarât havrât andrât starât taugierât
vi þagcerêmos crederêmos holorêmos dormirêmos sarêmos havrêmos andrêmos starêmos taugierêmos
gi þagcerêtes crederêtes holorêtes dormirêtes sarêtes havrêtes andrêtes starêtes taugierêtes
eis þagcerondo crederondo holorondo dormirondo sarondo havrondo androndo starondo taugierondo
Passive Indicative
þagcare credere holore dormire vessare havere ganare stare taugiare
ic þagcerêra crederêra holorêra dormirêra havrêra andrêra taugierêra
þû þagcerêsa crederêsa holorêsa dormirêsa havrêsa andrêsa taugierêsa
is þagcerêða crederêða holorêða dormirêða havrêða andrêða starêða taugierêða
vi þagcerênða crederênða holorênða dormirênða havrênða andrênða taugierênða
gi þagcerênða crederênða holorênða dormirênða havrênða andrênða taugierênða
eis þagcerênða crederênða holorênða dormirênða havrênða andrênða starênða taugierênða
Future perfect

Used for events that will have happened when or before something else happens in the future. The future perfect is formed the same as the present perfect, but with the auxiliary verb in the future.

  • Active
  • havraggio þagcatu;
  • sarais holotu.
  • Passive
  • havrêra þagcatu;
  • havrêsa holotu.

Imperative

The imperative is used for giving commands. The imperative is formed by:

  • Removing the infinitive -re;
  • Adding -te for the plural;
  • The word becomes an oxytone in the singular.
Affirmative
þagcare credere holore dormire vessare havere ganare stare taugiare
þû þagcâ credê holô dormei vessâ havê ganâ stâ taugiâ
gi þagcate credete holote dormite vessate havete ganate state taugiate
Negative
þagcare credere holore dormire vessare havere ganare stare taugiare
þû non þagcare non credere non holore non dormire non vessare non havere non ganare non stare non taugiare
gi non þagcarete non crederete non holorete non dormirete non vessarete non haverete non ganarete non starete non taugiarete

Nominal verb forms

Luthic verbs have three additional forms, known as nominal forms, because they can be used as nouns or adjectives, rather than as verbs.

  • The past participle has been discussed above;
  • The present participle is used as an adjective or a noun describing someone who is busy doing something. For example, rogiante means “talking” or “someone who is talking”:
  • Verbs in -are form the present participle by adding -ante to the stem;
  • Verbs in -ere and -ire form the present participle by adding -ente to the stem;
  • Verbs in -ore form the present participle by adding -onte to the stem.
  • The gerund is the adverbial form of the present participle, and has a very broad use. For example: rogiandu can translate to “talking, while talking, by talking, because of one’s talking, through talking…”:
  • The gerund is identical to the present participle, but with final -te replaced by -du;
  • Keep in mind that the gerund is an adverb, not an adjective, and so it does not agree in gender and number. The ending is always -u.

vessare, to be

Tense Forms
Infinitive vessare
Auxiliary verb vessare
Past participle
Number Case masculine feminine neuter
Singular nom. statu stata stato
acc. stato stata stato
dat. stata stata stata
gen. stati state stati
Plural nom. stati state stata
acc. statos statas stata
dat. statom statam statom
gen. statoro stataro statoro
Present participle vessante
Gerund vessandu
Person   
   Tense
first singular
ic
second singular
þû
third singular
is, ia, atha
first plural
vi
second plural
gi
third plural
eis, ise, ia
Indicative Present im is ist ismos istes sondo
Present perfect im statu is statu ist statu ismos stati istes stati sondo stati
Imperfect ero eras erat eravamos eravates erando
Preterite fui fosti fuiþ fostes fomos furondo
Future saraggio sarais sarât sarêmos sarêtes sarondo
Future perfect saraggio statu sarais statu sarât statu sarêmos stati sarêtes stati sarondo stati
Subjunctive Present sia sias siaþ siamos siates siando
Imperfect fossi fossis fossit fossimos fossites fossero
Preterite sia statu sias statu siaþ statu siamos stati siates stati siando stati
Conditional Present sarebbi saresti sarebbet saremmos sarestes sarebbero
Preterite sarebbi statu saresti statu sarebbet statu saremmos stati sarestes stati sarebbero stati
Imperative Positive   vessâ   vessate  
Negative   non vessare   non vessarete  

havere, to have

Tense Forms
Infinitive havere
Auxiliary verb havere
Past participle
Number Case masculine feminine neuter
Singular nom. havutu havuta havuto
acc. havuto havuta havuto
dat. havuta havuta havuta
gen. havuti havute havuti
Plural nom. havuti havute havuta
acc. havutos havutas havuta
dat. havutom havutam havutom
gen. havutoro havutaro havutoro
Present participle havente
Gerund havendu
Person   
   Tense
first singular
ic
second singular
þû
third singular
is, ia, atha
first plural
vi
second plural
gi
third plural
eis, ise, ia
Indicative Present active aggio hais hâþ abbiamos havetes hondo
Present passive havara havasa havaða havanða havanða havanða
Present perfect active aggio havutu hais havutu hâþ havutu abbiamos havutu havetes havutu hondo havutu
Present perfect passive havara havutu havasa havutu havaða havutu havanða havutu havanða havutu havanða havutu
Imperfect active havaeðo havaeðas havaeðat havaeðamos havaeðates havaeðanno
Imperfect passive havaeðara havaeðasa havaeðaða havaeðanða havaeðanða havaeðanða
Preterite active ebbi havesti ebbet havemmos havestes ebbero
Preterite passive ebbira havessa ebbeða havemma havemma havemma
Future active havraggio havrais havrât havrêmos havrêtes havrondo
Future passive havrêra havrêsa havrêða havrênða havrênða havrênða
Future perfect active havraggio havutu havrais havutu havrât havutu havrêmos havutu havrêtes havutu havrondo havutu
Future perfect passive havrêra havutu havrêsa havutu havrêða havutu havrênða havutu havrênða havutu havrênða havutu
Subjunctive Present active abbia abbias abbiat abbiamos abbiates abbianno
Present passive abbiara abbiasa abbiaða abbianða abbianða abbianða
Imperfect active havessi havessis havessit havessimos havessites havessero
Imperfect passive havessira havessisa havessiða havessinða havessinða havessinða
Preterite active abbia havutu abbias havutu abbiat havutu abbiamos havutu abbiates havutu abbianno havutu
Preterite passive abbiara havutu abbiasa havutu abbiaða havutu abbianða havutu abbianða havutu abbianða havutu
Conditional Present active haverebbi haveresti haverebbet haveremmos haverestes haverebbero
Present passive haverebbira haveressa haverebbeða haveremma haveremma haveremma
Preterite active haverebbi havutu haveresti havutu haverebbet havutu haveremmos havutu haverestes havutu haverebbero havutu
Preterite passive haverebbira havutu haveressa havutu haverebbeða havutu haveremma havutu haveremma havutu haveremma havutu
Imperative Positive   havae   havete  
Negative   non havere   non haverete  

Adverbs

An adjective can be made into a modal adverb by adding -mente (from Latin “mente”, ablative of “mens” (mind), feminine noun) to the ending of the feminine singular form of the adjective. E.g. lenta “slow (feminine)” becomes lentamente “slowly”. Adjectives ending in -re or -le lose their e before adding -mente (facile “easy” becomes facilmente “easily”, particolare “particular” becomes particolarmente “particularly”). Other adjectives become adverbs by adding -e. E.g. solu (alone) becomes sole (only).

These adverbs can also be derived from the absolute superlative form of adjectives, e.g. lentissimamente (“very slowly").

There is also a plethora of temporal, local, modal and interrogative adverbs, mostly derived from Latin.

Prepositions

Luthic has a closed class of basic prepositions, to which a number of adverbs can be added that also double as prepositions.

In modern Luthic, all the basic prepositions have to be combined with an article placed next to them. Prepositions normally require the article before the following noun in a similar way as the English language does. However Latin’s (and to extension, Gothic) lack of articles influenced several cases of prepositions used without article in Luthic. The prepositions tra and fra are interchangeable, and often chosen on the basis of euphony.

Mandatory contractions
Luthic English Preposition + article
m. sg. f. sg. n. sg. l’ m. pl. f. pl. n. pl.
di of, from da da da dal’ dom dam dom
du to gia gia gia gi’ giom giam giom
a to, at allo alla allatha all’ allos allas alla
da from, by, since dalla dalla dalla dall’ dallom dallam dallom
in in nallo nalla nallatha nall’ nallos nallas nalla
ana into, on, onto agnio agnia agniatha an’ agnios agnias agnia
su + ACC on, about sullo sulla sullatha sull’ sullos sullas sulla
su + DAT on, about sulla sulla sulla sull’ sullom sullam sullom
Optional contractions
Luthic English Preposition + article
m. sg. f. sg. n. sg. l’ m. pl. f. pl. n. pl.
miþ with miþþa miþþa miþþa miþþ’ miþþom miþþam miþþom
inu without inna inna inna inn’ innom innam innom
faur for, through faullo faulla faullatha faull’ faullos faullas faulla
tra between, among tralla tralla tralla trall’ trallom trallam trallom
fra between, among fralla fralla fralla frall’ frallom frallam frallom
Preconsonantal apocopated forms
Luthic English Preposition + article
du to gi
a to, at al
da from, by, since dal
in in nal
ana into, on, onto gnia
su + ACC/DAT on, about sul

Demonstrative pronouns contractions

Furthermore, prepositions also have optional contractions with the proximal and medial demonstrative pronouns:

Contractions with demonstrative pronouns
Luthic English Preposition + article
m. sg. pro. f. sg. pro. n. sg.
pro.
m. pl. pro. f. pl. pro. n. pl. pro. m. sg. med. f. sg. med. n. sg. med. m. pl. med. f. pl. med. n. pl. med.
di of, from daþþammo daþþise daþþammo daþþom daþþam daþþom desti desta desta destivo destam destom
du to giaþþammo giaþþise giaþþammo giaþþom giaþþam giaþþom giesti giesta giesta giestivo giestam
a to, at aþþo aþþa aþþatha aþþos aþþas aþþa
da from, by, since daþþammo daþþise daþþammo daþþom daþþam daþþom desti desta desta destivo destam destom
in in naþþo naþþa naþþatha naþþos naþþas naþþa neste nesta nestatha nestes nestas nesta
su + ACC on, about suþþo suþþa suþþatha suþþos suþþas suþþa
su + DAT on, about suþþammo suþþise suþþammo suþþom suþþam suþþom
miþ with miþþammo miþþise miþþammo miþþom miþþam miþþom miþþesti miþþesta miþþesta miþþestivo miþþestam miþþestom
faur for fauþþo fauþþa fauþþatha fauþþos fauþþas fauþþa
tra between, among traþþammo traþþise traþþammo traþþom traþþam traþþom
fra between, among fraþþammo fraþþise fraþþammo fraþþom fraþþam fraþþom

Conjunctions

Most of the Luthic monosyllabic conjunctions and prepositions have preconsonantal and prevocalic variations.

  • e and ed
  • au and aud
  • a and ab
  • a and ad

Intervocalic conjunctions are often reduced, these reductions are however not mandatory:

  • e, ed but ·d if intervocalic
  • ac but ·c if intervocalic

Examples:

  • Ic e þû (I and you)
  • Ic ed is (I and he)
  • Þû·d ic (You and I)
  • Is ed ic (He and I)
  • Ic au þû? (I or you?)
  • Ic aud is? (I or he?)
  • Þû·d ic? (You or I?)
  • Is aud ic? (He or I?)

Romance copula

Main article: Romance copula

As a Romance language, Luthic shares the complexities of the copula in Romance languages when to its counterparts in other languages. A copula is a word that links the subject of a sentence with a predicate (a subject complement). Whereas English has one main copula verb (and some languages like Russian mostly express the copula implicitly) some Romance languages have more complex forms.

Vessare generally focuses on the essence of the subject, and specifically on qualities that include:

  1. Nationality
  2. Possession
  3. Physical and personality traits
  4. Material
  5. Origin

Stare generally focuses on the condition of the subject, and specifically on qualities that include:

  1. Physical condition
  2. Feelings, emotions, and states of mind
  3. Appearance

Vessare is the main copula. Stare refers to state rather than essence, but more narrowly than in Spanish. Vessare is used for almost all cases in which English uses “to be”. It therefore makes sense to concentrate on the few uses of stare.

  • Stare means “to be”, “to be feeling”, or “to appear”.
  • Stare is used to form continuous forms of tenses.
  • Stare’s past participle statu has replaced that of vessare, and so statu is used for “been” in all senses.
  • Stare is occasionally “to be located.” This is very common for both transient and durable location.

Sentence structure

Luthic is an OV (Object-Verb) language. Additionally, Luthic, like all Germanic languages except English, uses V2 word order, though only in independent clauses. In dependent clauses, the finite verb is placed last.

Declarative sentences use V2 (verb in the second position) word order: the finite verb is preceded by one and only one constituent (unlike in English, this doesn’t need to be the subject). The subject is usually omitted when it is a pronoun – distinctive verb conjugations make it redundant. Subject pronouns are considered emphatic when used at all. All examples given below ignore possible clitics, reductions or other more complex grammatical features of Luthic, these are often labeled “book phrases” for Luthic students and have a very pure and simplified grammar.


(Ic) dregco la vadne.
ic dregc-o l-a vadn-e
I.NOM drink-PRS.1SG the-ACC.SG.F water-ACC.SG
“I drink water (lit. I drink the water).”


La vadne dregco (ic).
l-a vadn-a dregc-o ic
the-ACC.SG.F water-ACC.SG drink-PRS.1SG I.NOM
“The water I drink.”


Non-finite verbs as well as separable particles are placed at the end of the sentence:


La meina frigionda ist al festa anaqemandu.
l-a mein-a frigiond-a ist al fest-a ana=qem-andu
the-ACC.SG.F my-ACC.SG.F friend-ACC.SG.F is at=the-DAT.SG.F party-DAT.SG on=come-GER
“My friend is arriving (lit. is on-coming) at the party.”


La meina frigionda qemaut al festa ana.
l-a mein-a frigion-a qem-aut al fest-a ana
the-ACC.SG.F my-ACC.SG.F friend-ACC.SG.F come-PRF.3SG at=the-DAT.SG.F party-DAT.SG on
“My friend arrived (lit. on-came) at the party.”


An inversion is used to emphasise an adverbial phrase, a predicative, an object, or an inner verbal phrase in a sentence. The subject phrase, at the beginning of an indicative unstressed sentence, is moved directly behind the conjugated verb, and the component to be emphasised is moved to the beginning of the sentence. The conjugated verb is always the second sentence element in indicative statements.


Example 1:

Fliugat snele. “(It) flies fast.” – not emphasised;
Snele fliugat. “Fast (it) flies.” – emphasised, i.e. “Fast is how it flies.”


Example 2:

Is liuvaleicu. “(You) are adorable.” – not emphasised;
Liuvaleicu is. “Adorable (you) are.” – emphasised, i.e. “Adorable is what you are.”


Interrogative and command sentences use the V1 (verb-first) word order: the finite verb occupies the first position in the sentence. However, wh question sentences use the V2 word order. The pronoun subject is never omitted in those cases. Questions are formed by a rising intonation at the end of the sentence (in written form, a question mark).


Fliugas þû snele?
fliug-as þû snel-e
fly-PRS.2SG you.SG fast-ADVR
“Do you fly fast?”


Ce taugis þû?
ce taugis þû
what do-PRS.2SG you-SG
“What are you doing?”


Taugiâ þû svasve rogio!
taugi-â þû svasve rogi-o
do-IMP.2SG you.SG as say-PRS.1SG
“Do as I say!”


Relative and subordinate clauses maintain the same word order.

Intonation of Luthic relative clauses


Galauvo ei, sariat beteze si þatha tavissimos gestradage.
galauv-o ei sari-at betez-e si þatha ta-vi-ssimos gestradag-e
think-PRS.1SG that be-CND.PRS.3SG better-ADVR if it.ACC.SG do-IMPF-CND.1PL tomorrow-ADVR
“I think that it would be better if we did it tomorrow.”


Galauvas þû ei, sariat beteze si þatha tavissimos gestradage?
galauv-as þû ei sari-at betez-e si þatha ta-vi-ssimos gestradag-e
think-PRS.2SG you.SG that be-CND.PRS.3SG better-ADVR if it.ACC.SG do-IMPF-CND.1PL tomorrow-ADVR
“Do you think that it would be better if we did it tomorrow?”

Case usage

Luthic case usage is very similar to Gothic, itself who calqued Ancient Greek grammar.

  • Nominative: (Ic) im lûthicu. “I am Luthic”
  • Accusative: (Ic) spraco lo lûthico. “I speak Luthic”
  • Dative: (Ic) laso lo lûthico þus. “I teach Luthic to you”
  • Genitive: La rasda lûthicoro þiudesca non ist. “The language of the Luths is not Germanic”


  • Ablato-locatival accusative:
  • Extent of space: (Is) qaervaut þreis chilometros. “He walked three kilometres”
  • Duration of time: (Is) non beidaut aeno dago. “He didn’t wait for one day”
  • Place when: Þo staþo. “In/on this place”
  • Sometimes prepositional: Naþþo staþo. “id.
  • Time when: Giaeno vintru. “In/at/during that winter”
  • Within which: Leizelas horas (is) scolat sveltare. “Within a few hours he shall die”
  • Sometimes prepositional (dative is used instead): Dentro di leizelam horam (is) scolat sveltare. “Within a few hours he shall die”


  • Dative:
  • Purpose: Mannesci non ovela, ac gôðana taugianda. “Humans are not made for evil, but for good”
  • Action for: Þus scolo helfare los frigiondos þeinos. “I must help your friends for you”
  • Purpose for action for: Qenam naseini im. “I am the (cause of) salvation for women”
  • Action against: La þeina frescapi scolo gadauþare þuc. “Against/in opposition to your freedom I shall kill you”
  • Purpose for action against: Manni dauþam im. “I am the (cause of) death for men” (affects negatively)
  • Concerning: Ce þû mis scolas taugiare? “What will you do for me? (expressing the speaker being especially interested in what the other is doing for him or her)”


  • Instrumento-dative:
  • Instrument: (Ic) reizo penno. “I write with a pen”
  • Means: (Ic) saeco augonivo. “I see with the eyes”
  • Impersonal agent: Is gadauþada coltella velvi. “He was killed by the knife of the robber”
  • Manner: (Ic) fregio þuc managa fregiaþþa. “I love you with many affection”
  • Prepositional if with no adjective: (Ic) fregio þuc miþ fregiaþþa. “I love you with affection”
  • Accompaniment: (Ic) scolo qemare frigiondom. “I shall come with friends”
  • Sometimes prepositional: (Ic) scolo qemare miþ frigiondom. “id.
  • Degree of difference: (Is) alþezo aenom giarivo. “He is older by a few years”
  • Quality: Aenu vaere summa honesta. “A man of highest honesty”


  • Ablato-dative:
  • Separation: (Ic) sculo cofare l’ovelo þus. “I shall keep the evil away from you”
  • Motion away (prepositional): Giofa Ravenna du America furondo. “They went from Ravenna to America”
  • Personal agent (prepositional): Roma a lom Gôthicom qesciada. “Rome is destroyed by the Goths”
  • Comparison (adjectival): Qenam scauneza. “More beautiful than women”
  • Cause: (Ic) greto ira ed agi. “I cry with anger and fear” (marks the reason)
  • Instrumento-genitive:
  • Material: La celecna staene. “The tower made of stone”
  • Author/creator: Þa celecna taveða manum meinara. “This tower was built by my hands”
  • Behaviour: Molle vadni. “Soft like water”
  • Often displaced by the relative adverb: Molle svasve vadne. “Soft like water”

Example text

Schleicher’s fable in Standard Luthic:

La pecora e gl’aeqqi
Aena pecora ei, stavat inu volla, saecaut somos aeqqos: aeno eisôro tiravat aeno pesante carro, aeno anþero baeravat aeno mêchelo carico ed aeno anþero transportavat aeno manno snele. La pecora roðit all’aeqqos: “Mic pianget atha haertene saecandu ce il mannu trattat l’aeqqos”. Gl’aeqqi roðirondo: “Ascoltâ, pecora: faur unse ist penosu saecare ei, il mannu, l’unsar signiore, sic taugit aena veste la volla pecore, mentre le pecore ristondo inu volla”. Dopo ascoltauða þatha, la pecora agro fliugat.
aen-a pecor-a ei st-avat inu voll-a saec-aut som-os aeqq-os aen-o eis-ôro tir-av-at aen-o pesant-e carr-o aen-o anþer-o baer-av-at aen-o mêchel-o caric-o ed aen-o anþer-o transport-av-at aen-o mann-o snel-e l-a pecor-a roð-it al-l=aeqq-os mic piang-et atha haerten-e saec-andu ce il mann-u tratt-at l=aeqq-os gl=aeqq-i roð-irondo ascolt-â pecor-a faur uns-e ist penos-u saec-are ei il mann-o l=unsar signior-e sic taug-it aen-a vest-e l-a voll-a pecor-e mentre l-e pecor-e rist-ondo inu voll-a dopo ascolt-au-ða þatha l-a pecor-a agr-o fliug-at
a-NOM.F.SG sheep-NOM.SG that be-IMPF.3SG without wool-DAT.SG see-PRF.3SG some-ACC.M.PL horse-ACC.PL one-ACC.M.SG they-GEN.M.PL pull-IMPF.3SG wagon-ACC.SG one-ACC.M.SG other-ACC.SG bring-IMPF.3SG a-ACC.M.SG big-ACC.M.SG load-ACC.SG and one-ACC.M.SG other-ACC.SG carry-IMPF.3SG a-ACC.M.SG man-ACC.SG fast-ADVR the-NOM.F.SG sheep-NOM.SG say-PRF.3SG to=the-ACC.M.PL horse-ACC.PL I.ACC.SG pain-PRS.3SG the-ACC.N.SG heart-ACC.SG see-GRD how the-NOM.M.SG man-NOM.SG manage-PRS.3SG the-ACC.M.PL=horse-ACC.PL the-NOM.M.PL=horse-NOM.PL say-PRF.3PL hear-IMP.2SG sheep-NOM.SG for us.ACC.PL be-PRS.3SG pitiful see-INF that the-NOM.M.SG man-NOM.SG the-NOM.M.SG=our-NOM.M.SG lord-NOM.SG do-PRS.3R.SG a-ACC.F.SG garnment-ACC.SG the-DAT.F.SG wool-DAT.SG sheep-GEN.SG whereas the-NOM.F.PL sheep-NOM.PL remain-PRS.3PL without wool-DAT.SG after hear-IMPF.PASS.3SG that.ACC.N.SG the-NOM.F.SG sheep-NOM.SG field-ACC.SG flee-PRS.3SG

Dialectology

Geographical distribution.

Luthic has many sociolects, whose differ in phonology and grammar; Standard Ravennese Luthic is the only form who declines noun by cases, other informal sociolects are way closer to other Romance languages in grammar (restrict register). Whereas sociolect refers to a variation in language between different social groups, dialect is a language variation based upon a geographical location, and Luthic has a small geographical area.

Upper Luthic

A major dialect is found nearby Ferrara, who was first mentioned when it was conquered by Germanic tribe the Lombards in 753 CE, and the Byzantine Empire lost its rule over the city. It was gifted to the Holy See by the Franks in either 754 or 756 CE, and was led by the Bishops of Ravenna. Benedictine and Cistercian monasteries started reclaiming Podeltan lands in the 9th century. This contact with West Germanic languages, and the lesser presence of East Germanic influence (unlike Ravenna) modelled some sound changes in discrepancy when compared to Standard Ravennese Luthic. This dialect is often called Ferraresi Luthic (Lûthica Estense) or Upper Luthic (Altalûthica).

  • Bilabial and labiodental merging: /ɸ/ and /β/ are merged with /f/ and /v/, a common feature among Luthic dialects.
  • Thorn fortition: /θ/ and /ð/ are fortified to /t/ and /d/ in every position:
  • Vowel fracture: Luthic strong vowels become diphthongs, ⟨ae⟩ /ɛ/ > ⟨ai⟩ /ɐj/, ⟨au⟩ /ɔ/ > ⟨au⟩ /aw/, ⟨ei⟩ /i/ > ⟨ei⟩ /ɐj/:
  • The feminine plural form is always realised as /e/.
  • Monophthongisation: Luthic diphthong /ju/ is monophthongised to /y/:
  • Loss of untressed final vowels and terminal devoicing: Every unstressed vowel is dropped, except in plurals and monosyllabic words; terminal consonants are devoiced (except if sonorants):
  • Deaffrication: Affricates are lenited to fricatives:
  • Loss of stress: Stress is fully lost, together with Gorgia Toscana:
  • Degemination: Lack of gemination as a distinctive feature:
  • Loss of coarticulations:

Sample text and comparison

  • Orthographic version in Standard Ravennese Luthic

Faðar unsar, þû hemeno,
Veiða latha namno þeino;
La þiuðanagarda þeina qemit;
Lo vegliano þeino taugiat;
Svasve hemeno ed ana aerþa.
Il chiaefu qotidianu unsar gevâ unse oggi,
Ed afietâ las unsaras colpas,
Svasve afietiamos þos ei, colpando unsis;
E non letare unse in tentazione
Ac frieau unse da mala.
Faur þuc ist þiuðanagarda,
E la forza, la volþa,
Faur saechia saechioro. Amen.

  • Orthographic version in Upper Luthic

Fadar unsar, tû in emen
Veit lat namn tein
La teudanagart tein qemit
Lo velhan tein taugiat;
Sva in emen et an airt.
Il qiaif qotidian unsar gevâ uns ogi
Et afietâ le unsere colpe
Sva afietiamos esti ei, colpan unsis
E non letar unse in tentazion
Ac friau unse di il mal.
Faur tuc ist la teudanagart,
E la forza, la glori
Faur la saiqia di la saiqia. Amen.


  • Standard Ravennese Luthic narrow transcription

[ˈfa.ðɐr ˈũ.sɐr | ˈθu eˈme.no
ˈvi.ðɐ lɐ.tɐ.n‿ˈnam.no ˈθi.no
lɐ θjuˌða.nɐˈɡar.dɐ ˈθi.nɐ ˈkᶣe.miθ
lo veʎˈʎa.no ˈθi.no ˈtɔ.d͡ʒɐθ
zvɐ.zve eˈme.no e.ð‿ɐ.nɐ ˈɛr.θɐ
il ˈk̟jɛ.ɸu kʷo.θiˈdja.nu ˈũ.sɐr d͡ʒeˈβa ũ.se ˈɔd.d͡ʒi
e.ð‿ɐ.ɸjeˈta lɐs ˈũ.sɐ.rɐs ˈk̠ol.pɐs
zvɐ.zve ɐ.ɸjeˈtja.mo.θ‿θos ˈi | k̠olˈpɐn.do ũ.sis
e non leˈta.re ũ.se in ten.tɐtˈt͡sjo.ne
ɐ.f‿frjeˈɔ ũ.se da.m‿ˈma.la
fɔr θux ist θjuˌða.nɐˈɡar.da
e la ˈfɔr.t͡sa | la ˈvol.θa
fɔr ˈsɛ.k̟jɐ ˈsɛ.k̟jo.ru ‖ ˈa.men]

  • Upper Luthic narrow transcription

[fɐ.dɐɾ ũ.sɐɾ | tu in e.men
vɐjt lɐt nɐmn tɐjn
lɐ ty.dɐ.nɐ.ɡɐɾt tɐjn k̟e.mit
lo ve.ʎɐn tɐjn tɐw.ʒɐt
zvɐ in e.men e.t‿ɐn ɐjɾt
il k̟jɐjf ko.ti.djɐn ũ.sɐɾ ʒe.va ũs ɔ.ʒi
e.t‿ɐ.fjeˈta le ũ.sɐ.ɾe kol.pe
zvɐ ɐ.fje.tjɐ.mos es.ti i | kol.pɐn ũ.sis
e non le.tɐɾ ũs in ten.tɐ.sjon
ɐk fɾjɔ ũs di il mɐl
fɔɾ tuk ist lɐ ty.dɐ.nɐ.ɡɐɾt
e lɐ fɔrs | lɐ ɡlɔ.ɾi
fɔɾ lɐ sɐj.k̟jɐ di lɐ sɐj.k̟jɐ ‖ ɐ.men]


Although general grammar remains very similar, prepositions become more frequent due to a lack of cases. Some sociolects may also lack the neuter gender, fully merging it with the masculine or the feminine (via the plural form). There are also many ethnolects influenced by regional languages, such as the Lutho-Emilian ethnolect, who has its grammar and vocabulary largely affected and influenced by the Emilian dialects. The orthography may also be affected, since Upper Luthic lacks a regulatory body:

  • ⟨gi⟩ or ⟨j⟩ for /ʒ/: Standard Ravennese Luthic giâ [ˈd͡ʒa], Upper Luthic gia or ja [ʒɐ];
  • ⟨gli⟩ or ⟨lh⟩ for /ʎ/: Standard Ravennese Luthic gli [ʎi], Upper Luthic gli or lhi [ʎi];
  • ⟨gni⟩ or ⟨nh⟩ for /ɲ/: Standard Ravennese Luthic signiore [siɲˈɲo.re], Upper Luthic signior or sinhor [si.ɲoɾ];
  • ⟨eu⟩, ⟨y⟩ or ⟨ü⟩ for /y/: Standard Ravennese Luthic niu [nju], Upper Luthic neu, ny or [ny];
  • Disagreement on voiceless terminal consonant spelling: Standard Ravennese Luthic ac [ɐx], Upper Luthic ac or ag [ɐk]; Standard Ravennese Luthic garda [ˈɡar.dɐ], Upper Luthic gart or gard [ɡɐɾt].

Another problem with Upper Luthic lacking a regulatory body is the lack of official statistics:

  • Unknown amount of native speakers;
  • Unknown status as an endangered language;
  • Lack of resources.

Upper Luthic phonology

Estimate vowels of Upper Luthic
Front Central Back
oral nasal oral nasal oral nasal
Close i ĩ u ũ
Close-mid e o õ
Open-mid ɛ ɐ ɐ̃ ɔ
Estimate consonants of Upper Luthic
Labial Dental/
Alveolar
Postalveolar Palatal Velar Uvular
Nasal m n ɲ ŋ
Plosive voiceless p t k
voiced b d ɡ
Fricative voiceless f s ʃ
voiced v z ʒ
Approximant semivowel j w
lateral l ʎ
Flap ɾ
Trill ʀ
  • /k/ and /ɡ/ are described as pre-velar [k̟] and [ɡ̟] to palatal [c] and [ɟ] before /i, e, ɛ, j/;
  • /ʃ/ and /ʒ/ are not labialised and are in free variation with [ʂ] and [ʐ];
  • /ʀ/ is in free variation with [r];
  • /ʎ/ may be described as a fricative [ʎ̝].

Upper Luthic morphology

Nominal declension
Number o-stem m a-stem f o-stem n i-stem unm r-stem unm d-stem unm
Singular dac (< dagu) gef (< geva) auvit (< hauviþo) craft (< crafte) brotar (< broþar) piet (< pied-)
Plural dagi geve auvita crafti brotari piedi

In general, Upper Luthic has similar, and simpler, nominal declension paradigmata. For u-stems nouns, they are fully merged with o-stems.

Verbal conjugation
Tense Forms
Infinitive aver
Auxiliary verb aver
Past participle
Number masculine feminine neuter
Singular avut avuta avut
Plural avuti avute avuta
Present participle avent
Gerund avent
Person   
   Tense
first singular
ic
second singular
third singular
is, ia, at
first plural
vi
second plural
gi
third plural
eis, ise, ia
Indicative Present active o ais at aimos aites an
Present passive avar avas avat avant avant avant
Present perfect active o avut ais avut at avut aimos avut aites avut an avut
Present perfect passive avar avut avas avut avat avut avant avut avant avut avant avut
Imperfect active avait avaitas avaitat avaitamos avaitates avaitan
Imperfect passive avaitar avaitas avaitat avaitant avaitant avaitant
Preterite active ep avest ebbet avemmos avestes ebber
Preterite passive ebbira aves ebbet avem avem avem
Future active avro avrais avrat avremos avretes avran
Future passive avrar avras avrat avrant avrant avrant
Future perfect active avro avut avrais avut avrat avut avremos avut avrêtes avut avran avut
Future perfect passive avrar avut avras avut avrat avut avrant avut avrant avut avrant avut
Subjunctive Present active abbi abbias abbiat abbiamos abbiates abbian
Present passive abbair abbais abbait abbaint abbaint abbaint
Imperfect active avessi avessis avessit avessimos avessites avesser
Imperfect passive avessir avessis avessit avessint avessint avessint
Preterite active abbi avut abbias avut abbiat avut abbiamos avut abbiates avut abbian avut
Preterite passive abbair avut abbais avut abbait avut abbaint avut abbaint avut abbaint avut
Conditional Present active averi averias averiat averiamos averiates averian
Present passive averiar averias averiat averiant averiant averiant
Preterite active averi avut averias avut averiat avut averiamos avut averiates avut averian avut
Preterite passive averiar avut averias avut averiat avut averiant avut averiant avut averiant avut
Imperative Positive   ave   avet  
Negative   non aver   non averet  

Some verbal forms are speculation (by applying and following the common sound changes), as they are not attested.

Standard Bolognese Luthic

"… I say, then, that perhaps those are not wrong who claim that the Bolognese speak a more beautiful language than most, especially since they take many features of their own speech from that of the people who live around them, in Imola, Ferrara and Modena I believe that everybody does this with respect to his own neighbours.... So the above-mentioned citizens of Bologna take a soft, yielding quality from those of Imola, and from the people of Ferrara and Modena, on the other hand, a certain abruptness which is more typical of the Lombards.... If, then, the Bolognese take from all sides, as I have said, it seems reasonable to suggest that their language, tempered by the combination of opposites mentioned above, should achieve a praiseworthy degree of elegance; and this, in my opinion, is beyond doubt true."
(Dante Alighieri, De vulgari eloquentia - Liber I, xv, 2-5)

Although very similar to Standard Ravennese Luthic, there is noticeable influence from the regional Bolognese dialects, dialects of Emilian, one of the Gallo-Italic languages of the Romance family:

Furthermore, Standard Bolognese Luthic is affected by apophony:

Raising-type metaphony
Unaffected Mutated
/ˈmet.to/ “I put” /ˈmit.tis/ “you put”
/ˈes.to/ “this (neut.)” /ˈis.tu/ “this (masc.)”
/moˈdɛs.tɐ/ “modest (fem.)” /moˈdes.tu/ “modest (masc.)”
/ˈspo.zɐ/ “wife” /ˈspu.zu/ “husband”
/ˈmɔ.reθ/ “he dies” /ˈmo.ris/ “you die”
/ˈmɔ.ʃɐ/ “depressed (fem.)” /ˈmo.ʃu/ “depressed (masc.)”

Standard Bolognese Luthic phonology

Standard Bolognese Luthic is almost identical to Standard Ravennese Luthic, itself being very similar to the phonology of Emilian Bolognese dialects.

Vowel phonemes of Standard Bolognese Luthic
Front Central Back
oral nasal oral nasal oral nasal
Close i ĩ u ũ
Close-mid e o õ
Open-mid ɛ ɐ ɐ̃ ɔ
Open a
Consonant phonemes of Standard Bolognese Luthic
Labial Dental/
Alveolar
Postalveolar Palatal Velar
plain labialized
Nasal m n ɲ ŋ (ŋʷ)
Plosive voiceless p t k
voiced b d ɡ ɡʷ
Fricative voiceless f s θ ʃ (x)
voiced v z
Affricate voiceless (p͡f) t͡s (t͡θ)
voiceless d͡z
Approximant semivowel j w
lateral l ʎ
Gorgia Toscana (ʋ) (ð̞) (ɣ˕)
Trill r

Voiceless continuants /f, s, θ, x/ are always constrictive [f, s, θ, x], but voiced continuants /v, ð, j, ɣ/ are not very constrictive and are often closer to approximants [ʋ, ð̠˕, j, ɣ˕] than fricatives [v, ð̠, ʝ, ɣ]. Voiceless fricatives are often fortified to affricates after alveolar consonants, such as /n l ɾ/, or general nasals:

Paulistan Luthic

Paulistan Luthic
Lútico (paulista)
Pronunciation[ˈlu.t͡ʃi.ku (pawˈlis.tɐ)]
Created byLëtzelúcia
EthnicityLutho-Brazilians
Native speakers5,000 (2022)
Indo-European
Official status
Recognised minority
language in
Brazil (recognised in São Paulo)
Regulated byCouncil for the Luthic Language (partially)

Italian migration to Brazil initiated in 1875, when Brazil began to promote to the country in order to increase its population, creating rural “colonies” for Italians and other Europeans to migrate to, as in between 1880 and 1920, more than one million Italians have immigrated to Brazil. Among all Italians who immigrated to Brazil, 70% went to the State of São Paulo. In consequence, São Paulo has more people with Italian ancestry than any region of Italy itself. Despite the poverty and even semi-slavery conditions faced by many Italians in Brazil, most of the population achieved some personal success and changed their lower-class situation.

Brazil remained neutral at the start of World War II in September 1939, however, German U-boats sank six Brazilian ships in the Atlantic, resulting on Brazil declaring war on Germany and Italy on 22 August 1942. The Brazilians forces fought mainly within Tuscany and Emilia-Romagna regions.

The Brazilian contact with Emilia-Romagna and the Italian immigration to Brazil resulted in a Brazilian dialect of Luthic spoken in São Paulo, known as Paulistan Luthic (endonym: Lútico paulista [ˈlu.t͡ʃi.ku pawˈlis.tɐ]; Standard Ravennese Luthic: Lûthica Paülista [ˈlu.ti.xɐ pɐwˈlis.tɐ]). Paulistan Luthic is heavily influenced by the Paulistano dialect of Portuguese (Portuguese pronunciation: [paw.lisˈtɐ̃.nu]), as the accent is dominant in Brazilian mass media and is often associated with “standard” Brazilian Portuguese.

Characteristics of Paulistan Luthic

Main phonological differences:

  • e-prosthesis: In word-initially /sC/ clusters, e-prosthesis is triggered: Standard Ravennese Luthic stare > Paulistan Luthic estare.
  • degemination: Paulistan Luthic lacks geminate consonants: Standard Ravennese Luthic soffiare [soɸˈɸja.re] > Paulistan Luthic [soˈfja.re]
  • thorn stopping and voicing: A similar process that happened with southern German dialects, the High German consonant shift: Standard Ravennese Luthic þû > Paulistan Luthic du
  • edh stopping: /ð/ is fortified to /d/ in every position: Standard Ravennese Luthic faðar > Paulistan Luthic fadre
  • r-metathesis: r-stem nouns ending in -ar are always reanalised as -re: Standard Ravennese Luthic broþar > Paulistan Luthic brodre
  • /t, d/ palatalisation before /i, ĩ, j/: In most of Portuguese varieties spoken in Brazil, the variable palatalisation of alveolar stops turns consonants /t, d/ into affricates [t͡ʃ, d͡ʒ], this highly affected Paulistan Luthic: Standard Ravennese Luthic Lûthica [ˈlu.ti.xɐ], di [di] > Paulistan Luthic Lútica [ˈlu.t͡ʃi.kɐ], di [d͡ʒi]
  • rhotic: The trill consonant /r/ is fully displaced by a tap consonant /ɾ/, of which may be also described as an approximant /ɹ/ pre-consonantal: Standard Ravennese Luthic rasda [ˈraz.dɐ], barca [ˈbar.kɐ] > Paulistan Luthic rasda [ˈɾaz.dɐ], barca [ˈbaɹ.kɐ]. Due to Paulistano influence, word-initial rhotics are often realised as /ʁ/ ~ /h/, resulting in rasda [ˈʁaz.dɐ] ~ [ˈhaz.dɐ], a great example is Standard Ravennese Luthic rapportu [rɐpˈpɔr.tu] and Paulistan Luthic rapporto [ʁɐˈpɔɹ.tu] ~ [hɐˈpɔɹ.tu]
  • lack of Gorgia Tuscana: Paulistan Luthic doesn't spirantise atonic plosives: Standard Ravennese Luthic capu [ˈka.fu] > Paulistan Luthic capo [ˈka.pu]
  • i-epenthesis: Word-terminally plosives are affected by i-epenthesis: Standard Ravennese Luthic ac [ɐx], ist [ist] > Paulistan Luthic ac [ɐ.kĭ], est [es.t͡ʃĭ], this may also be considered a kind of paragoge. This may also happen in consonant clusters if if the second consonant is not /ɾ/ or /l/, resulting in opziune /opˈsju.ne/ > [opiˈsju.ni]
  • deaffrication: the palatalised forms of /t/, /k/ and /ɡ/, are realised as /s/, /s/ and /ʒ/ retrospectively: Standard Ravennese Luthic dicidere [di.t͡ʃiˈde.re], geva [ˈd͡ʒe.βɐ] > Paulistan Luthic dicidere [d͡ʒi.siˈde.ɾe], geva [ˈʒe.vɐ] and Standard Ravennese Luthic Luthic ziu (from Latin thīus) [ˈt͡si.u] > Paulistan Luthic zio [ˈsi.u ~ ˈzi.u]. In some cases, where /t͡s/ is voiced to /d͡z/, it is realised as /z/
  • nasalisation: like Paulitano, Paulistan Luthic nasalises every vowel before a nasal in NV.N-: Standard Ravennese Luthic banana [bɐˈna.nɐ] > Paulistan Luthic banana [bɐˈnɐ̃.nɐ]

Main orthographical differences:

  • Masculine nouns ending in ⟨u⟩ are always spelt as ⟨o⟩
  • Greco-Roman digraphs such as ⟨th⟩, ⟨ph⟩, ⟨ch⟩ are fully displaced by ⟨t⟩, ⟨f⟩, ⟨c⟩
  • For velar plosives before front vowels, they are spelt as ⟨qu⟩ and ⟨gu⟩
    • The velar nasal is no longer spelt as ⟨g⟩ before another velar, but rather as ⟨n⟩
  • The circumflex accent is displaced by the acute accent
  • Lack of ⟨þ⟩ and ⟨ð⟩ in the alphabet
  • Due to Portuguese influence ⟨j, k, w, x, y⟩ are way commoner instead of the nativisations ⟨gi, c(h), v, c ~ ss, i⟩ present in Standard Ravennese Luthic
  • The spellings ⟨gni⟩ and ⟨gli⟩ are fully displaced by ⟨nh⟩ and ⟨lh⟩; ⟨gni⟩ is also found as ⟨ñ⟩ in many communities nearby Spanish speakers, mainly outside the capital, such as Bauru, Sorocaba and Jundiaí

Main grammatical differences:

  • Loss of the neuter gender
  • Loss of the passive voice
  • u-stems are merged with o-stems
  • The verbs vessare and havere are fully displaced by tenere as the common auxiliary verb, mainly due to Portuguese influence
  • The nominative merges with the accusative, simplifying the general declension paradigmata

Demography and distribution

Map showing the areas of São Paulo where Paulistan Luthic is spoken today
Luthic speakers over 3 years of age in the municipality with most speakers (2022 IBGE census data). Absolute and relative numbers. Percentages given are in comparison to the total population of the corresponding state.
Region Totals Percentages
São Paulo 1,200 24%
São Bernardo do Campo 700 14%
Santo André 500 10%
Diadema 250 5%
São Caetano do Sul 230 4.6%
Jundiaí 230 4.6%
Bauru 210 4.2%
Sorocaba 180 3.6%
Ferraz de Vasconcelos, Embu Guaçu,
São Lourenço da Serra, Itapecerica da Serra,
Cotia, Embu das Artes, Taboão da Serra,
Osasco, Carapicuíba, Barueri, Jandira,
Itapevi, Vargem Grande Paulista
750 15%
Piratininga, Cabrália Paulista, Duartina, Avaí 650 13%
Total: 5,000 100%

According to Brazilian Institute of Geography and Statistics (Portuguese: Instituto Brasileiro de Geografia e Estatística; IBGE) Luthic is only spoken in São Paulo, and numbers may range anywhere from “perhaps a few dozen, up to almost two thousand people”.

According to the 2022 census by IBGE, Paulistan Luthic is spoken by 5,000 people, some 45 (0.9%) of whom are monolingual. The largest concentrations of Paulistan Luthic speakers are found in the municipalities of São Paulo and the ABCD Region, consisting of Santo André, São Bernardo do Campo, São Caetano do Sul and Diadema. A coniderable amount of Paulistan Luthic speakers are also found nearby the capital, in Ferraz de Vasconcelos, Embu Guaçu, São Lourenço da Serra, Itapecerica da Serra, Cotia, Embu das Artes, Taboão da Serra, Osasco, Carapicuíba, Barueri, Jandira, Itapevi, Vargem Grande Paulista, and nearby Bauru, in Piratininga, Cabrália Paulista, Duartina and Avaí.

Paulistan Luthic phonology

Consonant phonemes of Paulistan Luthic
Labial Dental/
Alveolar
Palatal Velar/Uvular
plain labial
Nasal m n ɲ ŋ
Plosive voiceless p t k (kʷ)
voiced b d ɡ (ɡʷ)
Affricate voiceless (t͡ʃ)
voiced (d͡ʒ)
Fricative voiceless f s ʃ
voiced v z ʒ
Approximant j w
Liquid central ɾ (ʁ)
lateral l ʎ
  • /ʁ/ can be velar, uvular, or glottal and may be voiceless unless between voiced sounds.
  • /kʷ/ and /ɡʷ/ may be realised as [kw] and [ɡw] instead.
  • /ɲ/ is often realised as [j̃], which nasalises the preceding vowel.
  • /ŋ/ is often realised as [w̃], which nasalises the preceding vowel.
  • /j, w/ are often realised as [ɪ̯, ʊ̯]​ in unstressed position.
  • /s/ and /z/ are normally lamino-alveolar, as in English.
  • As phonemes, /tʃ/ and /dʒ/ occur only in loanwords, but due to palatalisation, they are also found as allophones of /t/ and /d/ before /i/, /ĩ/ and /j/.
Vowel phonemes of Standard Luthic
Front Central Back
oral nasal oral nasal oral nasal
Close i ĩ u ũ
Close-mid e o õ
Open-mid ɛ ɐ ɐ̃ ɔ
Open a
  • /u/ is laxed to [ʊ] if unstressed.
  • /i/ is laxed to [ɪ] if unstressed.
  • /e/ is often realised as [i] if unstressed.
  • Nasalised /e/ and /o/ are often “diphthongised”, resulting in /ẽ/ > [ẽȷ̃] and, /õ/ > [õw̃].

Paulistan Luthic morphology

Paulistan Luthic has been greatly affected by Paulistano, however, it still has grammatical cases for noun, a feature it has not been lost, however, unlike Standard Ravennese Luthic, Paulistan Luthic does not drop its prepositions before a declined noun, another common feature in Luthic is to decline only the article preceding the noun.

  • Standard Ravennese Luthic i frigiondi “the friends” > Paulistan Luthic los frigiondo “the friends”
  • Standard Ravennese Luthic þo staþo “in this place” > Paulistan Luthic in do stado “in this place”
  • Standard Ravennese Luthic miþ lom piedivo “with the feet” > Paulistan Luthic mid lom piede “with the feet”
Number Case o-stem m a-stem f i-stem unm r-stem unm d-stem unm
Singular nom. acc. dago geva crafte brodre piede
dat. daga geva crafti brodri piedi
gen. dagi geve crafti brodri piedi
Plural nom. acc. dagos gevas craftes brodres piedes
dat. dagom gevam craftivo brodrivo piedivo
gen. dagoro gevaro craftem brodrem piedem

Verbs in Paulistan Luthic are way simpler than any other Luthic dialect, as there is no number distinction and basically no person distinction as well. Thence, Verbs are basically only conjugated according to mood and tense, the first person singular, however, is differentiated.

Active Indicative
þagcare credere holore dormire vessare havere ganare stare taugiare
ic þagco credo holo dormo im stô taugio
þû þagca crede holo dormi is stâ taugi
is þagca crede holo dormi is stâ taugi
vi þagca crede holo dormi is stâ taugi
gi þagca crede holo dormi is stâ taugi
eis þagca crede holo dormi is stâ taugi

Vocabulary

It is generally stated that Luthic has around 370,000 words, or 410,000 if obsolete words are counted, however 98% of the Luthic used today consists of only 5,800 words.

Luthic’s core lexicon (3,172 words), Lucia Giamane (2016)

A 2016 statistic by Lucia Giamane is based on 3,172 words chosen on the criteria of frequency, semantic richness and productivity, which also contain words formed on the territory of the Luthic language. This statistic gives the percentages below:

  • 1,200 words inherited from Gothic;
  • 953 words inherited from Latin;
  • 510 words, academic loanwords from Latin;
  • 133 words borrowed from Italian;
  • 125 words borrowed from West Germanic, such as Frankish, Langobardic and Standard High German;
  • 101 words formed in Luthic;
  • 98 words borrowed from French;
  • 52 words borrowed from Greek.

Luthic has approximately 2,000 uncompounded words inherited from Proto-Indo-European. These were inherited via:

  • 45% Germanic;
  • 43% Italic, Romance;
  • 8% Celtic;
  • 2% Hellenic;
  • 2% Uncertain.

A single etymological root appears in Luthic in a native form, inherited from Vulgar Latin, and a learned form, borrowed later from Classical Latin. The following pairs consist of a native noun and a learned adjective:

There are also noun-noun and adjective-adjective pairs with slightly different meanings:

  • thing / cause: cosa / caüsa from Latin causa;
  • bull / calf: toru / taüru from Latin taurus;
  • chilled / frozen: freddu / frigidu from Latin frīgidus.

Insertional code-switching

Code-switching or language alternation occurs when a speaker alternates between two or more languages, or language varieties, in the context of a single conversation or situation. Code-switching is different from plurilingualism in that plurilingualism refers to the ability of an individual to use multiple languages, while code-switching is the act of using multiple languages together.

Insertional code-switching is often referred to as “borrowing” or “tag-switching”, when lexical items from a secondary language are introduced into the primary language. These loan words are partially or fully assimilated into the secondary language, conforming to its phonological and morphological structure. Insertional code-switching serves a “pragmatic purpose, acting as sentence enhancers or indicating the speaker's attitude towards the context of an utterance.”

  • Standard Luthic: Il nattu stâþ scaunu. Le staerne sceinando e la luna stâþ folla.
  • Standard Italian: La notte è bella. Le stelle brillano e la luna è piena.
  • Insertional code-swicthing: Il nattu ae bellu. Le stelle sceinan(d)o e la luna ae piena.
    Note that both è and ae stand for /ɛ/.

The borrowed words can be integrated into the host language either partially or entirely, taking into account their phonological and morphological structure.

Swadesh list

The Swadesh list (/ˈswɑːdɛʃ/) is a compilation of tentatively universal concepts for the purposes of lexicostatistics. Translations of the Swadesh list into a set of languages allow researchers to quantify the interrelatedness of those languages. The Swadesh list is named after linguist Morris Swadesh. It is used in lexicostatistics (the quantitative assessment of the genealogical relatedness of languages) and glottochronology (the dating of language divergence). Because there are several different lists, some authors also refer to "Swadesh lists".

The most used list nowadays is the Swadesh 207-word list, adapted from Swadesh 1952.

Creating word lists depends on the decay of morphemes or changes in vocabulary. For glottochronology to be applicable to a language, the rate of morpheme decay must remain constant. This has led to criticism of the glottochronologic formula, as some linguists contend that the rate of morpheme decay cannot be assumed to be consistent over time. American linguist Robert Lees acquired a value for the “glottochronological constant” (r) of words by analysing the known changes in 13 pairs of languages using the 200-word list by Swadesh. He calculated a value of 0.805 ± 0.0176 with 90% confidence. Swadesh obtained a value of 0.86 for his 100-word list, with the higher value reflecting the exclusion of semantically unstable words. This constant is related to the retention rate of words by the following formula:

Glottochronologic constant.png

L is the rate of replacement, ln represents the natural logarithm and r is the glottochronological constant.

The basic formula of glottochronology in its shortest form is this:

Divergence time (short).png

t is a given period of time from one stage of the language to another (measured in millennia), c is the proportion of wordlist items retained at the end of that period and L is the rate of replacement for that word list.

Divergence time (long).png

By testing historically verifiable cases in which t is known by nonlinguistic data (such as the approximate distance from Classical Latin to modern Romance languages), Swadesh arrived at the empirical value of approximately 0.14 for L, which means that the rate of replacement constitutes around 14 words from the 100-wordlist per millennium. This is represented in the table below.

Glottochronology Time Scale
Rough Median Dating Median Cognate Retention in 100-Word List
500 BP 86%
1000 BP 74%
1500 BP 64%
2000 BP 55%
2500 BP 47%
3000 BP 40%
4000 BP 30%
5000 BP 22%
6000 BP 16%
7000 BP 12%
8000 BP 9%
9000 BP 7%
10000 BP 5%

Comparison

Linguistic map of Ravenna and neighbouring regions.
Italian: “Lingue parlate accanto al Lutico”
English: “Languages spoken alongside Luthic”

Lexical and grammatical similarities among the Romance languages spoken in Ravenna and Emilia-Romagna, and between Latin and each of them, are apparent from the following examples in various Romance lects, all meaning ‘She always closes the window before she dines/before dining’. Additional translations are provided in Gothic, German, Icelandic, due to Luthic Germanic stems, and other related Romance languages.

Latin (Ea) semper antequam cēnat fenestram claudit.
Gothic 𐍃𐌹 𐌰𐌹𐍅 𐍆𐌰𐌿𐍂(𐌰) 𐌼𐌰𐍄𐌾𐌹𐌸 𐌰𐌿𐌲𐌰𐌳𐌰𐌿𐍂𐍉 𐌲𐌰𐌻𐌿𐌺𐌹𐌸.
Si aiw faur(a) matjiþ augadaurō galūkiþ.
German Sie schließt immer das Fenster, bevor sie speist.
Sie immer schließt das Fenster bevor speist. (altered, wrong in Standard German)
Icelandic Hún æ fyrir metur glugganum lókar. (obsolete or altered)
Hún lokar alltaf glugganum áður en hún borðar. (standard Modern Icelandic)
Hún lokar alltaf glugganum fyrir mat. (also correct)
Luthic (Ia) galucet aeve la finestra faur di cenare / mazzire.
Upper Luthic (Lei) galucet aif la finestar faur id cenar / mazzir.
Reggiano Emilian (Lē) la sèra sèmpar sù la fnèstra prima ad snàr.
Bolognese Emilian (Lî) la sèra sänper la fnèstra prémma ed dṡnèr.
Placentine Emilian Ad sira lé la sèra seimpar la finéstra prima da seina.
Italian (Ella/lei) chiude sempre la finestra prima di cenare.
Eastern Lombard (Lé) la sèra sèmper sö la finèstra prima de senà.
Western Lombard (Lee) la sara sù semper la finestra primma de disnà / scenà.
Romagnol (Lia) la ciud sëmpra la fnèstra prëma ad magnè.
Tuscan Lei chiude sempre la finestra prima di cenà.
Umbrian Lia chiude sempre la finestra prima de cenà.
Venetian Eła ła sara / sera senpre ła fenestra vanti de diznar.
Northern Corsican Ella chjode / chjude sempre lu / u purtellu avanti/nanzu di cenà.
Southern Corsican Edda / Idda sarra / serra sempri u purteddu nanzu/prima di cinà.
Gallurese Idda chjude sempri lu balconi primma di cinà.
Ligurian (Le) a saera sempre u barcun primma de cenà.
Neapolitan Essa 'nzerra sempe 'a fenesta primma d'a cena / 'e magnà.
Piedmontese Chila a sara sèmper la fnestra dnans ëd fé sin-a/dnans ëd siné.
Romanian (Ea) închide întotdeauna fereastra înainte de a cina.
Campidanese Sardinian Issa serrat semp(i)ri sa bentana in antis de cenai.
Logudorese Sardinian Issa serrat semper sa bentana in antis de chenàre.
Sassarese Edda sarra sempri lu balchoni primma di zinà.
Sicilian Iḍḍa ncasa sempri a finesṭṛa prima ’i manciari â sira.
Lexical similarity coefficients
Luthic Italian Spanish Portuguese French Romanian Catalan Romansh Sardinian English German
Luthic 1 0.49 0.40 0.38 0.47 0.35 0.45 0.36 0.43 0.41 0.42
Italian 0.49 1 0.82 0.80 0.89 0.77 0.87 0.78 0.85
Spanish 0.40 0.82 1 0.89 0.75 0.71 0.85 0.74 0.76
Portuguese 0.38 0.80 0.89 1 0.75 0.72 0.85 0.74 0.76
French 0.47 0.89 0.75 0.75 1 0.75 0.78 0.80 0.27 0.29
Romanian 0.35 0.77 0.71 0.72 0.75 1 0.73 0.72 0.74
Catalan 0.45 0.87 0.85 0.85 0.73 1 0.76 0.75
Romansh 0.36 0.78 0.74 0.74 0.78 0.72 0.76 1 0.74
Sardinian 0.43 0.85 0.76 0.76 0.80 0.74 0.75 0.74 1
English 0.41 0.27 1 0.60
German 0.42 0.29 0.60 1

Comparison with modern Germanic and Romance languages

Germanic
English The cold winter is near, a snowstorm will come. Come in my warm house, my friend. Welcome! Come here, sing and dance, eat and drink. That is my plan. We have water, beer, and milk fresh from the cow. Oh, and warm soup!
Dutch De koude winter is nabij, een sneeuwstorm zal komen, Kom in mijn warme huis, mijn vriend. Welkom! Kom hier, zing en dans, eet en drink. Dat is mijn plan. We hebben water, bier, en melk vers van de koe. Oh, en warme soep!
German Der kalte Winter ist nahe, ein Schneesturm wird kommen. Komm in mein warmes Haus, mein Freund, Willkommen! Komm her, sing und tanz, iss und trink. Das ist mein Plan. Wir haben Wasser, Bier und Milch frisch von der Kuh. Oh, und warme Suppe!
Frisian De kâlde winter is nei, in sniestoarm sil komme. Kom yn myn waarme hûs, myn freon. Wolkom! Kom hjir, sjong en dänsje, yt en drink. Dat is myn plan. Wy ha wtter, bier, en molke farsk fan de ko. Och, en waarme sop!
Norwegian Den kalde vinteren er nær, en snøstorm vil komme. Kom inn i mitt varme hus, min venn. Velkommen! Kom her, syng og dans, et og drikk. Dette er min plan. Vi har vann, øl og melk fersk fra kua. Åh, og varm suppe!
Icelandic Kaldi veturinn nálgast, snjóstormur mun koma. Komdu inn í hlýja húsið mitt, vinur minn. Velkominn! Komdu hingað, syngdu og dansaðu, borðaðu og drekktu. Það er planið mitt. Við höfum vatn, bjór, og mjólk ferska úr kúnni. Ó, og volga súpu!
Luthic Il caldu vintru ist vicinu, aena tormenta qerrât. Qemâ gia meina rasna varma, frigiondu meinu. Beneqemutu! Qemâ har, segguâ e danzâ, mangiâ e dregcâ. Su ist il meinu pianu. Vi abbiamos vadne, biure, e meluco fresco da vacca. Ah, e zuppa varma!
Portuguese O inverno gelado está a chegar, uma tempestade de neve virá. Vem para a minha casa quente, meu amigo. Bem-vindo! Vem cá, canta e dança, come e bebe. É esse o meu plano. Temos água, cerveja e leite fresco da vaca. Ah, e sopa quente!
Italian Il freddo inverno è vicino, arriverà una tormenta di neve. Vieni nella mia calda casa, amico mio. Benvenuto! Vieni qui, canta e danza, mangia e bevi. Questo è il mio piano. Abbiamo acqua, birra e latte fresco di mucca. Ah, e zuppa calda!
Spanish El frío invierno está cerca, vendrá una tormenta de nieve. Ven a mi cálida casa, amigo mío. ¡Bienvenido! Ven aquí, canta y baila, come y bebe. Ese es mi plan. Tenemos agua, cerveza y leche fresca de la vaca. ¡Oh, y sopa caliente!
French Le froid de l'hiver est proche, une tempête de neige s'annonce. Viens dans ma maison chaude, mon ami. Bienvenue ! Viens ici, chante et danse, mange et bois. C'est mon plan. Nous avons de l'eau, de la bière et du lait frais de la vache. Oh, et de la soupe chaude !
Romanian Iarna geroasă este aproape, viscolul o să vină. Vino în casa mea călduroasă, prietene. Bine ai venit! Vino încoace, cântă și dansează, bea și mănâncă. Ăsta e planul meu. Avem apa, bere și lapte proaspăt de la vacă. Aaa, și supă calda!
Romance
Portuguese Este é um magnifico palácio real. Parti, peão ignorante! Somente os elites respeitáveis em política, ciência, cultura e arte são autorizados a entrar. Retornai imediatamente à vossa fazenda miserável, e pagai a taxa, ou os guardas exterminarão a vossa família.
Italian Questo è un magnifico palazzo reale. Partite, pedone ignorante! Solo le élite rispettabili in politica, scienza, cultura e arte sono autorizzate a entrare. Tornate immediatamente alla vostra misera fattoria e pagate la tassa, o le guardie stermineranno la vostra famiglia.
Spanish Este es un magnífico palacio real. ¡Partí, peón ignorante! Sólo las élites respetables de la política, la ciencia, la cultura y el arte están autorizadas a entrar. Regresá inmediatamente a vuestra miserable hacienda y pagá la tasa, o los guardias exterminarán a vuestra familia.
French C'est un magnifique palais royal. Partez, paysan ignorant ! Seules les élites respectables en politique, science, culture et art sont autorisées à entrer. Retournez immédiatement à votre misérable ferme. Et payez la taxe, ou les gardes extermineront votre famille.
Romanian Acesta este un palat regal magnific. Îndepărtaţi-vă, țăranule ignorant! Doar elitele respectabile din politică, știință, cultură și artă sunt autorizate să intre. Întoarceți-vă imediat la ferma voastră mizerabilă. Și plătiţi taxele, altfel gărzile vă vor extermina familia.
Luthic Este ist aenu magnificu palazzu reale. Partite, pedone ignorante! Sole le elite rispettabili in politica, scienzia, coltura e crafte autorizzanða ad entrare. Tornate immediatamente all’isvara misera garda e pagate lo geldo, aud i guardi sterminerando l’isvara famiglia.
English This is a magnificent royal palace. Depart, ignorant peasant! Only respectable elites in politics, science, culture and art are authorised to enter. Return immediately to your miserable farm. And pay the tax, or the guards will exterminate your family.
Dutch Dit is een prachtig koninklijk paleis. Gaat weg u, onwetende boer! Alleen respectabele elites in de politiek, wetenschap, cultuur en kunst hebben toegang. Keert u onmiddellijk terug naar uw ellendige boerderij. En betaalt u de belasting, of de bewakers zullen uw familie uitroeien.
German Dies ist ein prächtiger königlicher Palast. Weggehen Sie unwissender Bauer! Nur respektable Eliten aus Politik, Wissenschaft, Kultur und Kunst haben Zutritt. Kehren Sie sofort auf Ihren armseligen Bauernhof zurück. Und zahlen Sie die Steuern, sonst werden die Wachen Ihre Familie auslöschen.
Frisian Dit is in prachtich keninklik paleis. Gean werom, ûnwittende boer! Allinnich respektabele elites yn polityk, wittenskip, kultuer en keunst hawwe tagong. Gean werom fuort nei jo miserabele pleats. En betelje de belesting, of de bewakers sille jo famylje útroege.
Norwegian Dette er et praktfullt kongelig palass. Forsvinn, uvitende bonde! Bare respektable eliter innen politikk, vitenskap, kultur og kunst har adgang. Dra straks tilbake til din elendige gård. Og betal skatten, ellers vil vaktene utrydde familien din.
Icelandic Þetta er stórkostleg konungshöll. Farið þér, fáfróður bóndi! Aðeins virðuleg elíta í stjórnmálum, vísindum, menningu og listum hafa aðgang. Farið þér strax aftur á ömurlega bæinn ykkart. Og borgið þér skattinn, annars munu verðir útrýma fjölskyldu ykkarri.

Leipzig-Jakarta

It is often said that the Swadesh list was put together by Morris Swadesh on the basis of his intuition, while the Leipzig-Jakarta list is based on systematic data from many different languages.

Phrasebook

Luthic phrases that are used in common situations, and may be useful to language learners or travellers.

Idiomatic phrases

Mostly of the Luthic idiomatic phrases are similar to mostly European languages idioms, mainly Italian and French. Luthic idioms are often about food or mocking the French people, but mostly because of the French government and its movements against minority people within its territory. Another factor is the Roman inherited culture, as the Roman elite considered the Germanic people savage and stupid (e.g. the word Vandal, that can also stand for a person who needlessly destroys, defaces, or damages things, especially other people’s property; and Gothic that also meant barbarous, rude, unpolished, belonging to the “Dark Ages”, mediaeval as opposed to classical; ultimately of Germanic origin, the name of two East Germanic tribes, but drastically semantic changed to sound pejorative). There were many Germanic raids against the Roman Empire, and a common weapon used back then by the West Germanic people were the javelins, the Common West Germanic word for javelin is *frankō, which is also the name of the Frankish tribe (cf. Latin Francus and Francia). Luthic inherited the word “fragcese” [frɐŋˈke.ze] from Francia + -ensis, ultimately meaning “French (language)”, “Frenchman, Frenchwoman” and "French (people)”, but also meaning “stupid, savage, useless” from a semantic change similar to Vandal and Gothic.

  1. Monþo al volfo: calqued from Italian in bocca al lupo, equivalent to break a leg, good luck; literally, “in the wolf’s mouth”.
  2. Dauþit lo volfo: calqued from Italian crepi in lupo, an answer similar to “thank you”; literally, “may the wolf die”.
  3. Tvi italiani miþ sole aena mana: equivalent to two birds with one stone; literally, “two Italians with only one hand”, a mock to Italians’ che vuoi?.
  4. Vegliare anþero pomodoro: an expression for someones who is asking for special treatment; literally, “to want another tomato”.
  5. La herba vicini ist aeve verdiza: equivalent to the grass is always greener on the other side; literally, “The neighbour’s grass is always greener”.
  6. La fame laþot pasta, agce si inu salsa: equivalent to desperate times call for desperate measures; literally, “Hunger calls for pasta, even if without sauce”.
  7. L’amore dominat inu regolam: somewhat equivalent to all’s fair in love and war; literally, “Love rules without rules”.
  8. Biegguare lo chiudo capo: equivalent to hit the nail on the head, with the same literal translation.
  9. Martellare lo dito: the opposite to the previous idiomatic phrase, when someone is totally wrong; literally, “To hammer the finger”.
  10. Gniosco las meinas patatas: equivalent to I can handle this; literally, “I know my potatoes”.
  11. Stoppau di rogiare fragcese: an expression asking for someone to be straightforward and speak one’s mind; literally, “Stop speaking French”.
  12. Imparasti fragcese, nu rogiâ: equivalent to make one’s bed and lie in it; literally, “You learnt French, now speak it”.
  13. Pasta miþ salsa e caffê aeve neru: equivalent to call a spade a spade; literally, “Pasta with sauce and coffee always black”.
  14. Il þeinu sale stâþ dolce: equivalent to out of one’s mind; literally, “Your salt is sweet”.
  15. Havere managos casos faul·lo dativo: equivalent to wear too many hats; literally, “Have too many usages for the dative”, a joke about the many usages of the dative case in Luthic.
  16. Sputâ la patata da seina monþa faur di rogiare: equivalent to speak up; literally, “Spit the potato out of your mouth before speaking”.
  17. Rogiando da diavola: equivalent to speak of the devil, with the same literal translation.
  18. Il pomudoru non taugit lo capocuocu: equivalent to clothes don’t make the man; literally, “The tomato doesn’t make the chef”.
  19. Aenu pomodoru grossu: equivalent to big shot; literally, “A big tomato”.
  20. Havere aeno cervello di fragcesi: an expression for someone who acts stupidly, has low intelligence or has poor judgement; literally, “To have a French brain”.
  21. Cosa ist marcia in Roma: equivalent to something is rotten in the state of Denmark; literally, “Something is rotten in Rome”.
  22. Scimmia non dauþat scimmia: equivalent to honour among thieves; literally, “Monkey doesn’t kill monkey”.
  23. Costare aeno augono: equivalent to an arm and a leg; literally, “To cost an eye”.
  24. Þatha ist Italiana mis: equivalent to it’s all Greek to me; literally, “This is Italian to me”.
  25. Drigcare svasve aenu russu: equivalent to drink like a fish; literally, “To drink like a Russian”.
  26. Vivere grande ed al fragcesa: an expression for living in extravagance, to live in luxury; literally, “To live big and French”, mocking the French lifestyle.
  27. Puossere drigcare veleno ana þatha: equivalent to bet one’s bottom dollar; literally, “To can drink poison on that”.
  28. Il volfu danzat har: an expression for a great party; literally, “The wolf dances here”.
  29. Non vendere los seinos pomosdoros faur di maturanda: equivalent to don’t count your chickens before they’re hatched; literally, “Don’t sell your tomatoes before they’re ripe”.
  30. Pizza buona non cambiat la ricetta: equivalent to if it ain’t broke, don’t fix it; literally, “A good pizza doesn’t change its recipe”.
  31. Taugiare lo haurno: equivalent to to cuckoldise; literally, “To make the horn”.

Further reading

Sample text

The North Wind and the Sun in Luthic:

  • Orthographic version in Standard Luthic
Il vendu trabaergnia ed atha sauilo giucavando carge erat il fortizu, can aenu pellegrinu qemavat avvoltu hacola varma ana. I tvi diciderondo ei, il fromu a rimuovere lo hacolo pellegrina sariat il fortizu anþera. Il vendu trabaergnia dustoggit a soffiare violenza, ac atha maeze is soffiavat, atha maeze il pellegrinu striggevat hacolo; tantu ei, allo angio il vendu desistaet da seina sforza. Atha sauilo allora sceinaut varmamente nallo hemeno, e þan il pellegrinu rimuovaet lo hacolo immediatamente. Þan il vendu trabaergnia obbligauða ad andaetare ei, latha sauilo erat atha fortizo tvoro.


  • Broad transcription
/il ˈβen.du trɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa e.d‿ɐ.tɐ ˈsɔj.lo d͡ʒu.kɐˈβɐn.do kɐr.d͡ʒe ˈɛ.rɐθ il ˈɸɔr.ti.d͡zu | kɐn ɛ.nu pel.leˈɡri.nu kʷeˈma.βɐθ ɐβˈβol.tu ɐˈkɔ.la ˈβar.ma ɐ.nɐ ‖ i tβi di.t͡ʃi.deˈron.do ˈi | il ˈɸro.mu ɐ ri.mwoˈβe.re lo ɐˈkɔ.lo pel.leˈɡri.na ˈsa.rjɐθ il ˈɸɔr.ti.d͡zu ɐ̃ˈθe.ra ‖ il ˈβen.du trɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa duˈstɔd.d͡ʒiθ ɐ soɸˈɸja.re βjoˈlɛn.t͡sa | ɐ.k‿ɐ.tɐ ˈmɛ.d͡ze is soɸˈɸja.βɐθ | ɐ.tɐ ˈmɛ.d͡ze il pel.leˈɡri.nu striŋˈɡe.βɐθ ɐˈkɔ.lo | ˈtan.tu ˈi | ɐl.lo ˈan.d͡ʒo il ˈβen.du deˈzi.stɛθ da ˈsi.na ˈsɸɔr.t͡sa ‖ ɐ.tɐ ˈsɔj.lo ɐlˈlɔ.rɐ ʃiˈnɔθ βɐr.mɐˈmen.te nɐl.lo eˈme.no | e θɐn il pel.leˈɡri.nu riˈmwo.βɛθ lo ɐˈkɔ.lo ĩ.me.djɐ.tɐˈmen.te ‖ θɐn il ˈβen.du trɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa ob.bliˈɡɔ.ðɐ ɐ.d‿ɐn.dɛˈta.re ˈi | lɐ.tɐ ˈsɔj.lo ˈɛ.rɐθ ɐ.tɐ ˈɸɔr.ti.d͡zo ˈtβo.ro/


  • Narrow transcription (differences emphasised)
[il ˈven.du trɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa e.ð‿ɐ.tɐ.s‿ˈsɔj.lo d͡ʒu.xɐˈβɐn.do kɐr.d͡ʒe ˈɛ.rɐθ il ˈfɔr.tid.d͡zu | kɐn ɛ.nu pel.leˈɡri.nu kᶣeˈma.βɐθ ɐβˈβol.tu ɐˈk̠ɔ.la ˈvar.ma ɐ.nɐ ‖ i tvi di.t͡ʃi.ðeˈron.do ˈi | il ˈfro.mu ɐ.r‿ri.mwoˈβe.re lo ɐˈk̠ɔ.lo pel.leˈɡri.na ˈsa.rjɐθ il ˈfɔr.tid.d͡zu ɐ̃ˈθe.ra ‖ il ˈven.du trɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa dusˈtɔd.d͡ʒiθ ɐ.s‿soɸˈɸja.re vjoˈlɛn.t͡sa | ɐ.x‿ɐ.tɐ.m‿ˈmɛd.d͡ze is soɸˈɸja.βɐθ | ɐ.tɐ.m‿ˈmɛd.d͡ze il pel.leˈɡri.nu striŋ˖ˈɡ̟e.βɐθ ɐˈk̠ɔ.lo | ˈtan.tu ˈi | ɐl.lo ˈan.d͡ʒo il ˈven.du deˈzi.stɛθ da.s‿ˈsi.na ˈsfɔr.t͡saɐ.tɐ.s‿ˈsɔj.lo ɐlˈlɔ.rɐ ʃiˈnɔθ vɐr.mɐˈmen.te nɐl.lo eˈme.no | e θɐn il pel.leˈɡri.nu riˈmwo.βɛθ lo ɐˈk̠ɔ.lo ĩ.me.djɐ.θɐˈmen.te ‖ θɐn il ˈven.du trɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa ob.bliˈɡ˗ɔ.ðɐ ɐ.ð‿ɐn.dɛˈta.re ˈi | lɐ.tɐ.s‿ˈsɔj.lo ˈɛ.rɐθ ɐ.tɐ.f‿ˈfɔr.tid.d͡zo ˈtvo.ro]


  • Extranarrow transcription

This extranarrow transcription illustrates a Lugo Ravennese, educated, middle-generation speech, in his twenties, and a careful yet colloquial style.

⟦il̻ ˈven̻.d̻uu̥ˣ t̻rɐˈbɛ̝rɲ.ɲä e.ð‿ɐ.t̻ɐ.s̻‿ˈs̻ɔ̝ɒ̯̆j.l̻o d͡ʒʷu̽ə̯̆.xɐˈβɐn̻.d̻o kɐr.d͡ʒʷe ˈɛ̝.rɐθ il̻ ˈfɔ̟r.t̻i̽ə̯̆d̻.d̻͡z̪uu̥ˣ | kɐn̻ ɛæ̯̆.n̻uu̥ˣ pel̻.l̻eˈɡri̽ə̯̆.n̻uu̥ˣ kᶣeˈmä.βɐθ ɐβˈβol̻.t̻uu̥ˣ ɐˈk̠ɔ̟.l̻ä ˈvär.mä ɐ.n̻ɐ ‖ ii̥ᶜ̧ t̻vii̥ᶜ̧ d̻i̽ə̯̆.t͡ʃʷi̽ə̯̆.ðeˈron̻.d̻o ˈii̥ᶜ̧ | il̻ ˈfro.muu̥ˣ ɐ.r‿ri̽ə̯̆.mwoˈβe.re l̻o ɐˈk̠ɔ̟.l̻o pel̻.l̻eˈɡri̽ə̯̆.n̻ä ˈs̻ä.rjɐθ il̻ ˈfɔ̟r.t̻i̽ə̯̆d̻.d̻͡z̪uu̥ˣ ɐ̃ˈθe.rä ‖ il̻ ˈven̻.d̻u t̻rɐˈbɛ̝rɲ.ɲä d̻us̻ˈt̻ɔ̟d.d͡ʒʷiθ ɐ.s̻‿s̻oɸˈɸjä.re vjoˈl̻ɛ̝n̻.t̻͡s̪ä | ɐ.x‿ɐ.t̻ɐ.m‿ˈmɛæ̯̆d̻.d̻͡z̪e is̻ s̻oɸˈɸjä.βɐθ | ɐ.t̻ɐ.m‿ˈmɛæ̯̆d̻.d̻͡z̪e il̻ pel̻.l̻eˈɡri̽ə̯̆.n̻uu̥ˣ s̻t̻ri̽ə̯̆ŋ˖ˈɡ̟e.βɐθ ɐˈk̠ɔ̟.l̻o | ˈt̻än̻.t̻uu̥ˣ ˈii̥ᶜ̧ | ɐl̻.l̻o ˈän̻.d͡ʒʷo il̻ ˈven̻.d̻uu̥ˣ d̻eˈz̻i̽ə̯̆.s̻tɛ̝θ d̻ä.s̻‿ˈs̻i̽ə̯̆.n̻ä ˈs̻fɔ̟r.t̻͡s̪ä ‖ ɐ.t̻ɐ.s̻‿ˈs̻ɔ̝ɒ̯̆j.l̻o ɐl̻ˈl̻ɔ.rɐ ʃʷi̽ə̯̆ˈn̻ɔ̟θ vɐr.mɐˈmen̻.t̻e n̻ɐl̻.l̻o eˈme.n̻o | e θɐn̻ il̻ pel̻.l̻eˈɡri̽ə̯̆.n̻uu̥ˣ ri̽ə̯̆ˈmwo.βɛ̝θ l̻o ɐˈk̠ɔ̟.l̻o ĩ.me.d̻jɐ.θɐˈmen̻.t̻e ‖ θɐn̻ il̻ ˈven̻.d̻uu̥ˣ t̻rɐˈbɛ̝rɲ.ɲä ob.bl̻i̽ə̯̆ˈɡ˗ɔ̟.ðɐ ɐ.ð‿ɐn̻.d̻ɛæ̯̆ˈt̻ä.re ˈii̥ᶜ̧ | l̻ɐ.t̻ɐ.s̻‿ˈs̻ɔ̝ɒ̯̆j.l̻o ˈɛ̝.rɐθ ɐ.t̻ɐ.f‿ˈfɔ̟r.t̻id̻.d̻͡z̪o ˈt̻vo.ro⟧


  • Narrow transcription (differences emphasised, Bolognese Standard Luthic)
[il ˈvin.du tɾɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa e.ð̞‿ɐ.tɐ.s‿ˈsɔj.lo d͡zu.xɐˈvɐ̃.nu kɐr.d͡ze ˈɛ.rɐθ il ˈfɔɾ.tid.d͡zu | kɐn e.nu pel.liˈɡri.nu kᶣeˈma.vɐθ ɐvˈvul.tu ɐˈkɔ.la ˈvar.ma ɐ.nɐ ‖ i tvi di.t͡si.ð̞iˈrun.du ˈi | il ˈfru.mu ɐ.r‿ri.mwoˈve.ɾe lo ɐˈkɔ.lo pel.liˈɡri.na ˈsa.rjɐθ il ˈfɔr.tid.d͡zu ɐ̃ˈt͡θe.ra ‖ il ˈvin.du tɾɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa dusˈtɔd.d͡ziθ ɐ.s‿sofˈfja.re vjoˈlɛn.t͡sa | ɐ.x‿ɐ.tɐ.m‿ˈmɛd.d͡ze is sofˈfja.vɐθ | ɐ.tɐ.m‿ˈmɛd.d͡ze il pel.liˈɡri.nu stɾiŋˈɡ̟e.vɐθ ɐˈkɔ.lo | ˈtan.tu ˈi | ɐl.lo ˈan.d͡zo il ˈvin.du deˈzis.tɛθ da.s‿ˈsi.na ˈsfɔr.t͡sa ‖ ɐ.tɐ.s‿ˈsɔj.lo ɐlˈlɔ.rɐ ʃiˈnɔθ vɐr.mɐˈmen.te nɐl.lo eˈme.no | e θɐn il pel.liˈɡri.nu riˈmwo.vɛθ lo ɐˈkɔ.lo ĩ.me.djɐ.θɐˈmen.te ‖ θɐn il ˈvin.du tɾɐˈbɛrɲ.ɲa ob.bliˈɡɔ.ð̞ɐ ɐ.ð̞‿ɐn.dɛˈta.re ˈi | lɐ.tɐ.s‿ˈsɔj.lo ˈɛ.ɾɐθ ɐ.tɐ.f‿ˈfɔr.tid.d͡zo ˈtvu.ru]


  • Orthographic version in Standard Luthic, with reductions and syntactic gemination
Il vendu trabaergnia·d atha·ssauilo giucavando carge erat il fortizu, can aenu pellegrinu qemavat avvoltu hacola varma ana. I tvi diciderondo ei, il fromu a·rrimuovere l’hacolo pellegrina sariat il fortizu anþera. Il vendu trabaergnia dustoggit a·ssoffiare violenza, ac atha·mmaeze is soffiavat, atha·mmaeze il pellegrinu striggevat hacolo; tantu ei, all’angio il vendu desistaet da·sseina sforza. Atha·ssauilo allora sceinaut varmamente nall’hemeno, e þan il pellegrino rimuovaet l’hacolo immediatamente. Þan il vendu trabaergnia obbligauða·d andaetare ei, latha·ssauilo erat atha·ffortizo tvoro.


  • Orthographic version in English
The North Wind and the Sun were disputing which was the stronger, when a traveller came along wrapped in a warm cloak. They agreed that the one who first succeeded in making the traveller take his cloak off should be considered stronger than the other. Then the North Wind blew as hard as he could, but the more he blew the more closely did the traveller fold his cloak around him; and at last the North Wind gave up the attempt. Then the Sun shined out warmly, and immediately the traveller took off his cloak. And so the North Wind was obliged to confess that the Sun was the stronger of the two.


The Lord’s Prayer in Luthic:

  • Orthographic version in Luthic

Faðar unsar, þû hemeno,
Veiða latha namno þeino;
La þiuðanagarda þeina qemit;
Lo vegliano þeino taugiat;
Svasve hemeno ed ana aerþa.
Il chiaefu qotidianu unsar gevâ unse oggi,
Ed afietâ las unsaras colpas,
Svasve afietiamos þos ei, colpando unsis;
E non letare unse in tentazione
Ac frieau unse da mala.
Faur þuc ist þiuðanagarda,
E la forza, la volþa,
Faur saechia saechioro. Amen.

  • Broad transcription

/ˈɸa.ðɐr ˈũ.sɐr | ˈθu eˈme.no
ˈβi.ðɐ lɐ.tɐ ˈnam.no ˈθi.no
lɐ θjuˌða.nɐˈɡar.dɐ ˈθi.nɐ ˈkʷe.miθ
lo βeʎˈʎa.no ˈθi.no ˈtɔ.d͡ʒɐθ
zβɐ.zβe eˈme.no e.d‿ɐ.nɐ ˈɛr.θɐ
il ˈk̟jɛ.ɸu kʷo.tiˈdja.nu ˈũ.sɐr d͡ʒeˈβa ũ.se ˈɔd.d͡ʒi
e.d‿ɐ.ɸjeˈta lɐs ˈũ.sɐ.rɐs ˈkol.pɐs
zβɐ.zβe ɐ.ɸjeˈtja.mos θos ˈi | kolˈpɐn.do ũ.sis
e non leˈta.re ũ.se in ten.tɐtˈt͡sjo.ne
ɐk ɸrjeˈɔ ũ.se da ˈma.la
ɸɔr θuk ist θjuˌða.nɐˈɡar.da
e la ˈɸɔr.t͡sa | la ˈvol.θa
ɸɔr ˈsɛ.k̟jɐ ˈsɛ.k̟jo.ru ‖ ˈa.men/


  • Narrow transcription

[ˈfa.ðɐr ˈũ.sɐr | ˈθu eˈme.no
ˈvi.ðɐ lɐ.tɐ.n‿ˈnam.no ˈθi.no
lɐ θjuˌða.nɐˈɡar.dɐ ˈθi.nɐ ˈkᶣe.miθ
lo veʎˈʎa.no ˈθi.no ˈtɔ.d͡ʒɐθ
zvɐ.zve eˈme.no e.ð‿ɐ.nɐ ˈɛr.θɐ
il ˈk̟jɛ.ɸu kʷo.θiˈdja.nu ˈũ.sɐr d͡ʒeˈβa ũ.se ˈɔd.d͡ʒi
e.ð‿ɐ.ɸjeˈta lɐs ˈũ.sɐ.rɐs ˈk̠ol.pɐs
zvɐ.zve ɐ.ɸjeˈtja.mo.θ‿θos ˈi | k̠olˈpɐn.do ũ.sis
e non leˈta.re ũ.se in ten.tɐtˈt͡sjo.ne
ɐ.f‿frjeˈɔ ũ.se da.m‿ˈma.la
fɔr θux ist θjuˌða.nɐˈɡar.da
e la ˈfɔr.t͡sa | la ˈvol.θa
fɔr ˈsɛ.k̟jɐ ˈsɛ.k̟jo.ru ‖ ˈa.men]

  • Orthographic version in English

Our Father, who art in heaven,
Hallowed be thy name.
Thy kingdom come,
Thy will be done on earth,
as it is in heaven.
Give us this day our daily bread.
And forgive us our debts,
as we forgive our debtors.
And lead us not into temptation,
but deliver us from evil:
For thine is the kingdom,
and the power, and the glory,
forever. Amen.


See also

Bibliography

  • Tagliavini, Carlo (1948). Le origini delle lingue Neolatine: corso introduttivo di filologia romanza. Bologna: Pàtron.
  • Haller, Hermann W. (1999). The other Italy: the literary canon in dialect. Toronto: University of Toronto Press.
  • Renzi, Lorenzo (1994). Nuova introduzione alla filologia romanza. Bologna: Il Mulino.
  • Koryakov, Y. B. (2001). Atlas of Romance languages. Moscow: Moscow State University.
  • Mallory, J.P.; Douglas Q. Adams (1997). Encyclopedia of Indo-European Culture. London: Fitzroy Dearborn Publishers.
  • Klein, Jared; Joseph, Brian; Fritz, Matthias; Wenthe, Mark (2017). Handbook of Comparative and Historical Indo-European Linguistics (Vol. 1). Berlin: De Gruyer.
  • Klein, Jared; Joseph, Brian; Fritz, Matthias; Wenthe, Mark (2017). Handbook of Comparative and Historical Indo-European Linguistics (Vol. 2). Berlin: De Gruyer.
  • Klein, Jared; Joseph, Brian; Fritz, Matthias; Wenthe, Mark (2018). Handbook of Comparative and Historical Indo-European Linguistics (Vol. 3). Berlin: De Gruyer.
  • Pokorny, Julius (1959). Indogermanisches etymologisches Wörterbuch [Indo-European Etymological Dictionary] (in German), volume 2, Bern, München: Francke Verlag.
  • Ringe, Donald A. (2006). From Proto-Indo-European to Proto-Germanic. Linguistic history of English, v. 1. Oxford: Oxford University Press.
  • Kroonen, Guus (2013). Etymological Dictionary of Proto-Germanic. Leiden–Boston: Brill.
  • Orel, Vladimir (2003). A Handbook of Germanic Etymology. Leiden–Boston: Brill.
  • E. Prokosch (1939). A Comparative Germanic Grammar. Connecticut: The Linguistic Society of America for Yale University.
  • A. Noreen (1913). Geschichte der nordischen Sprachen. Trübner: Straßburg.
  • Crawford, Jackson (2012). Old Norse-Icelandic (þú) est and (þú) ert. Los Angeles: University of California.
  • Geir T. Zoëga (1910). A Concise Dictionary of Old Icelandic. Oxford: Clarendon Press.
  • Kloekhorst, Alwin (2008). Etymological Dictionary of the Hittite Inherited Lexicon. Leiden–Boston: Brill.
  • Puhvel, Jaan (1984). Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with A, Volume 1, Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
  • Puhvel, Jaan (1984). Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with E and I, Volume 2, Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
  • Puhvel, Jaan (1984). Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with H, Volume 3, Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
  • Puhvel, Jaan (1984). Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with K, Volume 4, Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
  • Puhvel, Jaan (1984). Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with L, Volume 5, Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
  • Puhvel, Jaan (1984). Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with M, Volume 6, Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
  • Puhvel, Jaan (1984). Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with N, Volume 7, Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
  • Puhvel, Jaan (1984). Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with PA, Volume 8, Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
  • Puhvel, Jaan (1984). Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with PE, PI, PU, Volume 9, Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
  • Puhvel, Jaan (1984). Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with SA, Volume 10, Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
  • Puhvel, Jaan (1984). Hittite Etymological Dictionary: Words beginning with SE, SI, SU, Volume 11, Mouton, Foreign Language Study.
  • Jasanoff, Jay (2003). Hittite and the Indo-European Verb. Oxford: Oxford University Press.
  • Grekyan, Y. H. (2023). By God's Grace: Ancient Anatolian Studies Presented to Aram Kosyan on the Occasion of his 65th Birthday.
  • Adams, Douglas Q. (2013). A Dictionary of Tocharian B.: Revised and Greatly Enlarged. Amsterdam-New York: Rodopi.
  • de Vaan, Michiel (2008). Etymological Dictionary of Latin and the other Italic Languages. Leiden–Boston: Brill.
  • Schrijver, Peter (1991). The Reflexes of the Proto-Indo-European Laryngeals in Latin, in Leiden Studies in Indo-European, Volume: 2.
  • Bennett, William Holmes (1980). An Introduction to the Gothic Language. New York: Modern Language Association of America.
  • Wright, Joseph (1910). Grammar of the Gothic Language. Oxford: Clarendon Press.
  • Snædal, Magnús (2011). "Gothic <ggw>". Studia Linguistica Universitatis Iagellonicae Cracoviensis. 128: 145–154.
  • G. H. Balg (1889): A comparative glossary of the Gothic language with especial reference to English and German. New York: Westermann & Company.
  • Lehmann, Winfred P. (1986) A GOTHIC ETYMOLOGICAL DICTIONARY, Based on the third edition of Vergleichendes Wörterbuch der Gotischen Sprache by Sigmund Feist, with Bibliography Prepared Under the Direction of H.-J.J. Hewitt, BRILL.
  • Ebbinghaus, E. A. (1976). THE FIRST ENTRY OF THE GOTHIC CALENDAR. The Journal of Theological Studies, 27(1), 140–145. Oxford: Oxford University Press.
  • Voyles, Joseph B. (1992). Early Germanic Grammar. San Diego: Academic Press.
  • Fulk, R. D. (2018). A Comparative Grammar of Early Germanic Languages. Amsterdam/Philadelphia: John Benjamins Publishing Company.
  • Stearns Jr, MacDonald (1978). Crimean Gothic: Analysis and Etymology of the Corpus. Stanford: Anma Libri.
  • Sihler, Andrew L. (1995). New Comparative Grammar of Greek and Latin. Oxford: Oxford University Press.
  • Allen, William Sidney (1978) [1965]. Vox Latina: A Guide to the Pronunciation of Classical Latin (2nd ed.). Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
  • Allen, William Sidney (1987). Vox Graeca: The Pronunciation of Classical Greek. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
  • Holt, D. Eric (2016). From Latin to Portuguese: Main Phonological Changes. John Wiley & Sons, Ltd.
  • Grandgent, C. H. (1927). From Latin to Italian: An Historical Outline of the Phonology and Morphology of the Italian Language. Harvard: Harvard University Press.
  • Grandgent, C. H. (1907). An introduction to Vulgar Latin. Boston: D.C. Heath & Co.
  • Alkire, Ti; Rosen, Carol (2010). Romance Languages: A Historical Introduction. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
  • Ferguson, Thaddeus (1976). A history of the Romance vowel systems through paradigmatic reconstruction. Berlin: De Gruyter.
  • Calabrese, Andrea (2005). On the Feature [ATR] and the Evolution of the Short High Vowels of Latin into Romance. Connecticut: University of Connecticut
  • Calabrese, Andrea (1998). Some remarks on the Latin case system and its development in Romance, in J. Lema & E. Trevino, (eds.), Theoretical Advances on Romance Languages. Amsterdam: John Benjamins.
  • Calabrese, Andrea (1999). Metaphony Revisited. In Rivista di Linguistica.
  • Calabrese, Andrea (2011). Metaphony in Romance. In C. Ewen; M. & Oostendorp; B. Hume (eds.). The Blackwell Companion to Phonology. Wiley-Blackwell.
  • Batllori, Montserrat & Roca, Francesc (2011). Grammaticalization of ser and estar in romance. Oxford: Oxford Scholarship Online.
  • Bruckner, Wilhelm (1895). Die Sprache der Langobarden. Quellen und Forschungen zur Sprach- und Culturgeschichte der germanischen Völker. Vol. LXXV. Strassburg: Trübner.
  • Gamillscheg, Ernst (2017) [First published 1935]. Die Ostgoten. Die Langobarden. Die altgermanischen Bestandteile des Ostromanischen. Altgermanisches im Alpenromanischen. Romania Germanica. Vol. 2. Berlin: De Gruyter.
  • Guitel, Geneviève (1975). Histoire comparée des numérations écrites. Paris: Flammarion.
  • Gvozdanović, Jadranka (1991). Indo-European Numerals. Berlin: De Gruyter.
  • Hoff, Erika (2009). Language development. Boston, MA: Wadsworth/Cengage Learning.
  • Goebl, H., ed. (1984). Dialectology. Quantitative Linguistics, Vol. 21. Bochum: Brockmeyer.
  • Crystal, David (2008). A Dictionary of Linguistics and Phonetics. Wales: Bangor.
  • Hockett, Charles F. (1958). A Course in Modern Linguistics. New York: Macmillan.
  • Stewart, William A. (1968). A sociolinguistic typology for describing national multilingualism. In Fishman, Joshua A. (ed.). Readings in the Sociology of Language. Berlin: De Gruyter.
  • Danilevitch, Olga (2019). Logical Semantics Approach for Data Modeling in XBRL Taxonomies. Minsk: Belarusian State Economic University.
  • Pellegrino, F.; Coupé, C.; Marsico, E. (2011). Across-language perspective on speech information rate. Paris: French National Centre for Scientific Research.
  • Gumperz, John J.; Cook-Gumperz, Jenny (2008). Studying language, culture, and society: Sociolinguistics or linguistic anthropology?. Journal of Sociolinguistics.
  • Stewart, William A (1968). A Sociolinguistic Typology for Describing National Multilingualism. In Fishman, Joshua A (ed.), Readings in the Sociology of Language. The Hague, Paris: Mouton.
  • Treffers-Daller, J. (2009). Bullock, Barbara E; Toribio, Almeida Jacqueline (eds.). Code-switching and transfer: An exploration of similarities and differences. The Cambridge Handbook of Linguistic Code-switching. Cambridge: Cambrigde University Press.
  • Carlson, Neil; et al. (2010). Psychology the Science of Behavior. Pearson Canada, United States of America.
  • Nair, RD; Lincoln, NB (2007). Lincoln, Nadina (ed.). Cognitive rehabilitation for memory deficits following stroke. The Cochrane Database of Systematic Reviews.
  • Brotle, Charles D. (2011). The role of mnemonic acronyms in clinical emergency medicine: A grounded theory study (EdD thesis).
  • O'Grady, William; Dobrovolsky, Michael; Katamba, Francis (1996). Contemporary Linguistics: An Introduction. Harlow, Essex: Longman.
  • Lass, Roger (1998). Phonology: An Introduction to Basic Concepts. Cambridge, UK; New York; Melbourne, Australia: Cambridge University Press.
  • Trask, Robert Lawrence (2007). Language and Linguistics: The Key Concepts. Taylor & Francis.
  • McGregor, William B. (2015). Linguistics: An Introduction (2nd ed.). London: Bloomsbury Academic.
  • Arndt, Walter W. (1959). The performance of glottochronology in Germanic. Language, 35, 180–192.
  • Bergsland, Knut; & Vogt, Hans. (1962). On the validity of glottochronology. Current Anthropology, 3, 115–153.
  • Sheila Embleton (1992). Historical Linguistics: Mathematical concepts. In W. Bright (Ed.), International Encyclopedia of Linguistics.
  • Swadesh, Morris (Oct 1950). Salish Internal Relations. International Journal of American Linguistics. 16: 157–167.
  • Ottenheimer, Harriet Joseph (2006). The Anthropology of Language. Belmont, CA: Wadsworth, Cengage Learning.

External links

Conlang status

Luthic
Lûthica
Progress: 96%
Type
Fusional
Alignment
Nominative–accusative
Head direction
Initial Mixed Final
Primary word order
Subject-verb-object
Tonal
No
Declensions
Yes
Conjugations
Yes
Genders
3
Nouns decline according to...
Case Number
Definiteness Gender
Verbs conjugate according to...
Voice Mood
Person Number
Tense Aspect


  • Ongoing projects:
    • Etymological Leipzig-Jakarta;
    • Paulistan Luthic.